- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Divine Comedy, Complete, by Dante Alighieri
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
- www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
- will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
- using this eBook.
- Title: The Divine Comedy
- Author: Dante Alighieri
- Release Date: August, 1997 [eBook #1004]
- [Most recently updated: April 9, 2021]
- Language: English
- Character set encoding: UTF-8
- Produced by: Dennis McCarthy
- *** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DIVINE COMEDY ***
- The Divine Comedy
- of Dante Alighieri
- Translated by
- HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW
- Contents
- INFERNO
- Canto I. The Dark Forest. The Hill of Difficulty. The Panther, the Lion, and the Wolf. Virgil.
- Canto II. The Descent. Dante’s Protest and Virgil’s Appeal. The Intercession of the Three Ladies Benedight.
- Canto III. The Gate of Hell. The Inefficient or Indifferent. Pope Celestine V. The Shores of Acheron. Charon. The Earthquake and the Swoon.
- Canto IV. The First Circle, Limbo: Virtuous Pagans and the Unbaptized. The Four Poets, Homer, Horace, Ovid, and Lucan. The Noble Castle of Philosophy.
- Canto V. The Second Circle: The Wanton. Minos. The Infernal Hurricane. Francesca da Rimini.
- Canto VI. The Third Circle: The Gluttonous. Cerberus. The Eternal Rain. Ciacco. Florence.
- Canto VII. The Fourth Circle: The Avaricious and the Prodigal. Plutus. Fortune and her Wheel. The Fifth Circle: The Irascible and the Sullen. Styx.
- Canto VIII. Phlegyas. Philippo Argenti. The Gate of the City of Dis.
- Canto IX. The Furies and Medusa. The Angel. The City of Dis. The Sixth Circle: Heresiarchs.
- Canto X. Farinata and Cavalcante de’ Cavalcanti. Discourse on the Knowledge of the Damned.
- Canto XI. The Broken Rocks. Pope Anastasius. General Description of the Inferno and its Divisions.
- Canto XII. The Minotaur. The Seventh Circle: The Violent. The River Phlegethon. The Violent against their Neighbours. The Centaurs. Tyrants.
- Canto XIII. The Wood of Thorns. The Harpies. The Violent against themselves. Suicides. Pier della Vigna. Lano and Jacopo da Sant’ Andrea.
- Canto XIV. The Sand Waste and the Rain of Fire. The Violent against God. Capaneus. The Statue of Time, and the Four Infernal Rivers.
- Canto XV. The Violent against Nature. Brunetto Latini.
- Canto XVI. Guidoguerra, Aldobrandi, and Rusticucci. Cataract of the River of Blood.
- Canto XVII. Geryon. The Violent against Art. Usurers. Descent into the Abyss of Malebolge.
- Canto XVIII. The Eighth Circle, Malebolge: The Fraudulent and the Malicious. The First Bolgia: Seducers and Panders. Venedico Caccianimico. Jason. The Second Bolgia: Flatterers. Allessio Interminelli. Thais.
- Canto XIX. The Third Bolgia: Simoniacs. Pope Nicholas III. Dante’s Reproof of corrupt Prelates.
- Canto XX. The Fourth Bolgia: Soothsayers. Amphiaraus, Tiresias, Aruns, Manto, Eryphylus, Michael Scott, Guido Bonatti, and Asdente. Virgil reproaches Dante’s Pity. Mantua’s Foundation.
- Canto XXI. The Fifth Bolgia: Peculators. The Elder of Santa Zita. Malacoda and other Devils.
- Canto XXII. Ciampolo, Friar Gomita, and Michael Zanche. The Malabranche quarrel.
- Canto XXIII. Escape from the Malabranche. The Sixth Bolgia: Hypocrites. Catalano and Loderingo. Caiaphas.
- Canto XXIV. The Seventh Bolgia: Thieves. Vanni Fucci. Serpents.
- Canto XXV. Vanni Fucci’s Punishment. Agnello Brunelleschi, Buoso degli Abati, Puccio Sciancato, Cianfa de’ Donati, and Guercio Cavalcanti.
- Canto XXVI. The Eighth Bolgia: Evil Counsellors. Ulysses and Diomed. Ulysses’ Last Voyage.
- Canto XXVII. Guido da Montefeltro. His deception by Pope Boniface VIII.
- Canto XXVIII. The Ninth Bolgia: Schismatics. Mahomet and Ali. Pier da Medicina, Curio, Mosca, and Bertrand de Born.
- Canto XXIX. Geri del Bello. The Tenth Bolgia: Alchemists. Griffolino d’ Arezzo and Capocchino.
- Canto XXX. Other Falsifiers or Forgers. Gianni Schicchi, Myrrha, Adam of Brescia, Potiphar’s Wife, and Sinon of Troy.
- Canto XXXI. The Giants, Nimrod, Ephialtes, and Antaeus. Descent to Cocytus.
- Canto XXXII. The Ninth Circle: Traitors. The Frozen Lake of Cocytus. First Division, Caina: Traitors to their Kindred. Camicion de’ Pazzi. Second Division, Antenora: Traitors to their Country. Dante questions Bocca degli Abati. Buoso da Duera.
- Canto XXXIII. Count Ugolino and the Archbishop Ruggieri. The Death of Count Ugolino’s Sons. Third Division of the Ninth Circle, Ptolomaea: Traitors to their Friends. Friar Alberigo, Branco d’ Oria.
- Canto XXXIV. Fourth Division of the Ninth Circle, the Judecca: Traitors to their Lords and Benefactors. Lucifer, Judas Iscariot, Brutus, and Cassius. The Chasm of Lethe. The Ascent.
- PURGATORIO
- I. The Shores of Purgatory. The Four Stars. Cato of Utica. The Rush.
- II. The Celestial Pilot. Casella. The Departure.
- III. Discourse on the Limits of Reason. The Foot of the Mountain. Those who died in Contumacy of Holy Church. Manfredi.
- IV. Farther Ascent. Nature of the Mountain. The Negligent, who postponed Repentance till the last Hour. Belacqua.
- V. Those who died by Violence, but repentant. Buonconte di Monfeltro. La Pia.
- VI. Dante’s Inquiry on Prayers for the Dead. Sordello. Italy.
- VII. The Valley of Flowers. Negligent Princes.
- VIII. The Guardian Angels and the Serpent. Nino di Gallura. The Three Stars. Currado Malaspina.
- IX. Dante’s Dream of the Eagle. The Gate of Purgatory and the Angel. Seven P’s. The Keys.
- X. The Needle’s Eye. The First Circle: The Proud. The Sculptures on the Wall.
- XI. The Humble Prayer. Omberto di Santafiore. Oderisi d’ Agobbio. Provenzan Salvani.
- XII. The Sculptures on the Pavement. Ascent to the Second Circle.
- XIII. The Second Circle: The Envious. Sapia of Siena.
- XIV. Guido del Duca and Renier da Calboli. Cities of the Arno Valley. Denunciation of Stubbornness.
- XV. The Third Circle: The Irascible. Dante’s Visions. The Smoke.
- XVI. Marco Lombardo. Lament over the State of the World.
- XVII. Dante’s Dream of Anger. The Fourth Circle: The Slothful. Virgil’s Discourse of Love.
- XVIII. Virgil further discourses of Love and Free Will. The Abbot of San Zeno.
- XIX. Dante’s Dream of the Siren. The Fifth Circle: The Avaricious and Prodigal. Pope Adrian V.
- XX. Hugh Capet. Corruption of the French Crown. Prophecy of the Abduction of Pope Boniface VIII and the Sacrilege of Philip the Fair. The Earthquake.
- XXI. The Poet Statius. Praise of Virgil.
- XXII. Statius’ Denunciation of Avarice. The Sixth Circle: The Gluttonous. The Mystic Tree.
- XXIII. Forese. Reproof of immodest Florentine Women.
- XXIV. Buonagiunta da Lucca. Pope Martin IV, and others. Inquiry into the State of Poetry.
- XXV. Discourse of Statius on Generation. The Seventh Circle: The Wanton.
- XXVI. Sodomites. Guido Guinicelli and Arnaldo Daniello.
- XXVII. The Wall of Fire and the Angel of God. Dante’s Sleep upon the Stairway, and his Dream of Leah and Rachel. Arrival at the Terrestrial Paradise.
- XXVIII. The River Lethe. Matilda. The Nature of the Terrestrial Paradise.
- XXIX. The Triumph of the Church.
- XXX. Virgil’s Departure. Beatrice. Dante’s Shame.
- XXXI. Reproaches of Beatrice and Confession of Dante. The Passage of Lethe. The Seven Virtues. The Griffon.
- XXXII. The Tree of Knowledge. Allegory of the Chariot.
- XXXIII. Lament over the State of the Church. Final Reproaches of Beatrice. The River Eunoe.
- PARADISO
- I. The Ascent to the First Heaven. The Sphere of Fire.
- II. The First Heaven, the Moon: Spirits who, having taken Sacred Vows, were forced to violate them. The Lunar Spots.
- III. Piccarda Donati and the Empress Constance.
- IV. Questionings of the Soul and of Broken Vows.
- V. Discourse of Beatrice on Vows and Compensations. Ascent to the Second Heaven, Mercury: Spirits who for the Love of Fame achieved great Deeds.
- VI. Justinian. The Roman Eagle. The Empire. Romeo.
- VII. Beatrice’s Discourse of the Crucifixion, the Incarnation, the Immortality of the Soul, and the Resurrection of the Body.
- VIII. Ascent to the Third Heaven, Venus: Lovers. Charles Martel. Discourse on diverse Natures.
- IX. Cunizza da Romano, Folco of Marseilles, and Rahab. Neglect of the Holy Land.
- X. The Fourth Heaven, the Sun: Theologians and Fathers of the Church. The First Circle. St. Thomas of Aquinas.
- XI. St. Thomas recounts the Life of St. Francis. Lament over the State of the Dominican Order.
- XII. St. Buonaventura recounts the Life of St. Dominic. Lament over the State of the Franciscan Order. The Second Circle.
- XIII. Of the Wisdom of Solomon. St. Thomas reproaches Dante’s Judgement.
- XIV. The Third Circle. Discourse on the Resurrection of the Flesh. The Fifth Heaven, Mars: Martyrs and Crusaders who died fighting for the true Faith. The Celestial Cross.
- XV. Cacciaguida. Florence in the Olden Time.
- XVI. Dante’s Noble Ancestry. Cacciaguida’s Discourse of the Great Florentines.
- XVII. Cacciaguida’s Prophecy of Dante’s Banishment.
- XVIII. The Sixth Heaven, Jupiter: Righteous Kings and Rulers. The Celestial Eagle. Dante’s Invectives against ecclesiastical Avarice.
- XIX. The Eagle discourses of Salvation, Faith, and Virtue. Condemnation of the vile Kings of A.D. 1300.
- XX. The Eagle praises the Righteous Kings of old. Benevolence of the Divine Will.
- XXI. The Seventh Heaven, Saturn: The Contemplative. The Celestial Stairway. St. Peter Damiano. His Invectives against the Luxury of the Prelates.
- XXII. St. Benedict. His Lamentation over the Corruption of Monks. The Eighth Heaven, the Fixed Stars.
- XXIII. The Triumph of Christ. The Virgin Mary. The Apostles. Gabriel.
- XXIV. The Radiant Wheel. St. Peter examines Dante on Faith.
- XXV. The Laurel Crown. St. James examines Dante on Hope. Dante’s Blindness.
- XXVI. St. John examines Dante on Charity. Dante’s Sight. Adam.
- XXVII. St. Peter’s reproof of bad Popes. The Ascent to the Ninth Heaven, the ‘Primum Mobile.’
- XXVIII. God and the Angelic Hierarchies.
- XXIX. Beatrice’s Discourse of the Creation of the Angels, and of the Fall of Lucifer. Her Reproof of Foolish and Avaricious Preachers.
- XXX. The Tenth Heaven, or Empyrean. The River of Light. The Two Courts of Heaven. The White Rose of Paradise. The great Throne.
- XXXI. The Glory of Paradise. Departure of Beatrice. St. Bernard.
- XXXII. St. Bernard points out the Saints in the White Rose.
- XXXIII. Prayer to the Virgin. The Threefold Circle of the Trinity. Mystery of the Divine and Human Nature.
- APPENDIX
- INFERNO
- Inferno: Canto I
- Midway upon the journey of our life
- I found myself within a forest dark,
- For the straightforward pathway had been lost.
- Ah me! how hard a thing it is to say
- What was this forest savage, rough, and stern,
- Which in the very thought renews the fear.
- So bitter is it, death is little more;
- But of the good to treat, which there I found,
- Speak will I of the other things I saw there.
- I cannot well repeat how there I entered,
- So full was I of slumber at the moment
- In which I had abandoned the true way.
- But after I had reached a mountain’s foot,
- At that point where the valley terminated,
- Which had with consternation pierced my heart,
- Upward I looked, and I beheld its shoulders,
- Vested already with that planet’s rays
- Which leadeth others right by every road.
- Then was the fear a little quieted
- That in my heart’s lake had endured throughout
- The night, which I had passed so piteously.
- And even as he, who, with distressful breath,
- Forth issued from the sea upon the shore,
- Turns to the water perilous and gazes;
- So did my soul, that still was fleeing onward,
- Turn itself back to re-behold the pass
- Which never yet a living person left.
- After my weary body I had rested,
- The way resumed I on the desert slope,
- So that the firm foot ever was the lower.
- And lo! almost where the ascent began,
- A panther light and swift exceedingly,
- Which with a spotted skin was covered o’er!
- And never moved she from before my face,
- Nay, rather did impede so much my way,
- That many times I to return had turned.
- The time was the beginning of the morning,
- And up the sun was mounting with those stars
- That with him were, what time the Love Divine
- At first in motion set those beauteous things;
- So were to me occasion of good hope,
- The variegated skin of that wild beast,
- The hour of time, and the delicious season;
- But not so much, that did not give me fear
- A lion’s aspect which appeared to me.
- He seemed as if against me he were coming
- With head uplifted, and with ravenous hunger,
- So that it seemed the air was afraid of him;
- And a she-wolf, that with all hungerings
- Seemed to be laden in her meagreness,
- And many folk has caused to live forlorn!
- She brought upon me so much heaviness,
- With the affright that from her aspect came,
- That I the hope relinquished of the height.
- And as he is who willingly acquires,
- And the time comes that causes him to lose,
- Who weeps in all his thoughts and is despondent,
- E’en such made me that beast withouten peace,
- Which, coming on against me by degrees
- Thrust me back thither where the sun is silent.
- While I was rushing downward to the lowland,
- Before mine eyes did one present himself,
- Who seemed from long-continued silence hoarse.
- When I beheld him in the desert vast,
- “Have pity on me,” unto him I cried,
- “Whiche’er thou art, or shade or real man!”
- He answered me: “Not man; man once I was,
- And both my parents were of Lombardy,
- And Mantuans by country both of them.
- ‘Sub Julio’ was I born, though it was late,
- And lived at Rome under the good Augustus,
- During the time of false and lying gods.
- A poet was I, and I sang that just
- Son of Anchises, who came forth from Troy,
- After that Ilion the superb was burned.
- But thou, why goest thou back to such annoyance?
- Why climb’st thou not the Mount Delectable,
- Which is the source and cause of every joy?”
- “Now, art thou that Virgilius and that fountain
- Which spreads abroad so wide a river of speech?”
- I made response to him with bashful forehead.
- “O, of the other poets honour and light,
- Avail me the long study and great love
- That have impelled me to explore thy volume!
- Thou art my master, and my author thou,
- Thou art alone the one from whom I took
- The beautiful style that has done honour to me.
- Behold the beast, for which I have turned back;
- Do thou protect me from her, famous Sage,
- For she doth make my veins and pulses tremble.”
- “Thee it behoves to take another road,”
- Responded he, when he beheld me weeping,
- “If from this savage place thou wouldst escape;
- Because this beast, at which thou criest out,
- Suffers not any one to pass her way,
- But so doth harass him, that she destroys him;
- And has a nature so malign and ruthless,
- That never doth she glut her greedy will,
- And after food is hungrier than before.
- Many the animals with whom she weds,
- And more they shall be still, until the Greyhound
- Comes, who shall make her perish in her pain.
- He shall not feed on either earth or pelf,
- But upon wisdom, and on love and virtue;
- ’Twixt Feltro and Feltro shall his nation be;
- Of that low Italy shall he be the saviour,
- On whose account the maid Camilla died,
- Euryalus, Turnus, Nisus, of their wounds;
- Through every city shall he hunt her down,
- Until he shall have driven her back to Hell,
- There from whence envy first did let her loose.
- Therefore I think and judge it for thy best
- Thou follow me, and I will be thy guide,
- And lead thee hence through the eternal place,
- Where thou shalt hear the desperate lamentations,
- Shalt see the ancient spirits disconsolate,
- Who cry out each one for the second death;
- And thou shalt see those who contented are
- Within the fire, because they hope to come,
- Whene’er it may be, to the blessed people;
- To whom, then, if thou wishest to ascend,
- A soul shall be for that than I more worthy;
- With her at my departure I will leave thee;
- Because that Emperor, who reigns above,
- In that I was rebellious to his law,
- Wills that through me none come into his city.
- He governs everywhere, and there he reigns;
- There is his city and his lofty throne;
- O happy he whom thereto he elects!”
- And I to him: “Poet, I thee entreat,
- By that same God whom thou didst never know,
- So that I may escape this woe and worse,
- Thou wouldst conduct me there where thou hast said,
- That I may see the portal of Saint Peter,
- And those thou makest so disconsolate.”
- Then he moved on, and I behind him followed.
- Inferno: Canto II
- Day was departing, and the embrowned air
- Released the animals that are on earth
- From their fatigues; and I the only one
- Made myself ready to sustain the war,
- Both of the way and likewise of the woe,
- Which memory that errs not shall retrace.
- O Muses, O high genius, now assist me!
- O memory, that didst write down what I saw,
- Here thy nobility shall be manifest!
- And I began: “Poet, who guidest me,
- Regard my manhood, if it be sufficient,
- Ere to the arduous pass thou dost confide me.
- Thou sayest, that of Silvius the parent,
- While yet corruptible, unto the world
- Immortal went, and was there bodily.
- But if the adversary of all evil
- Was courteous, thinking of the high effect
- That issue would from him, and who, and what,
- To men of intellect unmeet it seems not;
- For he was of great Rome, and of her empire
- In the empyreal heaven as father chosen;
- The which and what, wishing to speak the truth,
- Were stablished as the holy place, wherein
- Sits the successor of the greatest Peter.
- Upon this journey, whence thou givest him vaunt,
- Things did he hear, which the occasion were
- Both of his victory and the papal mantle.
- Thither went afterwards the Chosen Vessel,
- To bring back comfort thence unto that Faith,
- Which of salvation’s way is the beginning.
- But I, why thither come, or who concedes it?
- I not Aeneas am, I am not Paul,
- Nor I, nor others, think me worthy of it.
- Therefore, if I resign myself to come,
- I fear the coming may be ill-advised;
- Thou’rt wise, and knowest better than I speak.”
- And as he is, who unwills what he willed,
- And by new thoughts doth his intention change,
- So that from his design he quite withdraws,
- Such I became, upon that dark hillside,
- Because, in thinking, I consumed the emprise,
- Which was so very prompt in the beginning.
- “If I have well thy language understood,”
- Replied that shade of the Magnanimous,
- “Thy soul attainted is with cowardice,
- Which many times a man encumbers so,
- It turns him back from honoured enterprise,
- As false sight doth a beast, when he is shy.
- That thou mayst free thee from this apprehension,
- I’ll tell thee why I came, and what I heard
- At the first moment when I grieved for thee.
- Among those was I who are in suspense,
- And a fair, saintly Lady called to me
- In such wise, I besought her to command me.
- Her eyes where shining brighter than the Star;
- And she began to say, gentle and low,
- With voice angelical, in her own language:
- ‘O spirit courteous of Mantua,
- Of whom the fame still in the world endures,
- And shall endure, long-lasting as the world;
- A friend of mine, and not the friend of fortune,
- Upon the desert slope is so impeded
- Upon his way, that he has turned through terror,
- And may, I fear, already be so lost,
- That I too late have risen to his succour,
- From that which I have heard of him in Heaven.
- Bestir thee now, and with thy speech ornate,
- And with what needful is for his release,
- Assist him so, that I may be consoled.
- Beatrice am I, who do bid thee go;
- I come from there, where I would fain return;
- Love moved me, which compelleth me to speak.
- When I shall be in presence of my Lord,
- Full often will I praise thee unto him.’
- Then paused she, and thereafter I began:
- ‘O Lady of virtue, thou alone through whom
- The human race exceedeth all contained
- Within the heaven that has the lesser circles,
- So grateful unto me is thy commandment,
- To obey, if ’twere already done, were late;
- No farther need’st thou ope to me thy wish.
- But the cause tell me why thou dost not shun
- The here descending down into this centre,
- From the vast place thou burnest to return to.’
- ‘Since thou wouldst fain so inwardly discern,
- Briefly will I relate,’ she answered me,
- ‘Why I am not afraid to enter here.
- Of those things only should one be afraid
- Which have the power of doing others harm;
- Of the rest, no; because they are not fearful.
- God in his mercy such created me
- That misery of yours attains me not,
- Nor any flame assails me of this burning.
- A gentle Lady is in Heaven, who grieves
- At this impediment, to which I send thee,
- So that stern judgment there above is broken.
- In her entreaty she besought Lucia,
- And said, “Thy faithful one now stands in need
- Of thee, and unto thee I recommend him.”
- Lucia, foe of all that cruel is,
- Hastened away, and came unto the place
- Where I was sitting with the ancient Rachel.
- “Beatrice” said she, “the true praise of God,
- Why succourest thou not him, who loved thee so,
- For thee he issued from the vulgar herd?
- Dost thou not hear the pity of his plaint?
- Dost thou not see the death that combats him
- Beside that flood, where ocean has no vaunt?”
- Never were persons in the world so swift
- To work their weal and to escape their woe,
- As I, after such words as these were uttered,
- Came hither downward from my blessed seat,
- Confiding in thy dignified discourse,
- Which honours thee, and those who’ve listened to it.’
- After she thus had spoken unto me,
- Weeping, her shining eyes she turned away;
- Whereby she made me swifter in my coming;
- And unto thee I came, as she desired;
- I have delivered thee from that wild beast,
- Which barred the beautiful mountain’s short ascent.
- What is it, then? Why, why dost thou delay?
- Why is such baseness bedded in thy heart?
- Daring and hardihood why hast thou not,
- Seeing that three such Ladies benedight
- Are caring for thee in the court of Heaven,
- And so much good my speech doth promise thee?”
- Even as the flowerets, by nocturnal chill,
- Bowed down and closed, when the sun whitens them,
- Uplift themselves all open on their stems;
- Such I became with my exhausted strength,
- And such good courage to my heart there coursed,
- That I began, like an intrepid person:
- “O she compassionate, who succoured me,
- And courteous thou, who hast obeyed so soon
- The words of truth which she addressed to thee!
- Thou hast my heart so with desire disposed
- To the adventure, with these words of thine,
- That to my first intent I have returned.
- Now go, for one sole will is in us both,
- Thou Leader, and thou Lord, and Master thou.”
- Thus said I to him; and when he had moved,
- I entered on the deep and savage way.
- Inferno: Canto III
- “Through me the way is to the city dolent;
- Through me the way is to eternal dole;
- Through me the way among the people lost.
- Justice incited my sublime Creator;
- Created me divine Omnipotence,
- The highest Wisdom and the primal Love.
- Before me there were no created things,
- Only eterne, and I eternal last.
- All hope abandon, ye who enter in!”
- These words in sombre colour I beheld
- Written upon the summit of a gate;
- Whence I: “Their sense is, Master, hard to me!”
- And he to me, as one experienced:
- “Here all suspicion needs must be abandoned,
- All cowardice must needs be here extinct.
- We to the place have come, where I have told thee
- Thou shalt behold the people dolorous
- Who have foregone the good of intellect.”
- And after he had laid his hand on mine
- With joyful mien, whence I was comforted,
- He led me in among the secret things.
- There sighs, complaints, and ululations loud
- Resounded through the air without a star,
- Whence I, at the beginning, wept thereat.
- Languages diverse, horrible dialects,
- Accents of anger, words of agony,
- And voices high and hoarse, with sound of hands,
- Made up a tumult that goes whirling on
- For ever in that air for ever black,
- Even as the sand doth, when the whirlwind breathes.
- And I, who had my head with horror bound,
- Said: “Master, what is this which now I hear?
- What folk is this, which seems by pain so vanquished?”
- And he to me: “This miserable mode
- Maintain the melancholy souls of those
- Who lived withouten infamy or praise.
- Commingled are they with that caitiff choir
- Of Angels, who have not rebellious been,
- Nor faithful were to God, but were for self.
- The heavens expelled them, not to be less fair;
- Nor them the nethermore abyss receives,
- For glory none the damned would have from them.”
- And I: “O Master, what so grievous is
- To these, that maketh them lament so sore?”
- He answered: “I will tell thee very briefly.
- These have no longer any hope of death;
- And this blind life of theirs is so debased,
- They envious are of every other fate.
- No fame of them the world permits to be;
- Misericord and Justice both disdain them.
- Let us not speak of them, but look, and pass.”
- And I, who looked again, beheld a banner,
- Which, whirling round, ran on so rapidly,
- That of all pause it seemed to me indignant;
- And after it there came so long a train
- Of people, that I ne’er would have believed
- That ever Death so many had undone.
- When some among them I had recognised,
- I looked, and I beheld the shade of him
- Who made through cowardice the great refusal.
- Forthwith I comprehended, and was certain,
- That this the sect was of the caitiff wretches
- Hateful to God and to his enemies.
- These miscreants, who never were alive,
- Were naked, and were stung exceedingly
- By gadflies and by hornets that were there.
- These did their faces irrigate with blood,
- Which, with their tears commingled, at their feet
- By the disgusting worms was gathered up.
- And when to gazing farther I betook me.
- People I saw on a great river’s bank;
- Whence said I: “Master, now vouchsafe to me,
- That I may know who these are, and what law
- Makes them appear so ready to pass over,
- As I discern athwart the dusky light.”
- And he to me: “These things shall all be known
- To thee, as soon as we our footsteps stay
- Upon the dismal shore of Acheron.”
- Then with mine eyes ashamed and downward cast,
- Fearing my words might irksome be to him,
- From speech refrained I till we reached the river.
- And lo! towards us coming in a boat
- An old man, hoary with the hair of eld,
- Crying: “Woe unto you, ye souls depraved!
- Hope nevermore to look upon the heavens;
- I come to lead you to the other shore,
- To the eternal shades in heat and frost.
- And thou, that yonder standest, living soul,
- Withdraw thee from these people, who are dead!”
- But when he saw that I did not withdraw,
- He said: “By other ways, by other ports
- Thou to the shore shalt come, not here, for passage;
- A lighter vessel needs must carry thee.”
- And unto him the Guide: “Vex thee not, Charon;
- It is so willed there where is power to do
- That which is willed; and farther question not.”
- Thereat were quieted the fleecy cheeks
- Of him the ferryman of the livid fen,
- Who round about his eyes had wheels of flame.
- But all those souls who weary were and naked
- Their colour changed and gnashed their teeth together,
- As soon as they had heard those cruel words.
- God they blasphemed and their progenitors,
- The human race, the place, the time, the seed
- Of their engendering and of their birth!
- Thereafter all together they drew back,
- Bitterly weeping, to the accursed shore,
- Which waiteth every man who fears not God.
- Charon the demon, with the eyes of glede,
- Beckoning to them, collects them all together,
- Beats with his oar whoever lags behind.
- As in the autumn-time the leaves fall off,
- First one and then another, till the branch
- Unto the earth surrenders all its spoils;
- In similar wise the evil seed of Adam
- Throw themselves from that margin one by one,
- At signals, as a bird unto its lure.
- So they depart across the dusky wave,
- And ere upon the other side they land,
- Again on this side a new troop assembles.
- “My son,” the courteous Master said to me,
- “All those who perish in the wrath of God
- Here meet together out of every land;
- And ready are they to pass o’er the river,
- Because celestial Justice spurs them on,
- So that their fear is turned into desire.
- This way there never passes a good soul;
- And hence if Charon doth complain of thee,
- Well mayst thou know now what his speech imports.”
- This being finished, all the dusk champaign
- Trembled so violently, that of that terror
- The recollection bathes me still with sweat.
- The land of tears gave forth a blast of wind,
- And fulminated a vermilion light,
- Which overmastered in me every sense,
- And as a man whom sleep hath seized I fell.
- Inferno: Canto IV
- Broke the deep lethargy within my head
- A heavy thunder, so that I upstarted,
- Like to a person who by force is wakened;
- And round about I moved my rested eyes,
- Uprisen erect, and steadfastly I gazed,
- To recognise the place wherein I was.
- True is it, that upon the verge I found me
- Of the abysmal valley dolorous,
- That gathers thunder of infinite ululations.
- Obscure, profound it was, and nebulous,
- So that by fixing on its depths my sight
- Nothing whatever I discerned therein.
- “Let us descend now into the blind world,”
- Began the Poet, pallid utterly;
- “I will be first, and thou shalt second be.”
- And I, who of his colour was aware,
- Said: “How shall I come, if thou art afraid,
- Who’rt wont to be a comfort to my fears?”
- And he to me: “The anguish of the people
- Who are below here in my face depicts
- That pity which for terror thou hast taken.
- Let us go on, for the long way impels us.”
- Thus he went in, and thus he made me enter
- The foremost circle that surrounds the abyss.
- There, as it seemed to me from listening,
- Were lamentations none, but only sighs,
- That tremble made the everlasting air.
- And this arose from sorrow without torment,
- Which the crowds had, that many were and great,
- Of infants and of women and of men.
- To me the Master good: “Thou dost not ask
- What spirits these, which thou beholdest, are?
- Now will I have thee know, ere thou go farther,
- That they sinned not; and if they merit had,
- ’Tis not enough, because they had not baptism
- Which is the portal of the Faith thou holdest;
- And if they were before Christianity,
- In the right manner they adored not God;
- And among such as these am I myself.
- For such defects, and not for other guilt,
- Lost are we and are only so far punished,
- That without hope we live on in desire.”
- Great grief seized on my heart when this I heard,
- Because some people of much worthiness
- I knew, who in that Limbo were suspended.
- “Tell me, my Master, tell me, thou my Lord,”
- Began I, with desire of being certain
- Of that Faith which o’ercometh every error,
- “Came any one by his own merit hence,
- Or by another’s, who was blessed thereafter?”
- And he, who understood my covert speech,
- Replied: “I was a novice in this state,
- When I saw hither come a Mighty One,
- With sign of victory incoronate.
- Hence he drew forth the shade of the First Parent,
- And that of his son Abel, and of Noah,
- Of Moses the lawgiver, and the obedient
- Abraham, patriarch, and David, king,
- Israel with his father and his children,
- And Rachel, for whose sake he did so much,
- And others many, and he made them blessed;
- And thou must know, that earlier than these
- Never were any human spirits saved.”
- We ceased not to advance because he spake,
- But still were passing onward through the forest,
- The forest, say I, of thick-crowded ghosts.
- Not very far as yet our way had gone
- This side the summit, when I saw a fire
- That overcame a hemisphere of darkness.
- We were a little distant from it still,
- But not so far that I in part discerned not
- That honourable people held that place.
- “O thou who honourest every art and science,
- Who may these be, which such great honour have,
- That from the fashion of the rest it parts them?”
- And he to me: “The honourable name,
- That sounds of them above there in thy life,
- Wins grace in Heaven, that so advances them.”
- In the mean time a voice was heard by me:
- “All honour be to the pre-eminent Poet;
- His shade returns again, that was departed.”
- After the voice had ceased and quiet was,
- Four mighty shades I saw approaching us;
- Semblance had they nor sorrowful nor glad.
- To say to me began my gracious Master:
- “Him with that falchion in his hand behold,
- Who comes before the three, even as their lord.
- That one is Homer, Poet sovereign;
- He who comes next is Horace, the satirist;
- The third is Ovid, and the last is Lucan.
- Because to each of these with me applies
- The name that solitary voice proclaimed,
- They do me honour, and in that do well.”
- Thus I beheld assemble the fair school
- Of that lord of the song pre-eminent,
- Who o’er the others like an eagle soars.
- When they together had discoursed somewhat,
- They turned to me with signs of salutation,
- And on beholding this, my Master smiled;
- And more of honour still, much more, they did me,
- In that they made me one of their own band;
- So that the sixth was I, ’mid so much wit.
- Thus we went on as far as to the light,
- Things saying ’tis becoming to keep silent,
- As was the saying of them where I was.
- We came unto a noble castle’s foot,
- Seven times encompassed with lofty walls,
- Defended round by a fair rivulet;
- This we passed over even as firm ground;
- Through portals seven I entered with these Sages;
- We came into a meadow of fresh verdure.
- People were there with solemn eyes and slow,
- Of great authority in their countenance;
- They spake but seldom, and with gentle voices.
- Thus we withdrew ourselves upon one side
- Into an opening luminous and lofty,
- So that they all of them were visible.
- There opposite, upon the green enamel,
- Were pointed out to me the mighty spirits,
- Whom to have seen I feel myself exalted.
- I saw Electra with companions many,
- ’Mongst whom I knew both Hector and Aeneas,
- Caesar in armour with gerfalcon eyes;
- I saw Camilla and Penthesilea
- On the other side, and saw the King Latinus,
- Who with Lavinia his daughter sat;
- I saw that Brutus who drove Tarquin forth,
- Lucretia, Julia, Marcia, and Cornelia,
- And saw alone, apart, the Saladin.
- When I had lifted up my brows a little,
- The Master I beheld of those who know,
- Sit with his philosophic family.
- All gaze upon him, and all do him honour.
- There I beheld both Socrates and Plato,
- Who nearer him before the others stand;
- Democritus, who puts the world on chance,
- Diogenes, Anaxagoras, and Thales,
- Zeno, Empedocles, and Heraclitus;
- Of qualities I saw the good collector,
- Hight Dioscorides; and Orpheus saw I,
- Tully and Livy, and moral Seneca,
- Euclid, geometrician, and Ptolemy,
- Galen, Hippocrates, and Avicenna,
- Averroes, who the great Comment made.
- I cannot all of them pourtray in full,
- Because so drives me onward the long theme,
- That many times the word comes short of fact.
- The sixfold company in two divides;
- Another way my sapient Guide conducts me
- Forth from the quiet to the air that trembles;
- And to a place I come where nothing shines.
- Inferno: Canto V
- Thus I descended out of the first circle
- Down to the second, that less space begirds,
- And so much greater dole, that goads to wailing.
- There standeth Minos horribly, and snarls;
- Examines the transgressions at the entrance;
- Judges, and sends according as he girds him.
- I say, that when the spirit evil-born
- Cometh before him, wholly it confesses;
- And this discriminator of transgressions
- Seeth what place in Hell is meet for it;
- Girds himself with his tail as many times
- As grades he wishes it should be thrust down.
- Always before him many of them stand;
- They go by turns each one unto the judgment;
- They speak, and hear, and then are downward hurled.
- “O thou, that to this dolorous hostelry
- Comest,” said Minos to me, when he saw me,
- Leaving the practice of so great an office,
- “Look how thou enterest, and in whom thou trustest;
- Let not the portal’s amplitude deceive thee.”
- And unto him my Guide: “Why criest thou too?
- Do not impede his journey fate-ordained;
- It is so willed there where is power to do
- That which is willed; and ask no further question.”
- And now begin the dolesome notes to grow
- Audible unto me; now am I come
- There where much lamentation strikes upon me.
- I came into a place mute of all light,
- Which bellows as the sea does in a tempest,
- If by opposing winds ’t is combated.
- The infernal hurricane that never rests
- Hurtles the spirits onward in its rapine;
- Whirling them round, and smiting, it molests them.
- When they arrive before the precipice,
- There are the shrieks, the plaints, and the laments,
- There they blaspheme the puissance divine.
- I understood that unto such a torment
- The carnal malefactors were condemned,
- Who reason subjugate to appetite.
- And as the wings of starlings bear them on
- In the cold season in large band and full,
- So doth that blast the spirits maledict;
- It hither, thither, downward, upward, drives them;
- No hope doth comfort them for evermore,
- Not of repose, but even of lesser pain.
- And as the cranes go chanting forth their lays,
- Making in air a long line of themselves,
- So saw I coming, uttering lamentations,
- Shadows borne onward by the aforesaid stress.
- Whereupon said I: “Master, who are those
- People, whom the black air so castigates?”
- “The first of those, of whom intelligence
- Thou fain wouldst have,” then said he unto me,
- “The empress was of many languages.
- To sensual vices she was so abandoned,
- That lustful she made licit in her law,
- To remove the blame to which she had been led.
- She is Semiramis, of whom we read
- That she succeeded Ninus, and was his spouse;
- She held the land which now the Sultan rules.
- The next is she who killed herself for love,
- And broke faith with the ashes of Sichaeus;
- Then Cleopatra the voluptuous.”
- Helen I saw, for whom so many ruthless
- Seasons revolved; and saw the great Achilles,
- Who at the last hour combated with Love.
- Paris I saw, Tristan; and more than a thousand
- Shades did he name and point out with his finger,
- Whom Love had separated from our life.
- After that I had listened to my Teacher,
- Naming the dames of eld and cavaliers,
- Pity prevailed, and I was nigh bewildered.
- And I began: “O Poet, willingly
- Speak would I to those two, who go together,
- And seem upon the wind to be so light.”
- And, he to me: “Thou’lt mark, when they shall be
- Nearer to us; and then do thou implore them
- By love which leadeth them, and they will come.”
- Soon as the wind in our direction sways them,
- My voice uplift I: “O ye weary souls!
- Come speak to us, if no one interdicts it.”
- As turtle-doves, called onward by desire,
- With open and steady wings to the sweet nest
- Fly through the air by their volition borne,
- So came they from the band where Dido is,
- Approaching us athwart the air malign,
- So strong was the affectionate appeal.
- “O living creature gracious and benignant,
- Who visiting goest through the purple air
- Us, who have stained the world incarnadine,
- If were the King of the Universe our friend,
- We would pray unto him to give thee peace,
- Since thou hast pity on our woe perverse.
- Of what it pleases thee to hear and speak,
- That will we hear, and we will speak to you,
- While silent is the wind, as it is now.
- Sitteth the city, wherein I was born,
- Upon the sea-shore where the Po descends
- To rest in peace with all his retinue.
- Love, that on gentle heart doth swiftly seize,
- Seized this man for the person beautiful
- That was ta’en from me, and still the mode offends me.
- Love, that exempts no one beloved from loving,
- Seized me with pleasure of this man so strongly,
- That, as thou seest, it doth not yet desert me;
- Love has conducted us unto one death;
- Caina waiteth him who quenched our life!”
- These words were borne along from them to us.
- As soon as I had heard those souls tormented,
- I bowed my face, and so long held it down
- Until the Poet said to me: “What thinkest?”
- When I made answer, I began: “Alas!
- How many pleasant thoughts, how much desire,
- Conducted these unto the dolorous pass!”
- Then unto them I turned me, and I spake,
- And I began: “Thine agonies, Francesca,
- Sad and compassionate to weeping make me.
- But tell me, at the time of those sweet sighs,
- By what and in what manner Love conceded,
- That you should know your dubious desires?”
- And she to me: “There is no greater sorrow
- Than to be mindful of the happy time
- In misery, and that thy Teacher knows.
- But, if to recognise the earliest root
- Of love in us thou hast so great desire,
- I will do even as he who weeps and speaks.
- One day we reading were for our delight
- Of Launcelot, how Love did him enthral.
- Alone we were and without any fear.
- Full many a time our eyes together drew
- That reading, and drove the colour from our faces;
- But one point only was it that o’ercame us.
- When as we read of the much-longed-for smile
- Being by such a noble lover kissed,
- This one, who ne’er from me shall be divided,
- Kissed me upon the mouth all palpitating.
- Galeotto was the book and he who wrote it.
- That day no farther did we read therein.”
- And all the while one spirit uttered this,
- The other one did weep so, that, for pity,
- I swooned away as if I had been dying,
- And fell, even as a dead body falls.
- Inferno: Canto VI
- At the return of consciousness, that closed
- Before the pity of those two relations,
- Which utterly with sadness had confused me,
- New torments I behold, and new tormented
- Around me, whichsoever way I move,
- And whichsoever way I turn, and gaze.
- In the third circle am I of the rain
- Eternal, maledict, and cold, and heavy;
- Its law and quality are never new.
- Huge hail, and water sombre-hued, and snow,
- Athwart the tenebrous air pour down amain;
- Noisome the earth is, that receiveth this.
- Cerberus, monster cruel and uncouth,
- With his three gullets like a dog is barking
- Over the people that are there submerged.
- Red eyes he has, and unctuous beard and black,
- And belly large, and armed with claws his hands;
- He rends the spirits, flays, and quarters them.
- Howl the rain maketh them like unto dogs;
- One side they make a shelter for the other;
- Oft turn themselves the wretched reprobates.
- When Cerberus perceived us, the great worm!
- His mouths he opened, and displayed his tusks;
- Not a limb had he that was motionless.
- And my Conductor, with his spans extended,
- Took of the earth, and with his fists well filled,
- He threw it into those rapacious gullets.
- Such as that dog is, who by barking craves,
- And quiet grows soon as his food he gnaws,
- For to devour it he but thinks and struggles,
- The like became those muzzles filth-begrimed
- Of Cerberus the demon, who so thunders
- Over the souls that they would fain be deaf.
- We passed across the shadows, which subdues
- The heavy rain-storm, and we placed our feet
- Upon their vanity that person seems.
- They all were lying prone upon the earth,
- Excepting one, who sat upright as soon
- As he beheld us passing on before him.
- “O thou that art conducted through this Hell,”
- He said to me, “recall me, if thou canst;
- Thyself wast made before I was unmade.”
- And I to him: “The anguish which thou hast
- Perhaps doth draw thee out of my remembrance,
- So that it seems not I have ever seen thee.
- But tell me who thou art, that in so doleful
- A place art put, and in such punishment,
- If some are greater, none is so displeasing.”
- And he to me: “Thy city, which is full
- Of envy so that now the sack runs over,
- Held me within it in the life serene.
- You citizens were wont to call me Ciacco;
- For the pernicious sin of gluttony
- I, as thou seest, am battered by this rain.
- And I, sad soul, am not the only one,
- For all these suffer the like penalty
- For the like sin;” and word no more spake he.
- I answered him: “Ciacco, thy wretchedness
- Weighs on me so that it to weep invites me;
- But tell me, if thou knowest, to what shall come
- The citizens of the divided city;
- If any there be just; and the occasion
- Tell me why so much discord has assailed it.”
- And he to me: “They, after long contention,
- Will come to bloodshed; and the rustic party
- Will drive the other out with much offence.
- Then afterwards behoves it this one fall
- Within three suns, and rise again the other
- By force of him who now is on the coast.
- High will it hold its forehead a long while,
- Keeping the other under heavy burdens,
- Howe’er it weeps thereat and is indignant.
- The just are two, and are not understood there;
- Envy and Arrogance and Avarice
- Are the three sparks that have all hearts enkindled.”
- Here ended he his tearful utterance;
- And I to him: “I wish thee still to teach me,
- And make a gift to me of further speech.
- Farinata and Tegghiaio, once so worthy,
- Jacopo Rusticucci, Arrigo, and Mosca,
- And others who on good deeds set their thoughts,
- Say where they are, and cause that I may know them;
- For great desire constraineth me to learn
- If Heaven doth sweeten them, or Hell envenom.”
- And he: “They are among the blacker souls;
- A different sin downweighs them to the bottom;
- If thou so far descendest, thou canst see them.
- But when thou art again in the sweet world,
- I pray thee to the mind of others bring me;
- No more I tell thee and no more I answer.”
- Then his straightforward eyes he turned askance,
- Eyed me a little, and then bowed his head;
- He fell therewith prone like the other blind.
- And the Guide said to me: “He wakes no more
- This side the sound of the angelic trumpet;
- When shall approach the hostile Potentate,
- Each one shall find again his dismal tomb,
- Shall reassume his flesh and his own figure,
- Shall hear what through eternity re-echoes.”
- So we passed onward o’er the filthy mixture
- Of shadows and of rain with footsteps slow,
- Touching a little on the future life.
- Wherefore I said: “Master, these torments here,
- Will they increase after the mighty sentence,
- Or lesser be, or will they be as burning?”
- And he to me: “Return unto thy science,
- Which wills, that as the thing more perfect is,
- The more it feels of pleasure and of pain.
- Albeit that this people maledict
- To true perfection never can attain,
- Hereafter more than now they look to be.”
- Round in a circle by that road we went,
- Speaking much more, which I do not repeat;
- We came unto the point where the descent is;
- There we found Plutus the great enemy.
- Inferno: Canto VII
- “Pape Satan, Pape Satan, Aleppe!”
- Thus Plutus with his clucking voice began;
- And that benignant Sage, who all things knew,
- Said, to encourage me: “Let not thy fear
- Harm thee; for any power that he may have
- Shall not prevent thy going down this crag.”
- Then he turned round unto that bloated lip,
- And said: “Be silent, thou accursed wolf;
- Consume within thyself with thine own rage.
- Not causeless is this journey to the abyss;
- Thus is it willed on high, where Michael wrought
- Vengeance upon the proud adultery.”
- Even as the sails inflated by the wind
- Involved together fall when snaps the mast,
- So fell the cruel monster to the earth.
- Thus we descended into the fourth chasm,
- Gaining still farther on the dolesome shore
- Which all the woe of the universe insacks.
- Justice of God, ah! who heaps up so many
- New toils and sufferings as I beheld?
- And why doth our transgression waste us so?
- As doth the billow there upon Charybdis,
- That breaks itself on that which it encounters,
- So here the folk must dance their roundelay.
- Here saw I people, more than elsewhere, many,
- On one side and the other, with great howls,
- Rolling weights forward by main force of chest.
- They clashed together, and then at that point
- Each one turned backward, rolling retrograde,
- Crying, “Why keepest?” and, “Why squanderest thou?”
- Thus they returned along the lurid circle
- On either hand unto the opposite point,
- Shouting their shameful metre evermore.
- Then each, when he arrived there, wheeled about
- Through his half-circle to another joust;
- And I, who had my heart pierced as it were,
- Exclaimed: “My Master, now declare to me
- What people these are, and if all were clerks,
- These shaven crowns upon the left of us.”
- And he to me: “All of them were asquint
- In intellect in the first life, so much
- That there with measure they no spending made.
- Clearly enough their voices bark it forth,
- Whene’er they reach the two points of the circle,
- Where sunders them the opposite defect.
- Clerks those were who no hairy covering
- Have on the head, and Popes and Cardinals,
- In whom doth Avarice practise its excess.”
- And I: “My Master, among such as these
- I ought forsooth to recognise some few,
- Who were infected with these maladies.”
- And he to me: “Vain thought thou entertainest;
- The undiscerning life which made them sordid
- Now makes them unto all discernment dim.
- Forever shall they come to these two buttings;
- These from the sepulchre shall rise again
- With the fist closed, and these with tresses shorn.
- Ill giving and ill keeping the fair world
- Have ta’en from them, and placed them in this scuffle;
- Whate’er it be, no words adorn I for it.
- Now canst thou, Son, behold the transient farce
- Of goods that are committed unto Fortune,
- For which the human race each other buffet;
- For all the gold that is beneath the moon,
- Or ever has been, of these weary souls
- Could never make a single one repose.”
- “Master,” I said to him, “now tell me also
- What is this Fortune which thou speakest of,
- That has the world’s goods so within its clutches?”
- And he to me: “O creatures imbecile,
- What ignorance is this which doth beset you?
- Now will I have thee learn my judgment of her.
- He whose omniscience everything transcends
- The heavens created, and gave who should guide them,
- That every part to every part may shine,
- Distributing the light in equal measure;
- He in like manner to the mundane splendours
- Ordained a general ministress and guide,
- That she might change at times the empty treasures
- From race to race, from one blood to another,
- Beyond resistance of all human wisdom.
- Therefore one people triumphs, and another
- Languishes, in pursuance of her judgment,
- Which hidden is, as in the grass a serpent.
- Your knowledge has no counterstand against her;
- She makes provision, judges, and pursues
- Her governance, as theirs the other gods.
- Her permutations have not any truce;
- Necessity makes her precipitate,
- So often cometh who his turn obtains.
- And this is she who is so crucified
- Even by those who ought to give her praise,
- Giving her blame amiss, and bad repute.
- But she is blissful, and she hears it not;
- Among the other primal creatures gladsome
- She turns her sphere, and blissful she rejoices.
- Let us descend now unto greater woe;
- Already sinks each star that was ascending
- When I set out, and loitering is forbidden.”
- We crossed the circle to the other bank,
- Near to a fount that boils, and pours itself
- Along a gully that runs out of it.
- The water was more sombre far than perse;
- And we, in company with the dusky waves,
- Made entrance downward by a path uncouth.
- A marsh it makes, which has the name of Styx,
- This tristful brooklet, when it has descended
- Down to the foot of the malign gray shores.
- And I, who stood intent upon beholding,
- Saw people mud-besprent in that lagoon,
- All of them naked and with angry look.
- They smote each other not alone with hands,
- But with the head and with the breast and feet,
- Tearing each other piecemeal with their teeth.
- Said the good Master: “Son, thou now beholdest
- The souls of those whom anger overcame;
- And likewise I would have thee know for certain
- Beneath the water people are who sigh
- And make this water bubble at the surface,
- As the eye tells thee wheresoe’er it turns.
- Fixed in the mire they say, ‘We sullen were
- In the sweet air, which by the sun is gladdened,
- Bearing within ourselves the sluggish reek;
- Now we are sullen in this sable mire.’
- This hymn do they keep gurgling in their throats,
- For with unbroken words they cannot say it.”
- Thus we went circling round the filthy fen
- A great arc ’twixt the dry bank and the swamp,
- With eyes turned unto those who gorge the mire;
- Unto the foot of a tower we came at last.
- Inferno: Canto VIII
- I say, continuing, that long before
- We to the foot of that high tower had come,
- Our eyes went upward to the summit of it,
- By reason of two flamelets we saw placed there,
- And from afar another answer them,
- So far, that hardly could the eye attain it.
- And, to the sea of all discernment turned,
- I said: “What sayeth this, and what respondeth
- That other fire? and who are they that made it?”
- And he to me: “Across the turbid waves
- What is expected thou canst now discern,
- If reek of the morass conceal it not.”
- Cord never shot an arrow from itself
- That sped away athwart the air so swift,
- As I beheld a very little boat
- Come o’er the water tow’rds us at that moment,
- Under the guidance of a single pilot,
- Who shouted, “Now art thou arrived, fell soul?”
- “Phlegyas, Phlegyas, thou criest out in vain
- For this once,” said my Lord; “thou shalt not have us
- Longer than in the passing of the slough.”
- As he who listens to some great deceit
- That has been done to him, and then resents it,
- Such became Phlegyas, in his gathered wrath.
- My Guide descended down into the boat,
- And then he made me enter after him,
- And only when I entered seemed it laden.
- Soon as the Guide and I were in the boat,
- The antique prow goes on its way, dividing
- More of the water than ’tis wont with others.
- While we were running through the dead canal,
- Uprose in front of me one full of mire,
- And said, “Who ’rt thou that comest ere the hour?”
- And I to him: “Although I come, I stay not;
- But who art thou that hast become so squalid?”
- “Thou seest that I am one who weeps,” he answered.
- And I to him: “With weeping and with wailing,
- Thou spirit maledict, do thou remain;
- For thee I know, though thou art all defiled.”
- Then stretched he both his hands unto the boat;
- Whereat my wary Master thrust him back,
- Saying, “Away there with the other dogs!”
- Thereafter with his arms he clasped my neck;
- He kissed my face, and said: “Disdainful soul,
- Blessed be she who bore thee in her bosom.
- That was an arrogant person in the world;
- Goodness is none, that decks his memory;
- So likewise here his shade is furious.
- How many are esteemed great kings up there,
- Who here shall be like unto swine in mire,
- Leaving behind them horrible dispraises!”
- And I: “My Master, much should I be pleased,
- If I could see him soused into this broth,
- Before we issue forth out of the lake.”
- And he to me: “Ere unto thee the shore
- Reveal itself, thou shalt be satisfied;
- Such a desire ’tis meet thou shouldst enjoy.”
- A little after that, I saw such havoc
- Made of him by the people of the mire,
- That still I praise and thank my God for it.
- They all were shouting, “At Philippo Argenti!”
- And that exasperate spirit Florentine
- Turned round upon himself with his own teeth.
- We left him there, and more of him I tell not;
- But on mine ears there smote a lamentation,
- Whence forward I intent unbar mine eyes.
- And the good Master said: “Even now, my Son,
- The city draweth near whose name is Dis,
- With the grave citizens, with the great throng.”
- And I: “Its mosques already, Master, clearly
- Within there in the valley I discern
- Vermilion, as if issuing from the fire
- They were.” And he to me: “The fire eternal
- That kindles them within makes them look red,
- As thou beholdest in this nether Hell.”
- Then we arrived within the moats profound,
- That circumvallate that disconsolate city;
- The walls appeared to me to be of iron.
- Not without making first a circuit wide,
- We came unto a place where loud the pilot
- Cried out to us, “Debark, here is the entrance.”
- More than a thousand at the gates I saw
- Out of the Heavens rained down, who angrily
- Were saying, “Who is this that without death
- Goes through the kingdom of the people dead?”
- And my sagacious Master made a sign
- Of wishing secretly to speak with them.
- A little then they quelled their great disdain,
- And said: “Come thou alone, and he begone
- Who has so boldly entered these dominions.
- Let him return alone by his mad road;
- Try, if he can; for thou shalt here remain,
- Who hast escorted him through such dark regions.”
- Think, Reader, if I was discomforted
- At utterance of the accursed words;
- For never to return here I believed.
- “O my dear Guide, who more than seven times
- Hast rendered me security, and drawn me
- From imminent peril that before me stood,
- Do not desert me,” said I, “thus undone;
- And if the going farther be denied us,
- Let us retrace our steps together swiftly.”
- And that Lord, who had led me thitherward,
- Said unto me: “Fear not; because our passage
- None can take from us, it by Such is given.
- But here await me, and thy weary spirit
- Comfort and nourish with a better hope;
- For in this nether world I will not leave thee.”
- So onward goes and there abandons me
- My Father sweet, and I remain in doubt,
- For No and Yes within my head contend.
- I could not hear what he proposed to them;
- But with them there he did not linger long,
- Ere each within in rivalry ran back.
- They closed the portals, those our adversaries,
- On my Lord’s breast, who had remained without
- And turned to me with footsteps far between.
- His eyes cast down, his forehead shorn had he
- Of all its boldness, and he said, with sighs,
- “Who has denied to me the dolesome houses?”
- And unto me: “Thou, because I am angry,
- Fear not, for I will conquer in the trial,
- Whatever for defence within be planned.
- This arrogance of theirs is nothing new;
- For once they used it at less secret gate,
- Which finds itself without a fastening still.
- O’er it didst thou behold the dead inscription;
- And now this side of it descends the steep,
- Passing across the circles without escort,
- One by whose means the city shall be opened.”
- Inferno: Canto IX
- That hue which cowardice brought out on me,
- Beholding my Conductor backward turn,
- Sooner repressed within him his new colour.
- He stopped attentive, like a man who listens,
- Because the eye could not conduct him far
- Through the black air, and through the heavy fog.
- “Still it behoveth us to win the fight,”
- Began he; “Else. . .Such offered us herself. . .
- O how I long that some one here arrive!”
- Well I perceived, as soon as the beginning
- He covered up with what came afterward,
- That they were words quite different from the first;
- But none the less his saying gave me fear,
- Because I carried out the broken phrase,
- Perhaps to a worse meaning than he had.
- “Into this bottom of the doleful conch
- Doth any e’er descend from the first grade,
- Which for its pain has only hope cut off?”
- This question put I; and he answered me:
- “Seldom it comes to pass that one of us
- Maketh the journey upon which I go.
- True is it, once before I here below
- Was conjured by that pitiless Erictho,
- Who summoned back the shades unto their bodies.
- Naked of me short while the flesh had been,
- Before within that wall she made me enter,
- To bring a spirit from the circle of Judas;
- That is the lowest region and the darkest,
- And farthest from the heaven which circles all.
- Well know I the way; therefore be reassured.
- This fen, which a prodigious stench exhales,
- Encompasses about the city dolent,
- Where now we cannot enter without anger.”
- And more he said, but not in mind I have it;
- Because mine eye had altogether drawn me
- Tow’rds the high tower with the red-flaming summit,
- Where in a moment saw I swift uprisen
- The three infernal Furies stained with blood,
- Who had the limbs of women and their mien,
- And with the greenest hydras were begirt;
- Small serpents and cerastes were their tresses,
- Wherewith their horrid temples were entwined.
- And he who well the handmaids of the Queen
- Of everlasting lamentation knew,
- Said unto me: “Behold the fierce Erinnys.
- This is Megaera, on the left-hand side;
- She who is weeping on the right, Alecto;
- Tisiphone is between;” and then was silent.
- Each one her breast was rending with her nails;
- They beat them with their palms, and cried so loud,
- That I for dread pressed close unto the Poet.
- “Medusa come, so we to stone will change him!”
- All shouted looking down; “in evil hour
- Avenged we not on Theseus his assault!”
- “Turn thyself round, and keep thine eyes close shut,
- For if the Gorgon appear, and thou shouldst see it,
- No more returning upward would there be.”
- Thus said the Master; and he turned me round
- Himself, and trusted not unto my hands
- So far as not to blind me with his own.
- O ye who have undistempered intellects,
- Observe the doctrine that conceals itself
- Beneath the veil of the mysterious verses!
- And now there came across the turbid waves
- The clangour of a sound with terror fraught,
- Because of which both of the margins trembled;
- Not otherwise it was than of a wind
- Impetuous on account of adverse heats,
- That smites the forest, and, without restraint,
- The branches rends, beats down, and bears away;
- Right onward, laden with dust, it goes superb,
- And puts to flight the wild beasts and the shepherds.
- Mine eyes he loosed, and said: “Direct the nerve
- Of vision now along that ancient foam,
- There yonder where that smoke is most intense.”
- Even as the frogs before the hostile serpent
- Across the water scatter all abroad,
- Until each one is huddled in the earth.
- More than a thousand ruined souls I saw,
- Thus fleeing from before one who on foot
- Was passing o’er the Styx with soles unwet.
- From off his face he fanned that unctuous air,
- Waving his left hand oft in front of him,
- And only with that anguish seemed he weary.
- Well I perceived one sent from Heaven was he,
- And to the Master turned; and he made sign
- That I should quiet stand, and bow before him.
- Ah! how disdainful he appeared to me!
- He reached the gate, and with a little rod
- He opened it, for there was no resistance.
- “O banished out of Heaven, people despised!”
- Thus he began upon the horrid threshold;
- “Whence is this arrogance within you couched?
- Wherefore recalcitrate against that will,
- From which the end can never be cut off,
- And which has many times increased your pain?
- What helpeth it to butt against the fates?
- Your Cerberus, if you remember well,
- For that still bears his chin and gullet peeled.”
- Then he returned along the miry road,
- And spake no word to us, but had the look
- Of one whom other care constrains and goads
- Than that of him who in his presence is;
- And we our feet directed tow’rds the city,
- After those holy words all confident.
- Within we entered without any contest;
- And I, who inclination had to see
- What the condition such a fortress holds,
- Soon as I was within, cast round mine eye,
- And see on every hand an ample plain,
- Full of distress and torment terrible.
- Even as at Arles, where stagnant grows the Rhone,
- Even as at Pola near to the Quarnaro,
- That shuts in Italy and bathes its borders,
- The sepulchres make all the place uneven;
- So likewise did they there on every side,
- Saving that there the manner was more bitter;
- For flames between the sepulchres were scattered,
- By which they so intensely heated were,
- That iron more so asks not any art.
- All of their coverings uplifted were,
- And from them issued forth such dire laments,
- Sooth seemed they of the wretched and tormented.
- And I: “My Master, what are all those people
- Who, having sepulture within those tombs,
- Make themselves audible by doleful sighs?”
- And he to me: “Here are the Heresiarchs,
- With their disciples of all sects, and much
- More than thou thinkest laden are the tombs.
- Here like together with its like is buried;
- And more and less the monuments are heated.”
- And when he to the right had turned, we passed
- Between the torments and high parapets.
- Inferno: Canto X
- Now onward goes, along a narrow path
- Between the torments and the city wall,
- My Master, and I follow at his back.
- “O power supreme, that through these impious circles
- Turnest me,” I began, “as pleases thee,
- Speak to me, and my longings satisfy;
- The people who are lying in these tombs,
- Might they be seen? already are uplifted
- The covers all, and no one keepeth guard.”
- And he to me: “They all will be closed up
- When from Jehoshaphat they shall return
- Here with the bodies they have left above.
- Their cemetery have upon this side
- With Epicurus all his followers,
- Who with the body mortal make the soul;
- But in the question thou dost put to me,
- Within here shalt thou soon be satisfied,
- And likewise in the wish thou keepest silent.”
- And I: “Good Leader, I but keep concealed
- From thee my heart, that I may speak the less,
- Nor only now hast thou thereto disposed me.”
- “O Tuscan, thou who through the city of fire
- Goest alive, thus speaking modestly,
- Be pleased to stay thy footsteps in this place.
- Thy mode of speaking makes thee manifest
- A native of that noble fatherland,
- To which perhaps I too molestful was.”
- Upon a sudden issued forth this sound
- From out one of the tombs; wherefore I pressed,
- Fearing, a little nearer to my Leader.
- And unto me he said: “Turn thee; what dost thou?
- Behold there Farinata who has risen;
- From the waist upwards wholly shalt thou see him.”
- I had already fixed mine eyes on his,
- And he uprose erect with breast and front
- E’en as if Hell he had in great despite.
- And with courageous hands and prompt my Leader
- Thrust me between the sepulchres towards him,
- Exclaiming, “Let thy words explicit be.”
- As soon as I was at the foot of his tomb
- Somewhat he eyed me, and, as if disdainful,
- Then asked of me, “Who were thine ancestors?”
- I, who desirous of obeying was,
- Concealed it not, but all revealed to him;
- Whereat he raised his brows a little upward.
- Then said he: “Fiercely adverse have they been
- To me, and to my fathers, and my party;
- So that two several times I scattered them.”
- “If they were banished, they returned on all sides,”
- I answered him, “the first time and the second;
- But yours have not acquired that art aright.”
- Then there uprose upon the sight, uncovered
- Down to the chin, a shadow at his side;
- I think that he had risen on his knees.
- Round me he gazed, as if solicitude
- He had to see if some one else were with me,
- But after his suspicion was all spent,
- Weeping, he said to me: “If through this blind
- Prison thou goest by loftiness of genius,
- Where is my son? and why is he not with thee?”
- And I to him: “I come not of myself;
- He who is waiting yonder leads me here,
- Whom in disdain perhaps your Guido had.”
- His language and the mode of punishment
- Already unto me had read his name;
- On that account my answer was so full.
- Up starting suddenly, he cried out: “How
- Saidst thou,—he had? Is he not still alive?
- Does not the sweet light strike upon his eyes?”
- When he became aware of some delay,
- Which I before my answer made, supine
- He fell again, and forth appeared no more.
- But the other, magnanimous, at whose desire
- I had remained, did not his aspect change,
- Neither his neck he moved, nor bent his side.
- “And if,” continuing his first discourse,
- “They have that art,” he said, “not learned aright,
- That more tormenteth me, than doth this bed.
- But fifty times shall not rekindled be
- The countenance of the Lady who reigns here,
- Ere thou shalt know how heavy is that art;
- And as thou wouldst to the sweet world return,
- Say why that people is so pitiless
- Against my race in each one of its laws?”
- Whence I to him: “The slaughter and great carnage
- Which have with crimson stained the Arbia, cause
- Such orisons in our temple to be made.”
- After his head he with a sigh had shaken,
- “There I was not alone,” he said, “nor surely
- Without a cause had with the others moved.
- But there I was alone, where every one
- Consented to the laying waste of Florence,
- He who defended her with open face.”
- “Ah! so hereafter may your seed repose,”
- I him entreated, “solve for me that knot,
- Which has entangled my conceptions here.
- It seems that you can see, if I hear rightly,
- Beforehand whatsoe’er time brings with it,
- And in the present have another mode.”
- “We see, like those who have imperfect sight,
- The things,” he said, “that distant are from us;
- So much still shines on us the Sovereign Ruler.
- When they draw near, or are, is wholly vain
- Our intellect, and if none brings it to us,
- Not anything know we of your human state.
- Hence thou canst understand, that wholly dead
- Will be our knowledge from the moment when
- The portal of the future shall be closed.”
- Then I, as if compunctious for my fault,
- Said: “Now, then, you will tell that fallen one,
- That still his son is with the living joined.
- And if just now, in answering, I was dumb,
- Tell him I did it because I was thinking
- Already of the error you have solved me.”
- And now my Master was recalling me,
- Wherefore more eagerly I prayed the spirit
- That he would tell me who was with him there.
- He said: “With more than a thousand here I lie;
- Within here is the second Frederick,
- And the Cardinal, and of the rest I speak not.”
- Thereon he hid himself; and I towards
- The ancient poet turned my steps, reflecting
- Upon that saying, which seemed hostile to me.
- He moved along; and afterward thus going,
- He said to me, “Why art thou so bewildered?”
- And I in his inquiry satisfied him.
- “Let memory preserve what thou hast heard
- Against thyself,” that Sage commanded me,
- “And now attend here;” and he raised his finger.
- “When thou shalt be before the radiance sweet
- Of her whose beauteous eyes all things behold,
- From her thou’lt know the journey of thy life.”
- Unto the left hand then he turned his feet;
- We left the wall, and went towards the middle,
- Along a path that strikes into a valley,
- Which even up there unpleasant made its stench.
- Inferno: Canto XI
- Upon the margin of a lofty bank
- Which great rocks broken in a circle made,
- We came upon a still more cruel throng;
- And there, by reason of the horrible
- Excess of stench the deep abyss throws out,
- We drew ourselves aside behind the cover
- Of a great tomb, whereon I saw a writing,
- Which said: “Pope Anastasius I hold,
- Whom out of the right way Photinus drew.”
- “Slow it behoveth our descent to be,
- So that the sense be first a little used
- To the sad blast, and then we shall not heed it.”
- The Master thus; and unto him I said,
- “Some compensation find, that the time pass not
- Idly;” and he: “Thou seest I think of that.
- My son, upon the inside of these rocks,”
- Began he then to say, “are three small circles,
- From grade to grade, like those which thou art leaving.
- They all are full of spirits maledict;
- But that hereafter sight alone suffice thee,
- Hear how and wherefore they are in constraint.
- Of every malice that wins hate in Heaven,
- Injury is the end; and all such end
- Either by force or fraud afflicteth others.
- But because fraud is man’s peculiar vice,
- More it displeases God; and so stand lowest
- The fraudulent, and greater dole assails them.
- All the first circle of the Violent is;
- But since force may be used against three persons,
- In three rounds ’tis divided and constructed.
- To God, to ourselves, and to our neighbour can we
- Use force; I say on them and on their things,
- As thou shalt hear with reason manifest.
- A death by violence, and painful wounds,
- Are to our neighbour given; and in his substance
- Ruin, and arson, and injurious levies;
- Whence homicides, and he who smites unjustly,
- Marauders, and freebooters, the first round
- Tormenteth all in companies diverse.
- Man may lay violent hands upon himself
- And his own goods; and therefore in the second
- Round must perforce without avail repent
- Whoever of your world deprives himself,
- Who games, and dissipates his property,
- And weepeth there, where he should jocund be.
- Violence can be done the Deity,
- In heart denying and blaspheming Him,
- And by disdaining Nature and her bounty.
- And for this reason doth the smallest round
- Seal with its signet Sodom and Cahors,
- And who, disdaining God, speaks from the heart.
- Fraud, wherewithal is every conscience stung,
- A man may practise upon him who trusts,
- And him who doth no confidence imburse.
- This latter mode, it would appear, dissevers
- Only the bond of love which Nature makes;
- Wherefore within the second circle nestle
- Hypocrisy, flattery, and who deals in magic,
- Falsification, theft, and simony,
- Panders, and barrators, and the like filth.
- By the other mode, forgotten is that love
- Which Nature makes, and what is after added,
- From which there is a special faith engendered.
- Hence in the smallest circle, where the point is
- Of the Universe, upon which Dis is seated,
- Whoe’er betrays for ever is consumed.”
- And I: “My Master, clear enough proceeds
- Thy reasoning, and full well distinguishes
- This cavern and the people who possess it.
- But tell me, those within the fat lagoon,
- Whom the wind drives, and whom the rain doth beat,
- And who encounter with such bitter tongues,
- Wherefore are they inside of the red city
- Not punished, if God has them in his wrath,
- And if he has not, wherefore in such fashion?”
- And unto me he said: “Why wanders so
- Thine intellect from that which it is wont?
- Or, sooth, thy mind where is it elsewhere looking?
- Hast thou no recollection of those words
- With which thine Ethics thoroughly discusses
- The dispositions three, that Heaven abides not,—
- Incontinence, and Malice, and insane
- Bestiality? and how Incontinence
- Less God offendeth, and less blame attracts?
- If thou regardest this conclusion well,
- And to thy mind recallest who they are
- That up outside are undergoing penance,
- Clearly wilt thou perceive why from these felons
- They separated are, and why less wroth
- Justice divine doth smite them with its hammer.”
- “O Sun, that healest all distempered vision,
- Thou dost content me so, when thou resolvest,
- That doubting pleases me no less than knowing!
- Once more a little backward turn thee,” said I,
- “There where thou sayest that usury offends
- Goodness divine, and disengage the knot.”
- “Philosophy,” he said, “to him who heeds it,
- Noteth, not only in one place alone,
- After what manner Nature takes her course
- From Intellect Divine, and from its art;
- And if thy Physics carefully thou notest,
- After not many pages shalt thou find,
- That this your art as far as possible
- Follows, as the disciple doth the master;
- So that your art is, as it were, God’s grandchild.
- From these two, if thou bringest to thy mind
- Genesis at the beginning, it behoves
- Mankind to gain their life and to advance;
- And since the usurer takes another way,
- Nature herself and in her follower
- Disdains he, for elsewhere he puts his hope.
- But follow, now, as I would fain go on,
- For quivering are the Fishes on the horizon,
- And the Wain wholly over Caurus lies,
- And far beyond there we descend the crag.”
- Inferno: Canto XII
- The place where to descend the bank we came
- Was alpine, and from what was there, moreover,
- Of such a kind that every eye would shun it.
- Such as that ruin is which in the flank
- Smote, on this side of Trent, the Adige,
- Either by earthquake or by failing stay,
- For from the mountain’s top, from which it moved,
- Unto the plain the cliff is shattered so,
- Some path ’twould give to him who was above;
- Even such was the descent of that ravine,
- And on the border of the broken chasm
- The infamy of Crete was stretched along,
- Who was conceived in the fictitious cow;
- And when he us beheld, he bit himself,
- Even as one whom anger racks within.
- My Sage towards him shouted: “Peradventure
- Thou think’st that here may be the Duke of Athens,
- Who in the world above brought death to thee?
- Get thee gone, beast, for this one cometh not
- Instructed by thy sister, but he comes
- In order to behold your punishments.”
- As is that bull who breaks loose at the moment
- In which he has received the mortal blow,
- Who cannot walk, but staggers here and there,
- The Minotaur beheld I do the like;
- And he, the wary, cried: “Run to the passage;
- While he wroth, ’tis well thou shouldst descend.”
- Thus down we took our way o’er that discharge
- Of stones, which oftentimes did move themselves
- Beneath my feet, from the unwonted burden.
- Thoughtful I went; and he said: “Thou art thinking
- Perhaps upon this ruin, which is guarded
- By that brute anger which just now I quenched.
- Now will I have thee know, the other time
- I here descended to the nether Hell,
- This precipice had not yet fallen down.
- But truly, if I well discern, a little
- Before His coming who the mighty spoil
- Bore off from Dis, in the supernal circle,
- Upon all sides the deep and loathsome valley
- Trembled so, that I thought the Universe
- Was thrilled with love, by which there are who think
- The world ofttimes converted into chaos;
- And at that moment this primeval crag
- Both here and elsewhere made such overthrow.
- But fix thine eyes below; for draweth near
- The river of blood, within which boiling is
- Whoe’er by violence doth injure others.”
- O blind cupidity, O wrath insane,
- That spurs us onward so in our short life,
- And in the eternal then so badly steeps us!
- I saw an ample moat bent like a bow,
- As one which all the plain encompasses,
- Conformable to what my Guide had said.
- And between this and the embankment’s foot
- Centaurs in file were running, armed with arrows,
- As in the world they used the chase to follow.
- Beholding us descend, each one stood still,
- And from the squadron three detached themselves,
- With bows and arrows in advance selected;
- And from afar one cried: “Unto what torment
- Come ye, who down the hillside are descending?
- Tell us from there; if not, I draw the bow.”
- My Master said: “Our answer will we make
- To Chiron, near you there; in evil hour,
- That will of thine was evermore so hasty.”
- Then touched he me, and said: “This one is Nessus,
- Who perished for the lovely Dejanira,
- And for himself, himself did vengeance take.
- And he in the midst, who at his breast is gazing,
- Is the great Chiron, who brought up Achilles;
- That other Pholus is, who was so wrathful.
- Thousands and thousands go about the moat
- Shooting with shafts whatever soul emerges
- Out of the blood, more than his crime allots.”
- Near we approached unto those monsters fleet;
- Chiron an arrow took, and with the notch
- Backward upon his jaws he put his beard.
- After he had uncovered his great mouth,
- He said to his companions: “Are you ware
- That he behind moveth whate’er he touches?
- Thus are not wont to do the feet of dead men.”
- And my good Guide, who now was at his breast,
- Where the two natures are together joined,
- Replied: “Indeed he lives, and thus alone
- Me it behoves to show him the dark valley;
- Necessity, and not delight, impels us.
- Some one withdrew from singing Halleluja,
- Who unto me committed this new office;
- No thief is he, nor I a thievish spirit.
- But by that virtue through which I am moving
- My steps along this savage thoroughfare,
- Give us some one of thine, to be with us,
- And who may show us where to pass the ford,
- And who may carry this one on his back;
- For ’tis no spirit that can walk the air.”
- Upon his right breast Chiron wheeled about,
- And said to Nessus: “Turn and do thou guide them,
- And warn aside, if other band may meet you.”
- We with our faithful escort onward moved
- Along the brink of the vermilion boiling,
- Wherein the boiled were uttering loud laments.
- People I saw within up to the eyebrows,
- And the great Centaur said: “Tyrants are these,
- Who dealt in bloodshed and in pillaging.
- Here they lament their pitiless mischiefs; here
- Is Alexander, and fierce Dionysius
- Who upon Sicily brought dolorous years.
- That forehead there which has the hair so black
- Is Azzolin; and the other who is blond,
- Obizzo is of Esti, who, in truth,
- Up in the world was by his stepson slain.”
- Then turned I to the Poet; and he said,
- “Now he be first to thee, and second I.”
- A little farther on the Centaur stopped
- Above a folk, who far down as the throat
- Seemed from that boiling stream to issue forth.
- A shade he showed us on one side alone,
- Saying: “He cleft asunder in God’s bosom
- The heart that still upon the Thames is honoured.”
- Then people saw I, who from out the river
- Lifted their heads and also all the chest;
- And many among these I recognised.
- Thus ever more and more grew shallower
- That blood, so that the feet alone it covered;
- And there across the moat our passage was.
- “Even as thou here upon this side beholdest
- The boiling stream, that aye diminishes,”
- The Centaur said, “I wish thee to believe
- That on this other more and more declines
- Its bed, until it reunites itself
- Where it behoveth tyranny to groan.
- Justice divine, upon this side, is goading
- That Attila, who was a scourge on earth,
- And Pyrrhus, and Sextus; and for ever milks
- The tears which with the boiling it unseals
- In Rinier da Corneto and Rinier Pazzo,
- Who made upon the highways so much war.”
- Then back he turned, and passed again the ford.
- Inferno: Canto XIII
- Not yet had Nessus reached the other side,
- When we had put ourselves within a wood,
- That was not marked by any path whatever.
- Not foliage green, but of a dusky colour,
- Not branches smooth, but gnarled and intertangled,
- Not apple-trees were there, but thorns with poison.
- Such tangled thickets have not, nor so dense,
- Those savage wild beasts, that in hatred hold
- ’Twixt Cecina and Corneto the tilled places.
- There do the hideous Harpies make their nests,
- Who chased the Trojans from the Strophades,
- With sad announcement of impending doom;
- Broad wings have they, and necks and faces human,
- And feet with claws, and their great bellies fledged;
- They make laments upon the wondrous trees.
- And the good Master: “Ere thou enter farther,
- Know that thou art within the second round,”
- Thus he began to say, “and shalt be, till
- Thou comest out upon the horrible sand;
- Therefore look well around, and thou shalt see
- Things that will credence give unto my speech.”
- I heard on all sides lamentations uttered,
- And person none beheld I who might make them,
- Whence, utterly bewildered, I stood still.
- I think he thought that I perhaps might think
- So many voices issued through those trunks
- From people who concealed themselves from us;
- Therefore the Master said: “If thou break off
- Some little spray from any of these trees,
- The thoughts thou hast will wholly be made vain.”
- Then stretched I forth my hand a little forward,
- And plucked a branchlet off from a great thorn;
- And the trunk cried, “Why dost thou mangle me?”
- After it had become embrowned with blood,
- It recommenced its cry: “Why dost thou rend me?
- Hast thou no spirit of pity whatsoever?
- Men once we were, and now are changed to trees;
- Indeed, thy hand should be more pitiful,
- Even if the souls of serpents we had been.”
- As out of a green brand, that is on fire
- At one of the ends, and from the other drips
- And hisses with the wind that is escaping;
- So from that splinter issued forth together
- Both words and blood; whereat I let the tip
- Fall, and stood like a man who is afraid.
- “Had he been able sooner to believe,”
- My Sage made answer, “O thou wounded soul,
- What only in my verses he has seen,
- Not upon thee had he stretched forth his hand;
- Whereas the thing incredible has caused me
- To put him to an act which grieveth me.
- But tell him who thou wast, so that by way
- Of some amends thy fame he may refresh
- Up in the world, to which he can return.”
- And the trunk said: “So thy sweet words allure me,
- I cannot silent be; and you be vexed not,
- That I a little to discourse am tempted.
- I am the one who both keys had in keeping
- Of Frederick’s heart, and turned them to and fro
- So softly in unlocking and in locking,
- That from his secrets most men I withheld;
- Fidelity I bore the glorious office
- So great, I lost thereby my sleep and pulses.
- The courtesan who never from the dwelling
- Of Caesar turned aside her strumpet eyes,
- Death universal and the vice of courts,
- Inflamed against me all the other minds,
- And they, inflamed, did so inflame Augustus,
- That my glad honours turned to dismal mournings.
- My spirit, in disdainful exultation,
- Thinking by dying to escape disdain,
- Made me unjust against myself, the just.
- I, by the roots unwonted of this wood,
- Do swear to you that never broke I faith
- Unto my lord, who was so worthy of honour;
- And to the world if one of you return,
- Let him my memory comfort, which is lying
- Still prostrate from the blow that envy dealt it.”
- Waited awhile, and then: “Since he is silent,”
- The Poet said to me, “lose not the time,
- But speak, and question him, if more may please thee.”
- Whence I to him: “Do thou again inquire
- Concerning what thou thinks’t will satisfy me;
- For I cannot, such pity is in my heart.”
- Therefore he recommenced: “So may the man
- Do for thee freely what thy speech implores,
- Spirit incarcerate, again be pleased
- To tell us in what way the soul is bound
- Within these knots; and tell us, if thou canst,
- If any from such members e’er is freed.”
- Then blew the trunk amain, and afterward
- The wind was into such a voice converted:
- “With brevity shall be replied to you.
- When the exasperated soul abandons
- The body whence it rent itself away,
- Minos consigns it to the seventh abyss.
- It falls into the forest, and no part
- Is chosen for it; but where Fortune hurls it,
- There like a grain of spelt it germinates.
- It springs a sapling, and a forest tree;
- The Harpies, feeding then upon its leaves,
- Do pain create, and for the pain an outlet.
- Like others for our spoils shall we return;
- But not that any one may them revest,
- For ’tis not just to have what one casts off.
- Here we shall drag them, and along the dismal
- Forest our bodies shall suspended be,
- Each to the thorn of his molested shade.”
- We were attentive still unto the trunk,
- Thinking that more it yet might wish to tell us,
- When by a tumult we were overtaken,
- In the same way as he is who perceives
- The boar and chase approaching to his stand,
- Who hears the crashing of the beasts and branches;
- And two behold! upon our left-hand side,
- Naked and scratched, fleeing so furiously,
- That of the forest, every fan they broke.
- He who was in advance: “Now help, Death, help!”
- And the other one, who seemed to lag too much,
- Was shouting: “Lano, were not so alert
- Those legs of thine at joustings of the Toppo!”
- And then, perchance because his breath was failing,
- He grouped himself together with a bush.
- Behind them was the forest full of black
- She-mastiffs, ravenous, and swift of foot
- As greyhounds, who are issuing from the chain.
- On him who had crouched down they set their teeth,
- And him they lacerated piece by piece,
- Thereafter bore away those aching members.
- Thereat my Escort took me by the hand,
- And led me to the bush, that all in vain
- Was weeping from its bloody lacerations.
- “O Jacopo,” it said, “of Sant’ Andrea,
- What helped it thee of me to make a screen?
- What blame have I in thy nefarious life?”
- When near him had the Master stayed his steps,
- He said: “Who wast thou, that through wounds so many
- Art blowing out with blood thy dolorous speech?”
- And he to us: “O souls, that hither come
- To look upon the shameful massacre
- That has so rent away from me my leaves,
- Gather them up beneath the dismal bush;
- I of that city was which to the Baptist
- Changed its first patron, wherefore he for this
- Forever with his art will make it sad.
- And were it not that on the pass of Arno
- Some glimpses of him are remaining still,
- Those citizens, who afterwards rebuilt it
- Upon the ashes left by Attila,
- In vain had caused their labour to be done.
- Of my own house I made myself a gibbet.”
- Inferno: Canto XIV
- Because the charity of my native place
- Constrained me, gathered I the scattered leaves,
- And gave them back to him, who now was hoarse.
- Then came we to the confine, where disparted
- The second round is from the third, and where
- A horrible form of Justice is beheld.
- Clearly to manifest these novel things,
- I say that we arrived upon a plain,
- Which from its bed rejecteth every plant;
- The dolorous forest is a garland to it
- All round about, as the sad moat to that;
- There close upon the edge we stayed our feet.
- The soil was of an arid and thick sand,
- Not of another fashion made than that
- Which by the feet of Cato once was pressed.
- Vengeance of God, O how much oughtest thou
- By each one to be dreaded, who doth read
- That which was manifest unto mine eyes!
- Of naked souls beheld I many herds,
- Who all were weeping very miserably,
- And over them seemed set a law diverse.
- Supine upon the ground some folk were lying;
- And some were sitting all drawn up together,
- And others went about continually.
- Those who were going round were far the more,
- And those were less who lay down to their torment,
- But had their tongues more loosed to lamentation.
- O’er all the sand-waste, with a gradual fall,
- Were raining down dilated flakes of fire,
- As of the snow on Alp without a wind.
- As Alexander, in those torrid parts
- Of India, beheld upon his host
- Flames fall unbroken till they reached the ground.
- Whence he provided with his phalanxes
- To trample down the soil, because the vapour
- Better extinguished was while it was single;
- Thus was descending the eternal heat,
- Whereby the sand was set on fire, like tinder
- Beneath the steel, for doubling of the dole.
- Without repose forever was the dance
- Of miserable hands, now there, now here,
- Shaking away from off them the fresh gleeds.
- “Master,” began I, “thou who overcomest
- All things except the demons dire, that issued
- Against us at the entrance of the gate,
- Who is that mighty one who seems to heed not
- The fire, and lieth lowering and disdainful,
- So that the rain seems not to ripen him?”
- And he himself, who had become aware
- That I was questioning my Guide about him,
- Cried: “Such as I was living, am I, dead.
- If Jove should weary out his smith, from whom
- He seized in anger the sharp thunderbolt,
- Wherewith upon the last day I was smitten,
- And if he wearied out by turns the others
- In Mongibello at the swarthy forge,
- Vociferating, ‘Help, good Vulcan, help!’
- Even as he did there at the fight of Phlegra,
- And shot his bolts at me with all his might,
- He would not have thereby a joyous vengeance.”
- Then did my Leader speak with such great force,
- That I had never heard him speak so loud:
- “O Capaneus, in that is not extinguished
- Thine arrogance, thou punished art the more;
- Not any torment, saving thine own rage,
- Would be unto thy fury pain complete.”
- Then he turned round to me with better lip,
- Saying: “One of the Seven Kings was he
- Who Thebes besieged, and held, and seems to hold
- God in disdain, and little seems to prize him;
- But, as I said to him, his own despites
- Are for his breast the fittest ornaments.
- Now follow me, and mind thou do not place
- As yet thy feet upon the burning sand,
- But always keep them close unto the wood.”
- Speaking no word, we came to where there gushes
- Forth from the wood a little rivulet,
- Whose redness makes my hair still stand on end.
- As from the Bulicame springs the brooklet,
- The sinful women later share among them,
- So downward through the sand it went its way.
- The bottom of it, and both sloping banks,
- Were made of stone, and the margins at the side;
- Whence I perceived that there the passage was.
- “In all the rest which I have shown to thee
- Since we have entered in within the gate
- Whose threshold unto no one is denied,
- Nothing has been discovered by thine eyes
- So notable as is the present river,
- Which all the little flames above it quenches.”
- These words were of my Leader; whence I prayed him
- That he would give me largess of the food,
- For which he had given me largess of desire.
- “In the mid-sea there sits a wasted land,”
- Said he thereafterward, “whose name is Crete,
- Under whose king the world of old was chaste.
- There is a mountain there, that once was glad
- With waters and with leaves, which was called Ida;
- Now ’tis deserted, as a thing worn out.
- Rhea once chose it for the faithful cradle
- Of her own son; and to conceal him better,
- Whene’er he cried, she there had clamours made.
- A grand old man stands in the mount erect,
- Who holds his shoulders turned tow’rds Damietta,
- And looks at Rome as if it were his mirror.
- His head is fashioned of refined gold,
- And of pure silver are the arms and breast;
- Then he is brass as far down as the fork.
- From that point downward all is chosen iron,
- Save that the right foot is of kiln-baked clay,
- And more he stands on that than on the other.
- Each part, except the gold, is by a fissure
- Asunder cleft, that dripping is with tears,
- Which gathered together perforate that cavern.
- From rock to rock they fall into this valley;
- Acheron, Styx, and Phlegethon they form;
- Then downward go along this narrow sluice
- Unto that point where is no more descending.
- They form Cocytus; what that pool may be
- Thou shalt behold, so here ’tis not narrated.”
- And I to him: “If so the present runnel
- Doth take its rise in this way from our world,
- Why only on this verge appears it to us?”
- And he to me: “Thou knowest the place is round,
- And notwithstanding thou hast journeyed far,
- Still to the left descending to the bottom,
- Thou hast not yet through all the circle turned.
- Therefore if something new appear to us,
- It should not bring amazement to thy face.”
- And I again: “Master, where shall be found
- Lethe and Phlegethon, for of one thou’rt silent,
- And sayest the other of this rain is made?”
- “In all thy questions truly thou dost please me,”
- Replied he; “but the boiling of the red
- Water might well solve one of them thou makest.
- Thou shalt see Lethe, but outside this moat,
- There where the souls repair to lave themselves,
- When sin repented of has been removed.”
- Then said he: “It is time now to abandon
- The wood; take heed that thou come after me;
- A way the margins make that are not burning,
- And over them all vapours are extinguished.”
- Inferno: Canto XV
- Now bears us onward one of the hard margins,
- And so the brooklet’s mist o’ershadows it,
- From fire it saves the water and the dikes.
- Even as the Flemings, ’twixt Cadsand and Bruges,
- Fearing the flood that tow’rds them hurls itself,
- Their bulwarks build to put the sea to flight;
- And as the Paduans along the Brenta,
- To guard their villas and their villages,
- Or ever Chiarentana feel the heat;
- In such similitude had those been made,
- Albeit not so lofty nor so thick,
- Whoever he might be, the master made them.
- Now were we from the forest so remote,
- I could not have discovered where it was,
- Even if backward I had turned myself,
- When we a company of souls encountered,
- Who came beside the dike, and every one
- Gazed at us, as at evening we are wont
- To eye each other under a new moon,
- And so towards us sharpened they their brows
- As an old tailor at the needle’s eye.
- Thus scrutinised by such a family,
- By some one I was recognised, who seized
- My garment’s hem, and cried out, “What a marvel!”
- And I, when he stretched forth his arm to me,
- On his baked aspect fastened so mine eyes,
- That the scorched countenance prevented not
- His recognition by my intellect;
- And bowing down my face unto his own,
- I made reply, “Are you here, Ser Brunetto?”
- And he: “May’t not displease thee, O my son,
- If a brief space with thee Brunetto Latini
- Backward return and let the trail go on.”
- I said to him: “With all my power I ask it;
- And if you wish me to sit down with you,
- I will, if he please, for I go with him.”
- “O son,” he said, “whoever of this herd
- A moment stops, lies then a hundred years,
- Nor fans himself when smiteth him the fire.
- Therefore go on; I at thy skirts will come,
- And afterward will I rejoin my band,
- Which goes lamenting its eternal doom.”
- I did not dare to go down from the road
- Level to walk with him; but my head bowed
- I held as one who goeth reverently.
- And he began: “What fortune or what fate
- Before the last day leadeth thee down here?
- And who is this that showeth thee the way?”
- “Up there above us in the life serene,”
- I answered him, “I lost me in a valley,
- Or ever yet my age had been completed.
- But yestermorn I turned my back upon it;
- This one appeared to me, returning thither,
- And homeward leadeth me along this road.”
- And he to me: “If thou thy star do follow,
- Thou canst not fail thee of a glorious port,
- If well I judged in the life beautiful.
- And if I had not died so prematurely,
- Seeing Heaven thus benignant unto thee,
- I would have given thee comfort in the work.
- But that ungrateful and malignant people,
- Which of old time from Fesole descended,
- And smacks still of the mountain and the granite,
- Will make itself, for thy good deeds, thy foe;
- And it is right; for among crabbed sorbs
- It ill befits the sweet fig to bear fruit.
- Old rumour in the world proclaims them blind;
- A people avaricious, envious, proud;
- Take heed that of their customs thou do cleanse thee.
- Thy fortune so much honour doth reserve thee,
- One party and the other shall be hungry
- For thee; but far from goat shall be the grass.
- Their litter let the beasts of Fesole
- Make of themselves, nor let them touch the plant,
- If any still upon their dunghill rise,
- In which may yet revive the consecrated
- Seed of those Romans, who remained there when
- The nest of such great malice it became.”
- “If my entreaty wholly were fulfilled,”
- Replied I to him, “not yet would you be
- In banishment from human nature placed;
- For in my mind is fixed, and touches now
- My heart the dear and good paternal image
- Of you, when in the world from hour to hour
- You taught me how a man becomes eternal;
- And how much I am grateful, while I live
- Behoves that in my language be discerned.
- What you narrate of my career I write,
- And keep it to be glossed with other text
- By a Lady who can do it, if I reach her.
- This much will I have manifest to you;
- Provided that my conscience do not chide me,
- For whatsoever Fortune I am ready.
- Such handsel is not new unto mine ears;
- Therefore let Fortune turn her wheel around
- As it may please her, and the churl his mattock.”
- My Master thereupon on his right cheek
- Did backward turn himself, and looked at me;
- Then said: “He listeneth well who noteth it.”
- Nor speaking less on that account, I go
- With Ser Brunetto, and I ask who are
- His most known and most eminent companions.
- And he to me: “To know of some is well;
- Of others it were laudable to be silent,
- For short would be the time for so much speech.
- Know them in sum, that all of them were clerks,
- And men of letters great and of great fame,
- In the world tainted with the selfsame sin.
- Priscian goes yonder with that wretched crowd,
- And Francis of Accorso; and thou hadst seen there
- If thou hadst had a hankering for such scurf,
- That one, who by the Servant of the Servants
- From Arno was transferred to Bacchiglione,
- Where he has left his sin-excited nerves.
- More would I say, but coming and discoursing
- Can be no longer; for that I behold
- New smoke uprising yonder from the sand.
- A people comes with whom I may not be;
- Commended unto thee be my Tesoro,
- In which I still live, and no more I ask.”
- Then he turned round, and seemed to be of those
- Who at Verona run for the Green Mantle
- Across the plain; and seemed to be among them
- The one who wins, and not the one who loses.
- Inferno: Canto XVI
- Now was I where was heard the reverberation
- Of water falling into the next round,
- Like to that humming which the beehives make,
- When shadows three together started forth,
- Running, from out a company that passed
- Beneath the rain of the sharp martyrdom.
- Towards us came they, and each one cried out:
- “Stop, thou; for by thy garb to us thou seemest
- To be some one of our depraved city.”
- Ah me! what wounds I saw upon their limbs,
- Recent and ancient by the flames burnt in!
- It pains me still but to remember it.
- Unto their cries my Teacher paused attentive;
- He turned his face towards me, and “Now wait,”
- He said; “to these we should be courteous.
- And if it were not for the fire that darts
- The nature of this region, I should say
- That haste were more becoming thee than them.”
- As soon as we stood still, they recommenced
- The old refrain, and when they overtook us,
- Formed of themselves a wheel, all three of them.
- As champions stripped and oiled are wont to do,
- Watching for their advantage and their hold,
- Before they come to blows and thrusts between them,
- Thus, wheeling round, did every one his visage
- Direct to me, so that in opposite wise
- His neck and feet continual journey made.
- And, “If the misery of this soft place
- Bring in disdain ourselves and our entreaties,”
- Began one, “and our aspect black and blistered,
- Let the renown of us thy mind incline
- To tell us who thou art, who thus securely
- Thy living feet dost move along through Hell.
- He in whose footprints thou dost see me treading,
- Naked and skinless though he now may go,
- Was of a greater rank than thou dost think;
- He was the grandson of the good Gualdrada;
- His name was Guidoguerra, and in life
- Much did he with his wisdom and his sword.
- The other, who close by me treads the sand,
- Tegghiaio Aldobrandi is, whose fame
- Above there in the world should welcome be.
- And I, who with them on the cross am placed,
- Jacopo Rusticucci was; and truly
- My savage wife, more than aught else, doth harm me.”
- Could I have been protected from the fire,
- Below I should have thrown myself among them,
- And think the Teacher would have suffered it;
- But as I should have burned and baked myself,
- My terror overmastered my good will,
- Which made me greedy of embracing them.
- Then I began: “Sorrow and not disdain
- Did your condition fix within me so,
- That tardily it wholly is stripped off,
- As soon as this my Lord said unto me
- Words, on account of which I thought within me
- That people such as you are were approaching.
- I of your city am; and evermore
- Your labours and your honourable names
- I with affection have retraced and heard.
- I leave the gall, and go for the sweet fruits
- Promised to me by the veracious Leader;
- But to the centre first I needs must plunge.”
- “So may the soul for a long while conduct
- Those limbs of thine,” did he make answer then,
- “And so may thy renown shine after thee,
- Valour and courtesy, say if they dwell
- Within our city, as they used to do,
- Or if they wholly have gone out of it;
- For Guglielmo Borsier, who is in torment
- With us of late, and goes there with his comrades,
- Doth greatly mortify us with his words.”
- “The new inhabitants and the sudden gains,
- Pride and extravagance have in thee engendered,
- Florence, so that thou weep’st thereat already!”
- In this wise I exclaimed with face uplifted;
- And the three, taking that for my reply,
- Looked at each other, as one looks at truth.
- “If other times so little it doth cost thee,”
- Replied they all, “to satisfy another,
- Happy art thou, thus speaking at thy will!
- Therefore, if thou escape from these dark places,
- And come to rebehold the beauteous stars,
- When it shall pleasure thee to say, ‘I was,’
- See that thou speak of us unto the people.”
- Then they broke up the wheel, and in their flight
- It seemed as if their agile legs were wings.
- Not an Amen could possibly be said
- So rapidly as they had disappeared;
- Wherefore the Master deemed best to depart.
- I followed him, and little had we gone,
- Before the sound of water was so near us,
- That speaking we should hardly have been heard.
- Even as that stream which holdeth its own course
- The first from Monte Veso tow’rds the East,
- Upon the left-hand slope of Apennine,
- Which is above called Acquacheta, ere
- It down descendeth into its low bed,
- And at Forli is vacant of that name,
- Reverberates there above San Benedetto
- From Alps, by falling at a single leap,
- Where for a thousand there were room enough;
- Thus downward from a bank precipitate,
- We found resounding that dark-tinted water,
- So that it soon the ear would have offended.
- I had a cord around about me girt,
- And therewithal I whilom had designed
- To take the panther with the painted skin.
- After I this had all from me unloosed,
- As my Conductor had commanded me,
- I reached it to him, gathered up and coiled,
- Whereat he turned himself to the right side,
- And at a little distance from the verge,
- He cast it down into that deep abyss.
- “It must needs be some novelty respond,”
- I said within myself, “to the new signal
- The Master with his eye is following so.”
- Ah me! how very cautious men should be
- With those who not alone behold the act,
- But with their wisdom look into the thoughts!
- He said to me: “Soon there will upward come
- What I await; and what thy thought is dreaming
- Must soon reveal itself unto thy sight.”
- Aye to that truth which has the face of falsehood,
- A man should close his lips as far as may be,
- Because without his fault it causes shame;
- But here I cannot; and, Reader, by the notes
- Of this my Comedy to thee I swear,
- So may they not be void of lasting favour,
- Athwart that dense and darksome atmosphere
- I saw a figure swimming upward come,
- Marvellous unto every steadfast heart,
- Even as he returns who goeth down
- Sometimes to clear an anchor, which has grappled
- Reef, or aught else that in the sea is hidden,
- Who upward stretches, and draws in his feet.
- Inferno: Canto XVII
- “Behold the monster with the pointed tail,
- Who cleaves the hills, and breaketh walls and weapons,
- Behold him who infecteth all the world.”
- Thus unto me my Guide began to say,
- And beckoned him that he should come to shore,
- Near to the confine of the trodden marble;
- And that uncleanly image of deceit
- Came up and thrust ashore its head and bust,
- But on the border did not drag its tail.
- The face was as the face of a just man,
- Its semblance outwardly was so benign,
- And of a serpent all the trunk beside.
- Two paws it had, hairy unto the armpits;
- The back, and breast, and both the sides it had
- Depicted o’er with nooses and with shields.
- With colours more, groundwork or broidery
- Never in cloth did Tartars make nor Turks,
- Nor were such tissues by Arachne laid.
- As sometimes wherries lie upon the shore,
- That part are in the water, part on land;
- And as among the guzzling Germans there,
- The beaver plants himself to wage his war;
- So that vile monster lay upon the border,
- Which is of stone, and shutteth in the sand.
- His tail was wholly quivering in the void,
- Contorting upwards the envenomed fork,
- That in the guise of scorpion armed its point.
- The Guide said: “Now perforce must turn aside
- Our way a little, even to that beast
- Malevolent, that yonder coucheth him.”
- We therefore on the right side descended,
- And made ten steps upon the outer verge,
- Completely to avoid the sand and flame;
- And after we are come to him, I see
- A little farther off upon the sand
- A people sitting near the hollow place.
- Then said to me the Master: “So that full
- Experience of this round thou bear away,
- Now go and see what their condition is.
- There let thy conversation be concise;
- Till thou returnest I will speak with him,
- That he concede to us his stalwart shoulders.”
- Thus farther still upon the outermost
- Head of that seventh circle all alone
- I went, where sat the melancholy folk.
- Out of their eyes was gushing forth their woe;
- This way, that way, they helped them with their hands
- Now from the flames and now from the hot soil.
- Not otherwise in summer do the dogs,
- Now with the foot, now with the muzzle, when
- By fleas, or flies, or gadflies, they are bitten.
- When I had turned mine eyes upon the faces
- Of some, on whom the dolorous fire is falling,
- Not one of them I knew; but I perceived
- That from the neck of each there hung a pouch,
- Which certain colour had, and certain blazon;
- And thereupon it seems their eyes are feeding.
- And as I gazing round me come among them,
- Upon a yellow pouch I azure saw
- That had the face and posture of a lion.
- Proceeding then the current of my sight,
- Another of them saw I, red as blood,
- Display a goose more white than butter is.
- And one, who with an azure sow and gravid
- Emblazoned had his little pouch of white,
- Said unto me: “What dost thou in this moat?
- Now get thee gone; and since thou’rt still alive,
- Know that a neighbour of mine, Vitaliano,
- Will have his seat here on my left-hand side.
- A Paduan am I with these Florentines;
- Full many a time they thunder in mine ears,
- Exclaiming, ‘Come the sovereign cavalier,
- He who shall bring the satchel with three goats;’”
- Then twisted he his mouth, and forth he thrust
- His tongue, like to an ox that licks its nose.
- And fearing lest my longer stay might vex
- Him who had warned me not to tarry long,
- Backward I turned me from those weary souls.
- I found my Guide, who had already mounted
- Upon the back of that wild animal,
- And said to me: “Now be both strong and bold.
- Now we descend by stairways such as these;
- Mount thou in front, for I will be midway,
- So that the tail may have no power to harm thee.”
- Such as he is who has so near the ague
- Of quartan that his nails are blue already,
- And trembles all, but looking at the shade;
- Even such became I at those proffered words;
- But shame in me his menaces produced,
- Which maketh servant strong before good master.
- I seated me upon those monstrous shoulders;
- I wished to say, and yet the voice came not
- As I believed, “Take heed that thou embrace me.”
- But he, who other times had rescued me
- In other peril, soon as I had mounted,
- Within his arms encircled and sustained me,
- And said: “Now, Geryon, bestir thyself;
- The circles large, and the descent be little;
- Think of the novel burden which thou hast.”
- Even as the little vessel shoves from shore,
- Backward, still backward, so he thence withdrew;
- And when he wholly felt himself afloat,
- There where his breast had been he turned his tail,
- And that extended like an eel he moved,
- And with his paws drew to himself the air.
- A greater fear I do not think there was
- What time abandoned Phaeton the reins,
- Whereby the heavens, as still appears, were scorched;
- Nor when the wretched Icarus his flanks
- Felt stripped of feathers by the melting wax,
- His father crying, “An ill way thou takest!”
- Than was my own, when I perceived myself
- On all sides in the air, and saw extinguished
- The sight of everything but of the monster.
- Onward he goeth, swimming slowly, slowly;
- Wheels and descends, but I perceive it only
- By wind upon my face and from below.
- I heard already on the right the whirlpool
- Making a horrible crashing under us;
- Whence I thrust out my head with eyes cast downward.
- Then was I still more fearful of the abyss;
- Because I fires beheld, and heard laments,
- Whereat I, trembling, all the closer cling.
- I saw then, for before I had not seen it,
- The turning and descending, by great horrors
- That were approaching upon divers sides.
- As falcon who has long been on the wing,
- Who, without seeing either lure or bird,
- Maketh the falconer say, “Ah me, thou stoopest,”
- Descendeth weary, whence he started swiftly,
- Thorough a hundred circles, and alights
- Far from his master, sullen and disdainful;
- Even thus did Geryon place us on the bottom,
- Close to the bases of the rough-hewn rock,
- And being disencumbered of our persons,
- He sped away as arrow from the string.
- Inferno: Canto XVIII
- There is a place in Hell called Malebolge,
- Wholly of stone and of an iron colour,
- As is the circle that around it turns.
- Right in the middle of the field malign
- There yawns a well exceeding wide and deep,
- Of which its place the structure will recount.
- Round, then, is that enclosure which remains
- Between the well and foot of the high, hard bank,
- And has distinct in valleys ten its bottom.
- As where for the protection of the walls
- Many and many moats surround the castles,
- The part in which they are a figure forms,
- Just such an image those presented there;
- And as about such strongholds from their gates
- Unto the outer bank are little bridges,
- So from the precipice’s base did crags
- Project, which intersected dikes and moats,
- Unto the well that truncates and collects them.
- Within this place, down shaken from the back
- Of Geryon, we found us; and the Poet
- Held to the left, and I moved on behind.
- Upon my right hand I beheld new anguish,
- New torments, and new wielders of the lash,
- Wherewith the foremost Bolgia was replete.
- Down at the bottom were the sinners naked;
- This side the middle came they facing us,
- Beyond it, with us, but with greater steps;
- Even as the Romans, for the mighty host,
- The year of Jubilee, upon the bridge,
- Have chosen a mode to pass the people over;
- For all upon one side towards the Castle
- Their faces have, and go unto St. Peter’s;
- On the other side they go towards the Mountain.
- This side and that, along the livid stone
- Beheld I horned demons with great scourges,
- Who cruelly were beating them behind.
- Ah me! how they did make them lift their legs
- At the first blows! and sooth not any one
- The second waited for, nor for the third.
- While I was going on, mine eyes by one
- Encountered were; and straight I said: “Already
- With sight of this one I am not unfed.”
- Therefore I stayed my feet to make him out,
- And with me the sweet Guide came to a stand,
- And to my going somewhat back assented;
- And he, the scourged one, thought to hide himself,
- Lowering his face, but little it availed him;
- For said I: “Thou that castest down thine eyes,
- If false are not the features which thou bearest,
- Thou art Venedico Caccianimico;
- But what doth bring thee to such pungent sauces?”
- And he to me: “Unwillingly I tell it;
- But forces me thine utterance distinct,
- Which makes me recollect the ancient world.
- I was the one who the fair Ghisola
- Induced to grant the wishes of the Marquis,
- Howe’er the shameless story may be told.
- Not the sole Bolognese am I who weeps here;
- Nay, rather is this place so full of them,
- That not so many tongues to-day are taught
- ’Twixt Reno and Savena to say ‘sipa;’
- And if thereof thou wishest pledge or proof,
- Bring to thy mind our avaricious heart.”
- While speaking in this manner, with his scourge
- A demon smote him, and said: “Get thee gone
- Pander, there are no women here for coin.”
- I joined myself again unto mine Escort;
- Thereafterward with footsteps few we came
- To where a crag projected from the bank.
- This very easily did we ascend,
- And turning to the right along its ridge,
- From those eternal circles we departed.
- When we were there, where it is hollowed out
- Beneath, to give a passage to the scourged,
- The Guide said: “Wait, and see that on thee strike
- The vision of those others evil-born,
- Of whom thou hast not yet beheld the faces,
- Because together with us they have gone.”
- From the old bridge we looked upon the train
- Which tow’rds us came upon the other border,
- And which the scourges in like manner smite.
- And the good Master, without my inquiring,
- Said to me: “See that tall one who is coming,
- And for his pain seems not to shed a tear;
- Still what a royal aspect he retains!
- That Jason is, who by his heart and cunning
- The Colchians of the Ram made destitute.
- He by the isle of Lemnos passed along
- After the daring women pitiless
- Had unto death devoted all their males.
- There with his tokens and with ornate words
- Did he deceive Hypsipyle, the maiden
- Who first, herself, had all the rest deceived.
- There did he leave her pregnant and forlorn;
- Such sin unto such punishment condemns him,
- And also for Medea is vengeance done.
- With him go those who in such wise deceive;
- And this sufficient be of the first valley
- To know, and those that in its jaws it holds.”
- We were already where the narrow path
- Crosses athwart the second dike, and forms
- Of that a buttress for another arch.
- Thence we heard people, who are making moan
- In the next Bolgia, snorting with their muzzles,
- And with their palms beating upon themselves
- The margins were incrusted with a mould
- By exhalation from below, that sticks there,
- And with the eyes and nostrils wages war.
- The bottom is so deep, no place suffices
- To give us sight of it, without ascending
- The arch’s back, where most the crag impends.
- Thither we came, and thence down in the moat
- I saw a people smothered in a filth
- That out of human privies seemed to flow;
- And whilst below there with mine eye I search,
- I saw one with his head so foul with ordure,
- It was not clear if he were clerk or layman.
- He screamed to me: “Wherefore art thou so eager
- To look at me more than the other foul ones?”
- And I to him: “Because, if I remember,
- I have already seen thee with dry hair,
- And thou’rt Alessio Interminei of Lucca;
- Therefore I eye thee more than all the others.”
- And he thereon, belabouring his pumpkin:
- “The flatteries have submerged me here below,
- Wherewith my tongue was never surfeited.”
- Then said to me the Guide: “See that thou thrust
- Thy visage somewhat farther in advance,
- That with thine eyes thou well the face attain
- Of that uncleanly and dishevelled drab,
- Who there doth scratch herself with filthy nails,
- And crouches now, and now on foot is standing.
- Thais the harlot is it, who replied
- Unto her paramour, when he said, ‘Have I
- Great gratitude from thee?’—‘Nay, marvellous;’
- And herewith let our sight be satisfied.”
- Inferno: Canto XIX
- O Simon Magus, O forlorn disciples,
- Ye who the things of God, which ought to be
- The brides of holiness, rapaciously
- For silver and for gold do prostitute,
- Now it behoves for you the trumpet sound,
- Because in this third Bolgia ye abide.
- We had already on the following tomb
- Ascended to that portion of the crag
- Which o’er the middle of the moat hangs plumb.
- Wisdom supreme, O how great art thou showest
- In heaven, in earth, and in the evil world,
- And with what justice doth thy power distribute!
- I saw upon the sides and on the bottom
- The livid stone with perforations filled,
- All of one size, and every one was round.
- To me less ample seemed they not, nor greater
- Than those that in my beautiful Saint John
- Are fashioned for the place of the baptisers,
- And one of which, not many years ago,
- I broke for some one, who was drowning in it;
- Be this a seal all men to undeceive.
- Out of the mouth of each one there protruded
- The feet of a transgressor, and the legs
- Up to the calf, the rest within remained.
- In all of them the soles were both on fire;
- Wherefore the joints so violently quivered,
- They would have snapped asunder withes and bands.
- Even as the flame of unctuous things is wont
- To move upon the outer surface only,
- So likewise was it there from heel to point.
- “Master, who is that one who writhes himself,
- More than his other comrades quivering,”
- I said, “and whom a redder flame is sucking?”
- And he to me: “If thou wilt have me bear thee
- Down there along that bank which lowest lies,
- From him thou’lt know his errors and himself.”
- And I: “What pleases thee, to me is pleasing;
- Thou art my Lord, and knowest that I depart not
- From thy desire, and knowest what is not spoken.”
- Straightway upon the fourth dike we arrived;
- We turned, and on the left-hand side descended
- Down to the bottom full of holes and narrow.
- And the good Master yet from off his haunch
- Deposed me not, till to the hole he brought me
- Of him who so lamented with his shanks.
- “Whoe’er thou art, that standest upside down,
- O doleful soul, implanted like a stake,”
- To say began I, “if thou canst, speak out.”
- I stood even as the friar who is confessing
- The false assassin, who, when he is fixed,
- Recalls him, so that death may be delayed.
- And he cried out: “Dost thou stand there already,
- Dost thou stand there already, Boniface?
- By many years the record lied to me.
- Art thou so early satiate with that wealth,
- For which thou didst not fear to take by fraud
- The beautiful Lady, and then work her woe?”
- Such I became, as people are who stand,
- Not comprehending what is answered them,
- As if bemocked, and know not how to answer.
- Then said Virgilius: “Say to him straightway,
- ‘I am not he, I am not he thou thinkest.’”
- And I replied as was imposed on me.
- Whereat the spirit writhed with both his feet,
- Then, sighing, with a voice of lamentation
- Said to me: “Then what wantest thou of me?
- If who I am thou carest so much to know,
- That thou on that account hast crossed the bank,
- Know that I vested was with the great mantle;
- And truly was I son of the She-bear,
- So eager to advance the cubs, that wealth
- Above, and here myself, I pocketed.
- Beneath my head the others are dragged down
- Who have preceded me in simony,
- Flattened along the fissure of the rock.
- Below there I shall likewise fall, whenever
- That one shall come who I believed thou wast,
- What time the sudden question I proposed.
- But longer I my feet already toast,
- And here have been in this way upside down,
- Than he will planted stay with reddened feet;
- For after him shall come of fouler deed
- From tow’rds the west a Pastor without law,
- Such as befits to cover him and me.
- New Jason will he be, of whom we read
- In Maccabees; and as his king was pliant,
- So he who governs France shall be to this one.”
- I do not know if I were here too bold,
- That him I answered only in this metre:
- “I pray thee tell me now how great a treasure
- Our Lord demanded of Saint Peter first,
- Before he put the keys into his keeping?
- Truly he nothing asked but ‘Follow me.’
- Nor Peter nor the rest asked of Matthias
- Silver or gold, when he by lot was chosen
- Unto the place the guilty soul had lost.
- Therefore stay here, for thou art justly punished,
- And keep safe guard o’er the ill-gotten money,
- Which caused thee to be valiant against Charles.
- And were it not that still forbids it me
- The reverence for the keys superlative
- Thou hadst in keeping in the gladsome life,
- I would make use of words more grievous still;
- Because your avarice afflicts the world,
- Trampling the good and lifting the depraved.
- The Evangelist you Pastors had in mind,
- When she who sitteth upon many waters
- To fornicate with kings by him was seen;
- The same who with the seven heads was born,
- And power and strength from the ten horns received,
- So long as virtue to her spouse was pleasing.
- Ye have made yourselves a god of gold and silver;
- And from the idolater how differ ye,
- Save that he one, and ye a hundred worship?
- Ah, Constantine! of how much ill was mother,
- Not thy conversion, but that marriage dower
- Which the first wealthy Father took from thee!”
- And while I sang to him such notes as these,
- Either that anger or that conscience stung him,
- He struggled violently with both his feet.
- I think in sooth that it my Leader pleased,
- With such contented lip he listened ever
- Unto the sound of the true words expressed.
- Therefore with both his arms he took me up,
- And when he had me all upon his breast,
- Remounted by the way where he descended.
- Nor did he tire to have me clasped to him;
- But bore me to the summit of the arch
- Which from the fourth dike to the fifth is passage.
- There tenderly he laid his burden down,
- Tenderly on the crag uneven and steep,
- That would have been hard passage for the goats:
- Thence was unveiled to me another valley.
- Inferno: Canto XX
- Of a new pain behoves me to make verses
- And give material to the twentieth canto
- Of the first song, which is of the submerged.
- I was already thoroughly disposed
- To peer down into the uncovered depth,
- Which bathed itself with tears of agony;
- And people saw I through the circular valley,
- Silent and weeping, coming at the pace
- Which in this world the Litanies assume.
- As lower down my sight descended on them,
- Wondrously each one seemed to be distorted
- From chin to the beginning of the chest;
- For tow’rds the reins the countenance was turned,
- And backward it behoved them to advance,
- As to look forward had been taken from them.
- Perchance indeed by violence of palsy
- Some one has been thus wholly turned awry;
- But I ne’er saw it, nor believe it can be.
- As God may let thee, Reader, gather fruit
- From this thy reading, think now for thyself
- How I could ever keep my face unmoistened,
- When our own image near me I beheld
- Distorted so, the weeping of the eyes
- Along the fissure bathed the hinder parts.
- Truly I wept, leaning upon a peak
- Of the hard crag, so that my Escort said
- To me: “Art thou, too, of the other fools?
- Here pity lives when it is wholly dead;
- Who is a greater reprobate than he
- Who feels compassion at the doom divine?
- Lift up, lift up thy head, and see for whom
- Opened the earth before the Thebans’ eyes;
- Wherefore they all cried: ‘Whither rushest thou,
- Amphiaraus? Why dost leave the war?’
- And downward ceased he not to fall amain
- As far as Minos, who lays hold on all.
- See, he has made a bosom of his shoulders!
- Because he wished to see too far before him
- Behind he looks, and backward goes his way:
- Behold Tiresias, who his semblance changed,
- When from a male a female he became,
- His members being all of them transformed;
- And afterwards was forced to strike once more
- The two entangled serpents with his rod,
- Ere he could have again his manly plumes.
- That Aruns is, who backs the other’s belly,
- Who in the hills of Luni, there where grubs
- The Carrarese who houses underneath,
- Among the marbles white a cavern had
- For his abode; whence to behold the stars
- And sea, the view was not cut off from him.
- And she there, who is covering up her breasts,
- Which thou beholdest not, with loosened tresses,
- And on that side has all the hairy skin,
- Was Manto, who made quest through many lands,
- Afterwards tarried there where I was born;
- Whereof I would thou list to me a little.
- After her father had from life departed,
- And the city of Bacchus had become enslaved,
- She a long season wandered through the world.
- Above in beauteous Italy lies a lake
- At the Alp’s foot that shuts in Germany
- Over Tyrol, and has the name Benaco.
- By a thousand springs, I think, and more, is bathed,
- ’Twixt Garda and Val Camonica, Pennino,
- With water that grows stagnant in that lake.
- Midway a place is where the Trentine Pastor,
- And he of Brescia, and the Veronese
- Might give his blessing, if he passed that way.
- Sitteth Peschiera, fortress fair and strong,
- To front the Brescians and the Bergamasks,
- Where round about the bank descendeth lowest.
- There of necessity must fall whatever
- In bosom of Benaco cannot stay,
- And grows a river down through verdant pastures.
- Soon as the water doth begin to run,
- No more Benaco is it called, but Mincio,
- Far as Governo, where it falls in Po.
- Not far it runs before it finds a plain
- In which it spreads itself, and makes it marshy,
- And oft ’tis wont in summer to be sickly.
- Passing that way the virgin pitiless
- Land in the middle of the fen descried,
- Untilled and naked of inhabitants;
- There to escape all human intercourse,
- She with her servants stayed, her arts to practise
- And lived, and left her empty body there.
- The men, thereafter, who were scattered round,
- Collected in that place, which was made strong
- By the lagoon it had on every side;
- They built their city over those dead bones,
- And, after her who first the place selected,
- Mantua named it, without other omen.
- Its people once within more crowded were,
- Ere the stupidity of Casalodi
- From Pinamonte had received deceit.
- Therefore I caution thee, if e’er thou hearest
- Originate my city otherwise,
- No falsehood may the verity defraud.”
- And I: “My Master, thy discourses are
- To me so certain, and so take my faith,
- That unto me the rest would be spent coals.
- But tell me of the people who are passing,
- If any one note-worthy thou beholdest,
- For only unto that my mind reverts.”
- Then said he to me: “He who from the cheek
- Thrusts out his beard upon his swarthy shoulders
- Was, at the time when Greece was void of males,
- So that there scarce remained one in the cradle,
- An augur, and with Calchas gave the moment,
- In Aulis, when to sever the first cable.
- Eryphylus his name was, and so sings
- My lofty Tragedy in some part or other;
- That knowest thou well, who knowest the whole of it.
- The next, who is so slender in the flanks,
- Was Michael Scott, who of a verity
- Of magical illusions knew the game.
- Behold Guido Bonatti, behold Asdente,
- Who now unto his leather and his thread
- Would fain have stuck, but he too late repents.
- Behold the wretched ones, who left the needle,
- The spool and rock, and made them fortune-tellers;
- They wrought their magic spells with herb and image.
- But come now, for already holds the confines
- Of both the hemispheres, and under Seville
- Touches the ocean-wave, Cain and the thorns,
- And yesternight the moon was round already;
- Thou shouldst remember well it did not harm thee
- From time to time within the forest deep.”
- Thus spake he to me, and we walked the while.
- Inferno: Canto XXI
- From bridge to bridge thus, speaking other things
- Of which my Comedy cares not to sing,
- We came along, and held the summit, when
- We halted to behold another fissure
- Of Malebolge and other vain laments;
- And I beheld it marvellously dark.
- As in the Arsenal of the Venetians
- Boils in the winter the tenacious pitch
- To smear their unsound vessels o’er again,
- For sail they cannot; and instead thereof
- One makes his vessel new, and one recaulks
- The ribs of that which many a voyage has made;
- One hammers at the prow, one at the stern,
- This one makes oars, and that one cordage twists,
- Another mends the mainsail and the mizzen;
- Thus, not by fire, but by the art divine,
- Was boiling down below there a dense pitch
- Which upon every side the bank belimed.
- I saw it, but I did not see within it
- Aught but the bubbles that the boiling raised,
- And all swell up and resubside compressed.
- The while below there fixedly I gazed,
- My Leader, crying out: “Beware, beware!”
- Drew me unto himself from where I stood.
- Then I turned round, as one who is impatient
- To see what it behoves him to escape,
- And whom a sudden terror doth unman,
- Who, while he looks, delays not his departure;
- And I beheld behind us a black devil,
- Running along upon the crag, approach.
- Ah, how ferocious was he in his aspect!
- And how he seemed to me in action ruthless,
- With open wings and light upon his feet!
- His shoulders, which sharp-pointed were and high,
- A sinner did encumber with both haunches,
- And he held clutched the sinews of the feet.
- From off our bridge, he said: “O Malebranche,
- Behold one of the elders of Saint Zita;
- Plunge him beneath, for I return for others
- Unto that town, which is well furnished with them.
- All there are barrators, except Bonturo;
- No into Yes for money there is changed.”
- He hurled him down, and over the hard crag
- Turned round, and never was a mastiff loosened
- In so much hurry to pursue a thief.
- The other sank, and rose again face downward;
- But the demons, under cover of the bridge,
- Cried: “Here the Santo Volto has no place!
- Here swims one otherwise than in the Serchio;
- Therefore, if for our gaffs thou wishest not,
- Do not uplift thyself above the pitch.”
- They seized him then with more than a hundred rakes;
- They said: “It here behoves thee to dance covered,
- That, if thou canst, thou secretly mayest pilfer.”
- Not otherwise the cooks their scullions make
- Immerse into the middle of the caldron
- The meat with hooks, so that it may not float.
- Said the good Master to me: “That it be not
- Apparent thou art here, crouch thyself down
- Behind a jag, that thou mayest have some screen;
- And for no outrage that is done to me
- Be thou afraid, because these things I know,
- For once before was I in such a scuffle.”
- Then he passed on beyond the bridge’s head,
- And as upon the sixth bank he arrived,
- Need was for him to have a steadfast front.
- With the same fury, and the same uproar,
- As dogs leap out upon a mendicant,
- Who on a sudden begs, where’er he stops,
- They issued from beneath the little bridge,
- And turned against him all their grappling-irons;
- But he cried out: “Be none of you malignant!
- Before those hooks of yours lay hold of me,
- Let one of you step forward, who may hear me,
- And then take counsel as to grappling me.”
- They all cried out: “Let Malacoda go;”
- Whereat one started, and the rest stood still,
- And he came to him, saying: “What avails it?”
- “Thinkest thou, Malacoda, to behold me
- Advanced into this place,” my Master said,
- “Safe hitherto from all your skill of fence,
- Without the will divine, and fate auspicious?
- Let me go on, for it in Heaven is willed
- That I another show this savage road.”
- Then was his arrogance so humbled in him,
- That he let fall his grapnel at his feet,
- And to the others said: “Now strike him not.”
- And unto me my Guide: “O thou, who sittest
- Among the splinters of the bridge crouched down,
- Securely now return to me again.”
- Wherefore I started and came swiftly to him;
- And all the devils forward thrust themselves,
- So that I feared they would not keep their compact.
- And thus beheld I once afraid the soldiers
- Who issued under safeguard from Caprona,
- Seeing themselves among so many foes.
- Close did I press myself with all my person
- Beside my Leader, and turned not mine eyes
- From off their countenance, which was not good.
- They lowered their rakes, and “Wilt thou have me hit him,”
- They said to one another, “on the rump?”
- And answered: “Yes; see that thou nick him with it.”
- But the same demon who was holding parley
- With my Conductor turned him very quickly,
- And said: “Be quiet, be quiet, Scarmiglione;”
- Then said to us: “You can no farther go
- Forward upon this crag, because is lying
- All shattered, at the bottom, the sixth arch.
- And if it still doth please you to go onward,
- Pursue your way along upon this rock;
- Near is another crag that yields a path.
- Yesterday, five hours later than this hour,
- One thousand and two hundred sixty-six
- Years were complete, that here the way was broken.
- I send in that direction some of mine
- To see if any one doth air himself;
- Go ye with them; for they will not be vicious.
- Step forward, Alichino and Calcabrina,”
- Began he to cry out, “and thou, Cagnazzo;
- And Barbariccia, do thou guide the ten.
- Come forward, Libicocco and Draghignazzo,
- And tusked Ciriatto and Graffiacane,
- And Farfarello and mad Rubicante;
- Search ye all round about the boiling pitch;
- Let these be safe as far as the next crag,
- That all unbroken passes o’er the dens.”
- “O me! what is it, Master, that I see?
- Pray let us go,” I said, “without an escort,
- If thou knowest how, since for myself I ask none.
- If thou art as observant as thy wont is,
- Dost thou not see that they do gnash their teeth,
- And with their brows are threatening woe to us?”
- And he to me: “I will not have thee fear;
- Let them gnash on, according to their fancy,
- Because they do it for those boiling wretches.”
- Along the left-hand dike they wheeled about;
- But first had each one thrust his tongue between
- His teeth towards their leader for a signal;
- And he had made a trumpet of his rump.
- Inferno: Canto XXII
- I have erewhile seen horsemen moving camp,
- Begin the storming, and their muster make,
- And sometimes starting off for their escape;
- Vaunt-couriers have I seen upon your land,
- O Aretines, and foragers go forth,
- Tournaments stricken, and the joustings run,
- Sometimes with trumpets and sometimes with bells,
- With kettle-drums, and signals of the castles,
- And with our own, and with outlandish things,
- But never yet with bagpipe so uncouth
- Did I see horsemen move, nor infantry,
- Nor ship by any sign of land or star.
- We went upon our way with the ten demons;
- Ah, savage company! but in the church
- With saints, and in the tavern with the gluttons!
- Ever upon the pitch was my intent,
- To see the whole condition of that Bolgia,
- And of the people who therein were burned.
- Even as the dolphins, when they make a sign
- To mariners by arching of the back,
- That they should counsel take to save their vessel,
- Thus sometimes, to alleviate his pain,
- One of the sinners would display his back,
- And in less time conceal it than it lightens.
- As on the brink of water in a ditch
- The frogs stand only with their muzzles out,
- So that they hide their feet and other bulk,
- So upon every side the sinners stood;
- But ever as Barbariccia near them came,
- Thus underneath the boiling they withdrew.
- I saw, and still my heart doth shudder at it,
- One waiting thus, even as it comes to pass
- One frog remains, and down another dives;
- And Graffiacan, who most confronted him,
- Grappled him by his tresses smeared with pitch,
- And drew him up, so that he seemed an otter.
- I knew, before, the names of all of them,
- So had I noted them when they were chosen,
- And when they called each other, listened how.
- “O Rubicante, see that thou do lay
- Thy claws upon him, so that thou mayst flay him,”
- Cried all together the accursed ones.
- And I: “My Master, see to it, if thou canst,
- That thou mayst know who is the luckless wight,
- Thus come into his adversaries’ hands.”
- Near to the side of him my Leader drew,
- Asked of him whence he was; and he replied:
- “I in the kingdom of Navarre was born;
- My mother placed me servant to a lord,
- For she had borne me to a ribald knave,
- Destroyer of himself and of his things.
- Then I domestic was of good King Thibault;
- I set me there to practise barratry,
- For which I pay the reckoning in this heat.”
- And Ciriatto, from whose mouth projected,
- On either side, a tusk, as in a boar,
- Caused him to feel how one of them could rip.
- Among malicious cats the mouse had come;
- But Barbariccia clasped him in his arms,
- And said: “Stand ye aside, while I enfork him.”
- And to my Master he turned round his head;
- “Ask him again,” he said, “if more thou wish
- To know from him, before some one destroy him.”
- The Guide: “Now tell then of the other culprits;
- Knowest thou any one who is a Latian,
- Under the pitch?” And he: “I separated
- Lately from one who was a neighbour to it;
- Would that I still were covered up with him,
- For I should fear not either claw nor hook!”
- And Libicocco: “We have borne too much;”
- And with his grapnel seized him by the arm,
- So that, by rending, he tore off a tendon.
- Eke Draghignazzo wished to pounce upon him
- Down at the legs; whence their Decurion
- Turned round and round about with evil look.
- When they again somewhat were pacified,
- Of him, who still was looking at his wound,
- Demanded my Conductor without stay:
- “Who was that one, from whom a luckless parting
- Thou sayest thou hast made, to come ashore?”
- And he replied: “It was the Friar Gomita,
- He of Gallura, vessel of all fraud,
- Who had the enemies of his Lord in hand,
- And dealt so with them each exults thereat;
- Money he took, and let them smoothly off,
- As he says; and in other offices
- A barrator was he, not mean but sovereign.
- Foregathers with him one Don Michael Zanche
- Of Logodoro; and of Sardinia
- To gossip never do their tongues feel tired.
- O me! see that one, how he grinds his teeth;
- Still farther would I speak, but am afraid
- Lest he to scratch my itch be making ready.”
- And the grand Provost, turned to Farfarello,
- Who rolled his eyes about as if to strike,
- Said: “Stand aside there, thou malicious bird.”
- “If you desire either to see or hear,”
- The terror-stricken recommenced thereon,
- “Tuscans or Lombards, I will make them come.
- But let the Malebranche cease a little,
- So that these may not their revenges fear,
- And I, down sitting in this very place,
- For one that I am will make seven come,
- When I shall whistle, as our custom is
- To do whenever one of us comes out.”
- Cagnazzo at these words his muzzle lifted,
- Shaking his head, and said: “Just hear the trick
- Which he has thought of, down to throw himself!”
- Whence he, who snares in great abundance had,
- Responded: “I by far too cunning am,
- When I procure for mine a greater sadness.”
- Alichin held not in, but running counter
- Unto the rest, said to him: “If thou dive,
- I will not follow thee upon the gallop,
- But I will beat my wings above the pitch;
- The height be left, and be the bank a shield
- To see if thou alone dost countervail us.”
- O thou who readest, thou shalt hear new sport!
- Each to the other side his eyes averted;
- He first, who most reluctant was to do it.
- The Navarrese selected well his time;
- Planted his feet on land, and in a moment
- Leaped, and released himself from their design.
- Whereat each one was suddenly stung with shame,
- But he most who was cause of the defeat;
- Therefore he moved, and cried: “Thou art o’ertakern.”
- But little it availed, for wings could not
- Outstrip the fear; the other one went under,
- And, flying, upward he his breast directed;
- Not otherwise the duck upon a sudden
- Dives under, when the falcon is approaching,
- And upward he returneth cross and weary.
- Infuriate at the mockery, Calcabrina
- Flying behind him followed close, desirous
- The other should escape, to have a quarrel.
- And when the barrator had disappeared,
- He turned his talons upon his companion,
- And grappled with him right above the moat.
- But sooth the other was a doughty sparhawk
- To clapperclaw him well; and both of them
- Fell in the middle of the boiling pond.
- A sudden intercessor was the heat;
- But ne’ertheless of rising there was naught,
- To such degree they had their wings belimed.
- Lamenting with the others, Barbariccia
- Made four of them fly to the other side
- With all their gaffs, and very speedily
- This side and that they to their posts descended;
- They stretched their hooks towards the pitch-ensnared,
- Who were already baked within the crust,
- And in this manner busied did we leave them.
- Inferno: Canto XXIII
- Silent, alone, and without company
- We went, the one in front, the other after,
- As go the Minor Friars along their way.
- Upon the fable of Aesop was directed
- My thought, by reason of the present quarrel,
- Where he has spoken of the frog and mouse;
- For ‘mo’ and ‘issa’ are not more alike
- Than this one is to that, if well we couple
- End and beginning with a steadfast mind.
- And even as one thought from another springs,
- So afterward from that was born another,
- Which the first fear within me double made.
- Thus did I ponder: “These on our account
- Are laughed to scorn, with injury and scoff
- So great, that much I think it must annoy them.
- If anger be engrafted on ill-will,
- They will come after us more merciless
- Than dog upon the leveret which he seizes,”
- I felt my hair stand all on end already
- With terror, and stood backwardly intent,
- When said I: “Master, if thou hidest not
- Thyself and me forthwith, of Malebranche
- I am in dread; we have them now behind us;
- I so imagine them, I already feel them.”
- And he: “If I were made of leaded glass,
- Thine outward image I should not attract
- Sooner to me than I imprint the inner.
- Just now thy thoughts came in among my own,
- With similar attitude and similar face,
- So that of both one counsel sole I made.
- If peradventure the right bank so slope
- That we to the next Bolgia can descend,
- We shall escape from the imagined chase.”
- Not yet he finished rendering such opinion,
- When I beheld them come with outstretched wings,
- Not far remote, with will to seize upon us.
- My Leader on a sudden seized me up,
- Even as a mother who by noise is wakened,
- And close beside her sees the enkindled flames,
- Who takes her son, and flies, and does not stop,
- Having more care of him than of herself,
- So that she clothes her only with a shift;
- And downward from the top of the hard bank
- Supine he gave him to the pendent rock,
- That one side of the other Bolgia walls.
- Ne’er ran so swiftly water through a sluice
- To turn the wheel of any land-built mill,
- When nearest to the paddles it approaches,
- As did my Master down along that border,
- Bearing me with him on his breast away,
- As his own son, and not as a companion.
- Hardly the bed of the ravine below
- His feet had reached, ere they had reached the hill
- Right over us; but he was not afraid;
- For the high Providence, which had ordained
- To place them ministers of the fifth moat,
- The power of thence departing took from all.
- A painted people there below we found,
- Who went about with footsteps very slow,
- Weeping and in their semblance tired and vanquished.
- They had on mantles with the hoods low down
- Before their eyes, and fashioned of the cut
- That in Cologne they for the monks are made.
- Without, they gilded are so that it dazzles;
- But inwardly all leaden and so heavy
- That Frederick used to put them on of straw.
- O everlastingly fatiguing mantle!
- Again we turned us, still to the left hand
- Along with them, intent on their sad plaint;
- But owing to the weight, that weary folk
- Came on so tardily, that we were new
- In company at each motion of the haunch.
- Whence I unto my Leader: “See thou find
- Some one who may by deed or name be known,
- And thus in going move thine eye about.”
- And one, who understood the Tuscan speech,
- Cried to us from behind: “Stay ye your feet,
- Ye, who so run athwart the dusky air!
- Perhaps thou’lt have from me what thou demandest.”
- Whereat the Leader turned him, and said: “Wait,
- And then according to his pace proceed.”
- I stopped, and two beheld I show great haste
- Of spirit, in their faces, to be with me;
- But the burden and the narrow way delayed them.
- When they came up, long with an eye askance
- They scanned me without uttering a word.
- Then to each other turned, and said together:
- “He by the action of his throat seems living;
- And if they dead are, by what privilege
- Go they uncovered by the heavy stole?”
- Then said to me: “Tuscan, who to the college
- Of miserable hypocrites art come,
- Do not disdain to tell us who thou art.”
- And I to them: “Born was I, and grew up
- In the great town on the fair river of Arno,
- And with the body am I’ve always had.
- But who are ye, in whom there trickles down
- Along your cheeks such grief as I behold?
- And what pain is upon you, that so sparkles?”
- And one replied to me: “These orange cloaks
- Are made of lead so heavy, that the weights
- Cause in this way their balances to creak.
- Frati Gaudenti were we, and Bolognese;
- I Catalano, and he Loderingo
- Named, and together taken by thy city,
- As the wont is to take one man alone,
- For maintenance of its peace; and we were such
- That still it is apparent round Gardingo.”
- “O Friars,” began I, “your iniquitous. . .”
- But said no more; for to mine eyes there rushed
- One crucified with three stakes on the ground.
- When me he saw, he writhed himself all over,
- Blowing into his beard with suspirations;
- And the Friar Catalan, who noticed this,
- Said to me: “This transfixed one, whom thou seest,
- Counselled the Pharisees that it was meet
- To put one man to torture for the people.
- Crosswise and naked is he on the path,
- As thou perceivest; and he needs must feel,
- Whoever passes, first how much he weighs;
- And in like mode his father-in-law is punished
- Within this moat, and the others of the council,
- Which for the Jews was a malignant seed.”
- And thereupon I saw Virgilius marvel
- O’er him who was extended on the cross
- So vilely in eternal banishment.
- Then he directed to the Friar this voice:
- “Be not displeased, if granted thee, to tell us
- If to the right hand any pass slope down
- By which we two may issue forth from here,
- Without constraining some of the black angels
- To come and extricate us from this deep.”
- Then he made answer: “Nearer than thou hopest
- There is a rock, that forth from the great circle
- Proceeds, and crosses all the cruel valleys,
- Save that at this ’tis broken, and does not bridge it;
- You will be able to mount up the ruin,
- That sidelong slopes and at the bottom rises.”
- The Leader stood awhile with head bowed down;
- Then said: “The business badly he recounted
- Who grapples with his hook the sinners yonder.”
- And the Friar: “Many of the Devil’s vices
- Once heard I at Bologna, and among them,
- That he’s a liar and the father of lies.”
- Thereat my Leader with great strides went on,
- Somewhat disturbed with anger in his looks;
- Whence from the heavy-laden I departed
- After the prints of his beloved feet.
- Inferno: Canto XXIV
- In that part of the youthful year wherein
- The Sun his locks beneath Aquarius tempers,
- And now the nights draw near to half the day,
- What time the hoar-frost copies on the ground
- The outward semblance of her sister white,
- But little lasts the temper of her pen,
- The husbandman, whose forage faileth him,
- Rises, and looks, and seeth the champaign
- All gleaming white, whereat he beats his flank,
- Returns in doors, and up and down laments,
- Like a poor wretch, who knows not what to do;
- Then he returns and hope revives again,
- Seeing the world has changed its countenance
- In little time, and takes his shepherd’s crook,
- And forth the little lambs to pasture drives.
- Thus did the Master fill me with alarm,
- When I beheld his forehead so disturbed,
- And to the ailment came as soon the plaster.
- For as we came unto the ruined bridge,
- The Leader turned to me with that sweet look
- Which at the mountain’s foot I first beheld.
- His arms he opened, after some advisement
- Within himself elected, looking first
- Well at the ruin, and laid hold of me.
- And even as he who acts and meditates,
- For aye it seems that he provides beforehand,
- So upward lifting me towards the summit
- Of a huge rock, he scanned another crag,
- Saying: “To that one grapple afterwards,
- But try first if ’tis such that it will hold thee.”
- This was no way for one clothed with a cloak;
- For hardly we, he light, and I pushed upward,
- Were able to ascend from jag to jag.
- And had it not been, that upon that precinct
- Shorter was the ascent than on the other,
- He I know not, but I had been dead beat.
- But because Malebolge tow’rds the mouth
- Of the profoundest well is all inclining,
- The structure of each valley doth import
- That one bank rises and the other sinks.
- Still we arrived at length upon the point
- Wherefrom the last stone breaks itself asunder.
- The breath was from my lungs so milked away,
- When I was up, that I could go no farther,
- Nay, I sat down upon my first arrival.
- “Now it behoves thee thus to put off sloth,”
- My Master said; “for sitting upon down,
- Or under quilt, one cometh not to fame,
- Withouten which whoso his life consumes
- Such vestige leaveth of himself on earth,
- As smoke in air or in the water foam.
- And therefore raise thee up, o’ercome the anguish
- With spirit that o’ercometh every battle,
- If with its heavy body it sink not.
- A longer stairway it behoves thee mount;
- ’Tis not enough from these to have departed;
- Let it avail thee, if thou understand me.”
- Then I uprose, showing myself provided
- Better with breath than I did feel myself,
- And said: “Go on, for I am strong and bold.”
- Upward we took our way along the crag,
- Which jagged was, and narrow, and difficult,
- And more precipitous far than that before.
- Speaking I went, not to appear exhausted;
- Whereat a voice from the next moat came forth,
- Not well adapted to articulate words.
- I know not what it said, though o’er the back
- I now was of the arch that passes there;
- But he seemed moved to anger who was speaking.
- I was bent downward, but my living eyes
- Could not attain the bottom, for the dark;
- Wherefore I: “Master, see that thou arrive
- At the next round, and let us descend the wall;
- For as from hence I hear and understand not,
- So I look down and nothing I distinguish.”
- “Other response,” he said, “I make thee not,
- Except the doing; for the modest asking
- Ought to be followed by the deed in silence.”
- We from the bridge descended at its head,
- Where it connects itself with the eighth bank,
- And then was manifest to me the Bolgia;
- And I beheld therein a terrible throng
- Of serpents, and of such a monstrous kind,
- That the remembrance still congeals my blood
- Let Libya boast no longer with her sand;
- For if Chelydri, Jaculi, and Phareae
- She breeds, with Cenchri and with Amphisbaena,
- Neither so many plagues nor so malignant
- E’er showed she with all Ethiopia,
- Nor with whatever on the Red Sea is!
- Among this cruel and most dismal throng
- People were running naked and affrighted.
- Without the hope of hole or heliotrope.
- They had their hands with serpents bound behind them;
- These riveted upon their reins the tail
- And head, and were in front of them entwined.
- And lo! at one who was upon our side
- There darted forth a serpent, which transfixed him
- There where the neck is knotted to the shoulders.
- Nor ‘O’ so quickly e’er, nor ‘I’ was written,
- As he took fire, and burned; and ashes wholly
- Behoved it that in falling he became.
- And when he on the ground was thus destroyed,
- The ashes drew together, and of themselves
- Into himself they instantly returned.
- Even thus by the great sages ’tis confessed
- The phoenix dies, and then is born again,
- When it approaches its five-hundredth year;
- On herb or grain it feeds not in its life,
- But only on tears of incense and amomum,
- And nard and myrrh are its last winding-sheet.
- And as he is who falls, and knows not how,
- By force of demons who to earth down drag him,
- Or other oppilation that binds man,
- When he arises and around him looks,
- Wholly bewildered by the mighty anguish
- Which he has suffered, and in looking sighs;
- Such was that sinner after he had risen.
- Justice of God! O how severe it is,
- That blows like these in vengeance poureth down!
- The Guide thereafter asked him who he was;
- Whence he replied: “I rained from Tuscany
- A short time since into this cruel gorge.
- A bestial life, and not a human, pleased me,
- Even as the mule I was; I’m Vanni Fucci,
- Beast, and Pistoia was my worthy den.”
- And I unto the Guide: “Tell him to stir not,
- And ask what crime has thrust him here below,
- For once a man of blood and wrath I saw him.”
- And the sinner, who had heard, dissembled not,
- But unto me directed mind and face,
- And with a melancholy shame was painted.
- Then said: “It pains me more that thou hast caught me
- Amid this misery where thou seest me,
- Than when I from the other life was taken.
- What thou demandest I cannot deny;
- So low am I put down because I robbed
- The sacristy of the fair ornaments,
- And falsely once ’twas laid upon another;
- But that thou mayst not such a sight enjoy,
- If thou shalt e’er be out of the dark places,
- Thine ears to my announcement ope and hear:
- Pistoia first of Neri groweth meagre;
- Then Florence doth renew her men and manners;
- Mars draws a vapour up from Val di Magra,
- Which is with turbid clouds enveloped round,
- And with impetuous and bitter tempest
- Over Campo Picen shall be the battle;
- When it shall suddenly rend the mist asunder,
- So that each Bianco shall thereby be smitten.
- And this I’ve said that it may give thee pain.”
- Inferno: Canto XXV
- At the conclusion of his words, the thief
- Lifted his hands aloft with both the figs,
- Crying: “Take that, God, for at thee I aim them.”
- From that time forth the serpents were my friends;
- For one entwined itself about his neck
- As if it said: “I will not thou speak more;”
- And round his arms another, and rebound him,
- Clinching itself together so in front,
- That with them he could not a motion make.
- Pistoia, ah, Pistoia! why resolve not
- To burn thyself to ashes and so perish,
- Since in ill-doing thou thy seed excellest?
- Through all the sombre circles of this Hell,
- Spirit I saw not against God so proud,
- Not he who fell at Thebes down from the walls!
- He fled away, and spake no further word;
- And I beheld a Centaur full of rage
- Come crying out: “Where is, where is the scoffer?”
- I do not think Maremma has so many
- Serpents as he had all along his back,
- As far as where our countenance begins.
- Upon the shoulders, just behind the nape,
- With wings wide open was a dragon lying,
- And he sets fire to all that he encounters.
- My Master said: “That one is Cacus, who
- Beneath the rock upon Mount Aventine
- Created oftentimes a lake of blood.
- He goes not on the same road with his brothers,
- By reason of the fraudulent theft he made
- Of the great herd, which he had near to him;
- Whereat his tortuous actions ceased beneath
- The mace of Hercules, who peradventure
- Gave him a hundred, and he felt not ten.”
- While he was speaking thus, he had passed by,
- And spirits three had underneath us come,
- Of which nor I aware was, nor my Leader,
- Until what time they shouted: “Who are you?”
- On which account our story made a halt,
- And then we were intent on them alone.
- I did not know them; but it came to pass,
- As it is wont to happen by some chance,
- That one to name the other was compelled,
- Exclaiming: “Where can Cianfa have remained?”
- Whence I, so that the Leader might attend,
- Upward from chin to nose my finger laid.
- If thou art, Reader, slow now to believe
- What I shall say, it will no marvel be,
- For I who saw it hardly can admit it.
- As I was holding raised on them my brows,
- Behold! a serpent with six feet darts forth
- In front of one, and fastens wholly on him.
- With middle feet it bound him round the paunch,
- And with the forward ones his arms it seized;
- Then thrust its teeth through one cheek and the other;
- The hindermost it stretched upon his thighs,
- And put its tail through in between the two,
- And up behind along the reins outspread it.
- Ivy was never fastened by its barbs
- Unto a tree so, as this horrible reptile
- Upon the other’s limbs entwined its own.
- Then they stuck close, as if of heated wax
- They had been made, and intermixed their colour;
- Nor one nor other seemed now what he was;
- E’en as proceedeth on before the flame
- Upward along the paper a brown colour,
- Which is not black as yet, and the white dies.
- The other two looked on, and each of them
- Cried out: “O me, Agnello, how thou changest!
- Behold, thou now art neither two nor one.”
- Already the two heads had one become,
- When there appeared to us two figures mingled
- Into one face, wherein the two were lost.
- Of the four lists were fashioned the two arms,
- The thighs and legs, the belly and the chest
- Members became that never yet were seen.
- Every original aspect there was cancelled;
- Two and yet none did the perverted image
- Appear, and such departed with slow pace.
- Even as a lizard, under the great scourge
- Of days canicular, exchanging hedge,
- Lightning appeareth if the road it cross;
- Thus did appear, coming towards the bellies
- Of the two others, a small fiery serpent,
- Livid and black as is a peppercorn.
- And in that part whereat is first received
- Our aliment, it one of them transfixed;
- Then downward fell in front of him extended.
- The one transfixed looked at it, but said naught;
- Nay, rather with feet motionless he yawned,
- Just as if sleep or fever had assailed him.
- He at the serpent gazed, and it at him;
- One through the wound, the other through the mouth
- Smoked violently, and the smoke commingled.
- Henceforth be silent Lucan, where he mentions
- Wretched Sabellus and Nassidius,
- And wait to hear what now shall be shot forth.
- Be silent Ovid, of Cadmus and Arethusa;
- For if him to a snake, her to fountain,
- Converts he fabling, that I grudge him not;
- Because two natures never front to front
- Has he transmuted, so that both the forms
- To interchange their matter ready were.
- Together they responded in such wise,
- That to a fork the serpent cleft his tail,
- And eke the wounded drew his feet together.
- The legs together with the thighs themselves
- Adhered so, that in little time the juncture
- No sign whatever made that was apparent.
- He with the cloven tail assumed the figure
- The other one was losing, and his skin
- Became elastic, and the other’s hard.
- I saw the arms draw inward at the armpits,
- And both feet of the reptile, that were short,
- Lengthen as much as those contracted were.
- Thereafter the hind feet, together twisted,
- Became the member that a man conceals,
- And of his own the wretch had two created.
- While both of them the exhalation veils
- With a new colour, and engenders hair
- On one of them and depilates the other,
- The one uprose and down the other fell,
- Though turning not away their impious lamps,
- Underneath which each one his muzzle changed.
- He who was standing drew it tow’rds the temples,
- And from excess of matter, which came thither,
- Issued the ears from out the hollow cheeks;
- What did not backward run and was retained
- Of that excess made to the face a nose,
- And the lips thickened far as was befitting.
- He who lay prostrate thrusts his muzzle forward,
- And backward draws the ears into his head,
- In the same manner as the snail its horns;
- And so the tongue, which was entire and apt
- For speech before, is cleft, and the bi-forked
- In the other closes up, and the smoke ceases.
- The soul, which to a reptile had been changed,
- Along the valley hissing takes to flight,
- And after him the other speaking sputters.
- Then did he turn upon him his new shoulders,
- And said to the other: “I’ll have Buoso run,
- Crawling as I have done, along this road.”
- In this way I beheld the seventh ballast
- Shift and reshift, and here be my excuse
- The novelty, if aught my pen transgress.
- And notwithstanding that mine eyes might be
- Somewhat bewildered, and my mind dismayed,
- They could not flee away so secretly
- But that I plainly saw Puccio Sciancato;
- And he it was who sole of three companions,
- Which came in the beginning, was not changed;
- The other was he whom thou, Gaville, weepest.
- Inferno: Canto XXVI
- Rejoice, O Florence, since thou art so great,
- That over sea and land thou beatest thy wings,
- And throughout Hell thy name is spread abroad!
- Among the thieves five citizens of thine
- Like these I found, whence shame comes unto me,
- And thou thereby to no great honour risest.
- But if when morn is near our dreams are true,
- Feel shalt thou in a little time from now
- What Prato, if none other, craves for thee.
- And if it now were, it were not too soon;
- Would that it were, seeing it needs must be,
- For ’twill aggrieve me more the more I age.
- We went our way, and up along the stairs
- The bourns had made us to descend before,
- Remounted my Conductor and drew me.
- And following the solitary path
- Among the rocks and ridges of the crag,
- The foot without the hand sped not at all.
- Then sorrowed I, and sorrow now again,
- When I direct my mind to what I saw,
- And more my genius curb than I am wont,
- That it may run not unless virtue guide it;
- So that if some good star, or better thing,
- Have given me good, I may myself not grudge it.
- As many as the hind (who on the hill
- Rests at the time when he who lights the world
- His countenance keeps least concealed from us,
- While as the fly gives place unto the gnat)
- Seeth the glow-worms down along the valley,
- Perchance there where he ploughs and makes his vintage;
- With flames as manifold resplendent all
- Was the eighth Bolgia, as I grew aware
- As soon as I was where the depth appeared.
- And such as he who with the bears avenged him
- Beheld Elijah’s chariot at departing,
- What time the steeds to heaven erect uprose,
- For with his eye he could not follow it
- So as to see aught else than flame alone,
- Even as a little cloud ascending upward,
- Thus each along the gorge of the intrenchment
- Was moving; for not one reveals the theft,
- And every flame a sinner steals away.
- I stood upon the bridge uprisen to see,
- So that, if I had seized not on a rock,
- Down had I fallen without being pushed.
- And the Leader, who beheld me so attent,
- Exclaimed: “Within the fires the spirits are;
- Each swathes himself with that wherewith he burns.”
- “My Master,” I replied, “by hearing thee
- I am more sure; but I surmised already
- It might be so, and already wished to ask thee
- Who is within that fire, which comes so cleft
- At top, it seems uprising from the pyre
- Where was Eteocles with his brother placed.”
- He answered me: “Within there are tormented
- Ulysses and Diomed, and thus together
- They unto vengeance run as unto wrath.
- And there within their flame do they lament
- The ambush of the horse, which made the door
- Whence issued forth the Romans’ gentle seed;
- Therein is wept the craft, for which being dead
- Deidamia still deplores Achilles,
- And pain for the Palladium there is borne.”
- “If they within those sparks possess the power
- To speak,” I said, “thee, Master, much I pray,
- And re-pray, that the prayer be worth a thousand,
- That thou make no denial of awaiting
- Until the horned flame shall hither come;
- Thou seest that with desire I lean towards it.”
- And he to me: “Worthy is thy entreaty
- Of much applause, and therefore I accept it;
- But take heed that thy tongue restrain itself.
- Leave me to speak, because I have conceived
- That which thou wishest; for they might disdain
- Perchance, since they were Greeks, discourse of thine.”
- When now the flame had come unto that point,
- Where to my Leader it seemed time and place,
- After this fashion did I hear him speak:
- “O ye, who are twofold within one fire,
- If I deserved of you, while I was living,
- If I deserved of you or much or little
- When in the world I wrote the lofty verses,
- Do not move on, but one of you declare
- Whither, being lost, he went away to die.”
- Then of the antique flame the greater horn,
- Murmuring, began to wave itself about
- Even as a flame doth which the wind fatigues.
- Thereafterward, the summit to and fro
- Moving as if it were the tongue that spake,
- It uttered forth a voice, and said: “When I
- From Circe had departed, who concealed me
- More than a year there near unto Gaeta,
- Or ever yet Aeneas named it so,
- Nor fondness for my son, nor reverence
- For my old father, nor the due affection
- Which joyous should have made Penelope,
- Could overcome within me the desire
- I had to be experienced of the world,
- And of the vice and virtue of mankind;
- But I put forth on the high open sea
- With one sole ship, and that small company
- By which I never had deserted been.
- Both of the shores I saw as far as Spain,
- Far as Morocco, and the isle of Sardes,
- And the others which that sea bathes round about.
- I and my company were old and slow
- When at that narrow passage we arrived
- Where Hercules his landmarks set as signals,
- That man no farther onward should adventure.
- On the right hand behind me left I Seville,
- And on the other already had left Ceuta.
- ‘O brothers, who amid a hundred thousand
- Perils,’ I said, ‘have come unto the West,
- To this so inconsiderable vigil
- Which is remaining of your senses still
- Be ye unwilling to deny the knowledge,
- Following the sun, of the unpeopled world.
- Consider ye the seed from which ye sprang;
- Ye were not made to live like unto brutes,
- But for pursuit of virtue and of knowledge.’
- So eager did I render my companions,
- With this brief exhortation, for the voyage,
- That then I hardly could have held them back.
- And having turned our stern unto the morning,
- We of the oars made wings for our mad flight,
- Evermore gaining on the larboard side.
- Already all the stars of the other pole
- The night beheld, and ours so very low
- It did not rise above the ocean floor.
- Five times rekindled and as many quenched
- Had been the splendour underneath the moon,
- Since we had entered into the deep pass,
- When there appeared to us a mountain, dim
- From distance, and it seemed to me so high
- As I had never any one beheld.
- Joyful were we, and soon it turned to weeping;
- For out of the new land a whirlwind rose,
- And smote upon the fore part of the ship.
- Three times it made her whirl with all the waters,
- At the fourth time it made the stern uplift,
- And the prow downward go, as pleased Another,
- Until the sea above us closed again.”
- Inferno: Canto XXVII
- Already was the flame erect and quiet,
- To speak no more, and now departed from us
- With the permission of the gentle Poet;
- When yet another, which behind it came,
- Caused us to turn our eyes upon its top
- By a confused sound that issued from it.
- As the Sicilian bull (that bellowed first
- With the lament of him, and that was right,
- Who with his file had modulated it)
- Bellowed so with the voice of the afflicted,
- That, notwithstanding it was made of brass,
- Still it appeared with agony transfixed;
- Thus, by not having any way or issue
- At first from out the fire, to its own language
- Converted were the melancholy words.
- But afterwards, when they had gathered way
- Up through the point, giving it that vibration
- The tongue had given them in their passage out,
- We heard it said: “O thou, at whom I aim
- My voice, and who but now wast speaking Lombard,
- Saying, ‘Now go thy way, no more I urge thee,’
- Because I come perchance a little late,
- To stay and speak with me let it not irk thee;
- Thou seest it irks not me, and I am burning.
- If thou but lately into this blind world
- Hast fallen down from that sweet Latian land,
- Wherefrom I bring the whole of my transgression,
- Say, if the Romagnuols have peace or war,
- For I was from the mountains there between
- Urbino and the yoke whence Tiber bursts.”
- I still was downward bent and listening,
- When my Conductor touched me on the side,
- Saying: “Speak thou: this one a Latian is.”
- And I, who had beforehand my reply
- In readiness, forthwith began to speak:
- “O soul, that down below there art concealed,
- Romagna thine is not and never has been
- Without war in the bosom of its tyrants;
- But open war I none have left there now.
- Ravenna stands as it long years has stood;
- The Eagle of Polenta there is brooding,
- So that she covers Cervia with her vans.
- The city which once made the long resistance,
- And of the French a sanguinary heap,
- Beneath the Green Paws finds itself again;
- Verrucchio’s ancient Mastiff and the new,
- Who made such bad disposal of Montagna,
- Where they are wont make wimbles of their teeth.
- The cities of Lamone and Santerno
- Governs the Lioncel of the white lair,
- Who changes sides ’twixt summer-time and winter;
- And that of which the Savio bathes the flank,
- Even as it lies between the plain and mountain,
- Lives between tyranny and a free state.
- Now I entreat thee tell us who thou art;
- Be not more stubborn than the rest have been,
- So may thy name hold front there in the world.”
- After the fire a little more had roared
- In its own fashion, the sharp point it moved
- This way and that, and then gave forth such breath:
- “If I believed that my reply were made
- To one who to the world would e’er return,
- This flame without more flickering would stand still;
- But inasmuch as never from this depth
- Did any one return, if I hear true,
- Without the fear of infamy I answer,
- I was a man of arms, then Cordelier,
- Believing thus begirt to make amends;
- And truly my belief had been fulfilled
- But for the High Priest, whom may ill betide,
- Who put me back into my former sins;
- And how and wherefore I will have thee hear.
- While I was still the form of bone and pulp
- My mother gave to me, the deeds I did
- Were not those of a lion, but a fox.
- The machinations and the covert ways
- I knew them all, and practised so their craft,
- That to the ends of earth the sound went forth.
- When now unto that portion of mine age
- I saw myself arrived, when each one ought
- To lower the sails, and coil away the ropes,
- That which before had pleased me then displeased me;
- And penitent and confessing I surrendered,
- Ah woe is me! and it would have bestead me;
- The Leader of the modern Pharisees
- Having a war near unto Lateran,
- And not with Saracens nor with the Jews,
- For each one of his enemies was Christian,
- And none of them had been to conquer Acre,
- Nor merchandising in the Sultan’s land,
- Nor the high office, nor the sacred orders,
- In him regarded, nor in me that cord
- Which used to make those girt with it more meagre;
- But even as Constantine sought out Sylvester
- To cure his leprosy, within Soracte,
- So this one sought me out as an adept
- To cure him of the fever of his pride.
- Counsel he asked of me, and I was silent,
- Because his words appeared inebriate.
- And then he said: ‘Be not thy heart afraid;
- Henceforth I thee absolve; and thou instruct me
- How to raze Palestrina to the ground.
- Heaven have I power to lock and to unlock,
- As thou dost know; therefore the keys are two,
- The which my predecessor held not dear.’
- Then urged me on his weighty arguments
- There, where my silence was the worst advice;
- And said I: ‘Father, since thou washest me
- Of that sin into which I now must fall,
- The promise long with the fulfilment short
- Will make thee triumph in thy lofty seat.’
- Francis came afterward, when I was dead,
- For me; but one of the black Cherubim
- Said to him: ‘Take him not; do me no wrong;
- He must come down among my servitors,
- Because he gave the fraudulent advice
- From which time forth I have been at his hair;
- For who repents not cannot be absolved,
- Nor can one both repent and will at once,
- Because of the contradiction which consents not.’
- O miserable me! how I did shudder
- When he seized on me, saying: ‘Peradventure
- Thou didst not think that I was a logician!’
- He bore me unto Minos, who entwined
- Eight times his tail about his stubborn back,
- And after he had bitten it in great rage,
- Said: ‘Of the thievish fire a culprit this;’
- Wherefore, here where thou seest, am I lost,
- And vested thus in going I bemoan me.”
- When it had thus completed its recital,
- The flame departed uttering lamentations,
- Writhing and flapping its sharp-pointed horn.
- Onward we passed, both I and my Conductor,
- Up o’er the crag above another arch,
- Which the moat covers, where is paid the fee
- By those who, sowing discord, win their burden.
- Inferno: Canto XXVIII
- Who ever could, e’en with untrammelled words,
- Tell of the blood and of the wounds in full
- Which now I saw, by many times narrating?
- Each tongue would for a certainty fall short
- By reason of our speech and memory,
- That have small room to comprehend so much.
- If were again assembled all the people
- Which formerly upon the fateful land
- Of Puglia were lamenting for their blood
- Shed by the Romans and the lingering war
- That of the rings made such illustrious spoils,
- As Livy has recorded, who errs not,
- With those who felt the agony of blows
- By making counterstand to Robert Guiscard,
- And all the rest, whose bones are gathered still
- At Ceperano, where a renegade
- Was each Apulian, and at Tagliacozzo,
- Where without arms the old Alardo conquered,
- And one his limb transpierced, and one lopped off,
- Should show, it would be nothing to compare
- With the disgusting mode of the ninth Bolgia.
- A cask by losing centre-piece or cant
- Was never shattered so, as I saw one
- Rent from the chin to where one breaketh wind.
- Between his legs were hanging down his entrails;
- His heart was visible, and the dismal sack
- That maketh excrement of what is eaten.
- While I was all absorbed in seeing him,
- He looked at me, and opened with his hands
- His bosom, saying: “See now how I rend me;
- How mutilated, see, is Mahomet;
- In front of me doth Ali weeping go,
- Cleft in the face from forelock unto chin;
- And all the others whom thou here beholdest,
- Disseminators of scandal and of schism
- While living were, and therefore are cleft thus.
- A devil is behind here, who doth cleave us
- Thus cruelly, unto the falchion’s edge
- Putting again each one of all this ream,
- When we have gone around the doleful road;
- By reason that our wounds are closed again
- Ere any one in front of him repass.
- But who art thou, that musest on the crag,
- Perchance to postpone going to the pain
- That is adjudged upon thine accusations?”
- “Nor death hath reached him yet, nor guilt doth bring him,”
- My Master made reply, “to be tormented;
- But to procure him full experience,
- Me, who am dead, behoves it to conduct him
- Down here through Hell, from circle unto circle;
- And this is true as that I speak to thee.”
- More than a hundred were there when they heard him,
- Who in the moat stood still to look at me,
- Through wonderment oblivious of their torture.
- “Now say to Fra Dolcino, then, to arm him,
- Thou, who perhaps wilt shortly see the sun,
- If soon he wish not here to follow me,
- So with provisions, that no stress of snow
- May give the victory to the Novarese,
- Which otherwise to gain would not be easy.”
- After one foot to go away he lifted,
- This word did Mahomet say unto me,
- Then to depart upon the ground he stretched it.
- Another one, who had his throat pierced through,
- And nose cut off close underneath the brows,
- And had no longer but a single ear,
- Staying to look in wonder with the others,
- Before the others did his gullet open,
- Which outwardly was red in every part,
- And said: “O thou, whom guilt doth not condemn,
- And whom I once saw up in Latian land,
- Unless too great similitude deceive me,
- Call to remembrance Pier da Medicina,
- If e’er thou see again the lovely plain
- That from Vercelli slopes to Marcabo,
- And make it known to the best two of Fano,
- To Messer Guido and Angiolello likewise,
- That if foreseeing here be not in vain,
- Cast over from their vessel shall they be,
- And drowned near unto the Cattolica,
- By the betrayal of a tyrant fell.
- Between the isles of Cyprus and Majorca
- Neptune ne’er yet beheld so great a crime,
- Neither of pirates nor Argolic people.
- That traitor, who sees only with one eye,
- And holds the land, which some one here with me
- Would fain be fasting from the vision of,
- Will make them come unto a parley with him;
- Then will do so, that to Focara’s wind
- They will not stand in need of vow or prayer.”
- And I to him: “Show to me and declare,
- If thou wouldst have me bear up news of thee,
- Who is this person of the bitter vision.”
- Then did he lay his hand upon the jaw
- Of one of his companions, and his mouth
- Oped, crying: “This is he, and he speaks not.
- This one, being banished, every doubt submerged
- In Caesar by affirming the forearmed
- Always with detriment allowed delay.”
- O how bewildered unto me appeared,
- With tongue asunder in his windpipe slit,
- Curio, who in speaking was so bold!
- And one, who both his hands dissevered had,
- The stumps uplifting through the murky air,
- So that the blood made horrible his face,
- Cried out: “Thou shalt remember Mosca also,
- Who said, alas! ‘A thing done has an end!’
- Which was an ill seed for the Tuscan people.”
- “And death unto thy race,” thereto I added;
- Whence he, accumulating woe on woe,
- Departed, like a person sad and crazed.
- But I remained to look upon the crowd;
- And saw a thing which I should be afraid,
- Without some further proof, even to recount,
- If it were not that conscience reassures me,
- That good companion which emboldens man
- Beneath the hauberk of its feeling pure.
- I truly saw, and still I seem to see it,
- A trunk without a head walk in like manner
- As walked the others of the mournful herd.
- And by the hair it held the head dissevered,
- Hung from the hand in fashion of a lantern,
- And that upon us gazed and said: “O me!”
- It of itself made to itself a lamp,
- And they were two in one, and one in two;
- How that can be, He knows who so ordains it.
- When it was come close to the bridge’s foot,
- It lifted high its arm with all the head,
- To bring more closely unto us its words,
- Which were: “Behold now the sore penalty,
- Thou, who dost breathing go the dead beholding;
- Behold if any be as great as this.
- And so that thou may carry news of me,
- Know that Bertram de Born am I, the same
- Who gave to the Young King the evil comfort.
- I made the father and the son rebellious;
- Achitophel not more with Absalom
- And David did with his accursed goadings.
- Because I parted persons so united,
- Parted do I now bear my brain, alas!
- From its beginning, which is in this trunk.
- Thus is observed in me the counterpoise.”
- Inferno: Canto XXIX
- The many people and the divers wounds
- These eyes of mine had so inebriated,
- That they were wishful to stand still and weep;
- But said Virgilius: “What dost thou still gaze at?
- Why is thy sight still riveted down there
- Among the mournful, mutilated shades?
- Thou hast not done so at the other Bolge;
- Consider, if to count them thou believest,
- That two-and-twenty miles the valley winds,
- And now the moon is underneath our feet;
- Henceforth the time allotted us is brief,
- And more is to be seen than what thou seest.”
- “If thou hadst,” I made answer thereupon,
- “Attended to the cause for which I looked,
- Perhaps a longer stay thou wouldst have pardoned.”
- Meanwhile my Guide departed, and behind him
- I went, already making my reply,
- And superadding: “In that cavern where
- I held mine eyes with such attention fixed,
- I think a spirit of my blood laments
- The sin which down below there costs so much.”
- Then said the Master: “Be no longer broken
- Thy thought from this time forward upon him;
- Attend elsewhere, and there let him remain;
- For him I saw below the little bridge,
- Pointing at thee, and threatening with his finger
- Fiercely, and heard him called Geri del Bello.
- So wholly at that time wast thou impeded
- By him who formerly held Altaforte,
- Thou didst not look that way; so he departed.”
- “O my Conductor, his own violent death,
- Which is not yet avenged for him,” I said,
- “By any who is sharer in the shame,
- Made him disdainful; whence he went away,
- As I imagine, without speaking to me,
- And thereby made me pity him the more.”
- Thus did we speak as far as the first place
- Upon the crag, which the next valley shows
- Down to the bottom, if there were more light.
- When we were now right over the last cloister
- Of Malebolge, so that its lay-brothers
- Could manifest themselves unto our sight,
- Divers lamentings pierced me through and through,
- Which with compassion had their arrows barbed,
- Whereat mine ears I covered with my hands.
- What pain would be, if from the hospitals
- Of Valdichiana, ’twixt July and September,
- And of Maremma and Sardinia
- All the diseases in one moat were gathered,
- Such was it here, and such a stench came from it
- As from putrescent limbs is wont to issue.
- We had descended on the furthest bank
- From the long crag, upon the left hand still,
- And then more vivid was my power of sight
- Down tow’rds the bottom, where the ministress
- Of the high Lord, Justice infallible,
- Punishes forgers, which she here records.
- I do not think a sadder sight to see
- Was in Aegina the whole people sick,
- (When was the air so full of pestilence,
- The animals, down to the little worm,
- All fell, and afterwards the ancient people,
- According as the poets have affirmed,
- Were from the seed of ants restored again,)
- Than was it to behold through that dark valley
- The spirits languishing in divers heaps.
- This on the belly, that upon the back
- One of the other lay, and others crawling
- Shifted themselves along the dismal road.
- We step by step went onward without speech,
- Gazing upon and listening to the sick
- Who had not strength enough to lift their bodies.
- I saw two sitting leaned against each other,
- As leans in heating platter against platter,
- From head to foot bespotted o’er with scabs;
- And never saw I plied a currycomb
- By stable-boy for whom his master waits,
- Or him who keeps awake unwillingly,
- As every one was plying fast the bite
- Of nails upon himself, for the great rage
- Of itching which no other succour had.
- And the nails downward with them dragged the scab,
- In fashion as a knife the scales of bream,
- Or any other fish that has them largest.
- “O thou, that with thy fingers dost dismail thee,”
- Began my Leader unto one of them,
- “And makest of them pincers now and then,
- Tell me if any Latian is with those
- Who are herein; so may thy nails suffice thee
- To all eternity unto this work.”
- “Latians are we, whom thou so wasted seest,
- Both of us here,” one weeping made reply;
- “But who art thou, that questionest about us?”
- And said the Guide: “One am I who descends
- Down with this living man from cliff to cliff,
- And I intend to show Hell unto him.”
- Then broken was their mutual support,
- And trembling each one turned himself to me,
- With others who had heard him by rebound.
- Wholly to me did the good Master gather,
- Saying: “Say unto them whate’er thou wishest.”
- And I began, since he would have it so:
- “So may your memory not steal away
- In the first world from out the minds of men,
- But so may it survive ’neath many suns,
- Say to me who ye are, and of what people;
- Let not your foul and loathsome punishment
- Make you afraid to show yourselves to me.”
- “I of Arezzo was,” one made reply,
- “And Albert of Siena had me burned;
- But what I died for does not bring me here.
- ’Tis true I said to him, speaking in jest,
- That I could rise by flight into the air,
- And he who had conceit, but little wit,
- Would have me show to him the art; and only
- Because no Daedalus I made him, made me
- Be burned by one who held him as his son.
- But unto the last Bolgia of the ten,
- For alchemy, which in the world I practised,
- Minos, who cannot err, has me condemned.”
- And to the Poet said I: “Now was ever
- So vain a people as the Sienese?
- Not for a certainty the French by far.”
- Whereat the other leper, who had heard me,
- Replied unto my speech: “Taking out Stricca,
- Who knew the art of moderate expenses,
- And Niccolo, who the luxurious use
- Of cloves discovered earliest of all
- Within that garden where such seed takes root;
- And taking out the band, among whom squandered
- Caccia d’Ascian his vineyards and vast woods,
- And where his wit the Abbagliato proffered!
- But, that thou know who thus doth second thee
- Against the Sienese, make sharp thine eye
- Tow’rds me, so that my face well answer thee,
- And thou shalt see I am Capocchio’s shade,
- Who metals falsified by alchemy;
- Thou must remember, if I well descry thee,
- How I a skilful ape of nature was.”
- Inferno: Canto XXX
- ’Twas at the time when Juno was enraged,
- For Semele, against the Theban blood,
- As she already more than once had shown,
- So reft of reason Athamas became,
- That, seeing his own wife with children twain
- Walking encumbered upon either hand,
- He cried: “Spread out the nets, that I may take
- The lioness and her whelps upon the passage;”
- And then extended his unpitying claws,
- Seizing the first, who had the name Learchus,
- And whirled him round, and dashed him on a rock;
- And she, with the other burthen, drowned herself;—
- And at the time when fortune downward hurled
- The Trojan’s arrogance, that all things dared,
- So that the king was with his kingdom crushed,
- Hecuba sad, disconsolate, and captive,
- When lifeless she beheld Polyxena,
- And of her Polydorus on the shore
- Of ocean was the dolorous one aware,
- Out of her senses like a dog she barked,
- So much the anguish had her mind distorted;
- But not of Thebes the furies nor the Trojan
- Were ever seen in any one so cruel
- In goading beasts, and much more human members,
- As I beheld two shadows pale and naked,
- Who, biting, in the manner ran along
- That a boar does, when from the sty turned loose.
- One to Capocchio came, and by the nape
- Seized with its teeth his neck, so that in dragging
- It made his belly grate the solid bottom.
- And the Aretine, who trembling had remained,
- Said to me: “That mad sprite is Gianni Schicchi,
- And raving goes thus harrying other people.”
- “O,” said I to him, “so may not the other
- Set teeth on thee, let it not weary thee
- To tell us who it is, ere it dart hence.”
- And he to me: “That is the ancient ghost
- Of the nefarious Myrrha, who became
- Beyond all rightful love her father’s lover.
- She came to sin with him after this manner,
- By counterfeiting of another’s form;
- As he who goeth yonder undertook,
- That he might gain the lady of the herd,
- To counterfeit in himself Buoso Donati,
- Making a will and giving it due form.”
- And after the two maniacs had passed
- On whom I held mine eye, I turned it back
- To look upon the other evil-born.
- I saw one made in fashion of a lute,
- If he had only had the groin cut off
- Just at the point at which a man is forked.
- The heavy dropsy, that so disproportions
- The limbs with humours, which it ill concocts,
- That the face corresponds not to the belly,
- Compelled him so to hold his lips apart
- As does the hectic, who because of thirst
- One tow’rds the chin, the other upward turns.
- “O ye, who without any torment are,
- And why I know not, in the world of woe,”
- He said to us, “behold, and be attentive
- Unto the misery of Master Adam;
- I had while living much of what I wished,
- And now, alas! a drop of water crave.
- The rivulets, that from the verdant hills
- Of Cassentin descend down into Arno,
- Making their channels to be cold and moist,
- Ever before me stand, and not in vain;
- For far more doth their image dry me up
- Than the disease which strips my face of flesh.
- The rigid justice that chastises me
- Draweth occasion from the place in which
- I sinned, to put the more my sighs in flight.
- There is Romena, where I counterfeited
- The currency imprinted with the Baptist,
- For which I left my body burned above.
- But if I here could see the tristful soul
- Of Guido, or Alessandro, or their brother,
- For Branda’s fount I would not give the sight.
- One is within already, if the raving
- Shades that are going round about speak truth;
- But what avails it me, whose limbs are tied?
- If I were only still so light, that in
- A hundred years I could advance one inch,
- I had already started on the way,
- Seeking him out among this squalid folk,
- Although the circuit be eleven miles,
- And be not less than half a mile across.
- For them am I in such a family;
- They did induce me into coining florins,
- Which had three carats of impurity.”
- And I to him: “Who are the two poor wretches
- That smoke like unto a wet hand in winter,
- Lying there close upon thy right-hand confines?”
- “I found them here,” replied he, “when I rained
- Into this chasm, and since they have not turned,
- Nor do I think they will for evermore.
- One the false woman is who accused Joseph,
- The other the false Sinon, Greek of Troy;
- From acute fever they send forth such reek.”
- And one of them, who felt himself annoyed
- At being, peradventure, named so darkly,
- Smote with the fist upon his hardened paunch.
- It gave a sound, as if it were a drum;
- And Master Adam smote him in the face,
- With arm that did not seem to be less hard,
- Saying to him: “Although be taken from me
- All motion, for my limbs that heavy are,
- I have an arm unfettered for such need.”
- Whereat he answer made: “When thou didst go
- Unto the fire, thou hadst it not so ready:
- But hadst it so and more when thou wast coining.”
- The dropsical: “Thou sayest true in that;
- But thou wast not so true a witness there,
- Where thou wast questioned of the truth at Troy.”
- “If I spake false, thou falsifiedst the coin,”
- Said Sinon; “and for one fault I am here,
- And thou for more than any other demon.”
- “Remember, perjurer, about the horse,”
- He made reply who had the swollen belly,
- “And rueful be it thee the whole world knows it.”
- “Rueful to thee the thirst be wherewith cracks
- Thy tongue,” the Greek said, “and the putrid water
- That hedges so thy paunch before thine eyes.”
- Then the false-coiner: “So is gaping wide
- Thy mouth for speaking evil, as ’tis wont;
- Because if I have thirst, and humour stuff me
- Thou hast the burning and the head that aches,
- And to lick up the mirror of Narcissus
- Thou wouldst not want words many to invite thee.”
- In listening to them was I wholly fixed,
- When said the Master to me: “Now just look,
- For little wants it that I quarrel with thee.”
- When him I heard in anger speak to me,
- I turned me round towards him with such shame
- That still it eddies through my memory.
- And as he is who dreams of his own harm,
- Who dreaming wishes it may be a dream,
- So that he craves what is, as if it were not;
- Such I became, not having power to speak,
- For to excuse myself I wished, and still
- Excused myself, and did not think I did it.
- “Less shame doth wash away a greater fault,”
- The Master said, “than this of thine has been;
- Therefore thyself disburden of all sadness,
- And make account that I am aye beside thee,
- If e’er it come to pass that fortune bring thee
- Where there are people in a like dispute;
- For a base wish it is to wish to hear it.”
- Inferno: Canto XXXI
- One and the selfsame tongue first wounded me,
- So that it tinged the one cheek and the other,
- And then held out to me the medicine;
- Thus do I hear that once Achilles’ spear,
- His and his father’s, used to be the cause
- First of a sad and then a gracious boon.
- We turned our backs upon the wretched valley,
- Upon the bank that girds it round about,
- Going across it without any speech.
- There it was less than night, and less than day,
- So that my sight went little in advance;
- But I could hear the blare of a loud horn,
- So loud it would have made each thunder faint,
- Which, counter to it following its way,
- Mine eyes directed wholly to one place.
- After the dolorous discomfiture
- When Charlemagne the holy emprise lost,
- So terribly Orlando sounded not.
- Short while my head turned thitherward I held
- When many lofty towers I seemed to see,
- Whereat I: “Master, say, what town is this?”
- And he to me: “Because thou peerest forth
- Athwart the darkness at too great a distance,
- It happens that thou errest in thy fancy.
- Well shalt thou see, if thou arrivest there,
- How much the sense deceives itself by distance;
- Therefore a little faster spur thee on.”
- Then tenderly he took me by the hand,
- And said: “Before we farther have advanced,
- That the reality may seem to thee
- Less strange, know that these are not towers, but giants,
- And they are in the well, around the bank,
- From navel downward, one and all of them.”
- As, when the fog is vanishing away,
- Little by little doth the sight refigure
- Whate’er the mist that crowds the air conceals,
- So, piercing through the dense and darksome air,
- More and more near approaching tow’rd the verge,
- My error fled, and fear came over me;
- Because as on its circular parapets
- Montereggione crowns itself with towers,
- E’en thus the margin which surrounds the well
- With one half of their bodies turreted
- The horrible giants, whom Jove menaces
- E’en now from out the heavens when he thunders.
- And I of one already saw the face,
- Shoulders, and breast, and great part of the belly,
- And down along his sides both of the arms.
- Certainly Nature, when she left the making
- Of animals like these, did well indeed,
- By taking such executors from Mars;
- And if of elephants and whales she doth not
- Repent her, whosoever looketh subtly
- More just and more discreet will hold her for it;
- For where the argument of intellect
- Is added unto evil will and power,
- No rampart can the people make against it.
- His face appeared to me as long and large
- As is at Rome the pine-cone of Saint Peter’s,
- And in proportion were the other bones;
- So that the margin, which an apron was
- Down from the middle, showed so much of him
- Above it, that to reach up to his hair
- Three Frieslanders in vain had vaunted them;
- For I beheld thirty great palms of him
- Down from the place where man his mantle buckles.
- “Raphael mai amech izabi almi,”
- Began to clamour the ferocious mouth,
- To which were not befitting sweeter psalms.
- And unto him my Guide: “Soul idiotic,
- Keep to thy horn, and vent thyself with that,
- When wrath or other passion touches thee.
- Search round thy neck, and thou wilt find the belt
- Which keeps it fastened, O bewildered soul,
- And see it, where it bars thy mighty breast.”
- Then said to me: “He doth himself accuse;
- This one is Nimrod, by whose evil thought
- One language in the world is not still used.
- Here let us leave him and not speak in vain;
- For even such to him is every language
- As his to others, which to none is known.”
- Therefore a longer journey did we make,
- Turned to the left, and a crossbow-shot oft
- We found another far more fierce and large.
- In binding him, who might the master be
- I cannot say; but he had pinioned close
- Behind the right arm, and in front the other,
- With chains, that held him so begirt about
- From the neck down, that on the part uncovered
- It wound itself as far as the fifth gyre.
- “This proud one wished to make experiment
- Of his own power against the Supreme Jove,”
- My Leader said, “whence he has such a guerdon.
- Ephialtes is his name; he showed great prowess.
- What time the giants terrified the gods;
- The arms he wielded never more he moves.”
- And I to him: “If possible, I should wish
- That of the measureless Briareus
- These eyes of mine might have experience.”
- Whence he replied: “Thou shalt behold Antaeus
- Close by here, who can speak and is unbound,
- Who at the bottom of all crime shall place us.
- Much farther yon is he whom thou wouldst see,
- And he is bound, and fashioned like to this one,
- Save that he seems in aspect more ferocious.”
- There never was an earthquake of such might
- That it could shake a tower so violently,
- As Ephialtes suddenly shook himself.
- Then was I more afraid of death than ever,
- For nothing more was needful than the fear,
- If I had not beheld the manacles.
- Then we proceeded farther in advance,
- And to Antaeus came, who, full five ells
- Without the head, forth issued from the cavern.
- “O thou, who in the valley fortunate,
- Which Scipio the heir of glory made,
- When Hannibal turned back with all his hosts,
- Once brought’st a thousand lions for thy prey,
- And who, hadst thou been at the mighty war
- Among thy brothers, some it seems still think
- The sons of Earth the victory would have gained:
- Place us below, nor be disdainful of it,
- There where the cold doth lock Cocytus up.
- Make us not go to Tityus nor Typhoeus;
- This one can give of that which here is longed for;
- Therefore stoop down, and do not curl thy lip.
- Still in the world can he restore thy fame;
- Because he lives, and still expects long life,
- If to itself Grace call him not untimely.”
- So said the Master; and in haste the other
- His hands extended and took up my Guide,—
- Hands whose great pressure Hercules once felt.
- Virgilius, when he felt himself embraced,
- Said unto me: “Draw nigh, that I may take thee;”
- Then of himself and me one bundle made.
- As seems the Carisenda, to behold
- Beneath the leaning side, when goes a cloud
- Above it so that opposite it hangs;
- Such did Antaeus seem to me, who stood
- Watching to see him stoop, and then it was
- I could have wished to go some other way.
- But lightly in the abyss, which swallows up
- Judas with Lucifer, he put us down;
- Nor thus bowed downward made he there delay,
- But, as a mast does in a ship, uprose.
- Inferno: Canto XXXII
- If I had rhymes both rough and stridulous,
- As were appropriate to the dismal hole
- Down upon which thrust all the other rocks,
- I would press out the juice of my conception
- More fully; but because I have them not,
- Not without fear I bring myself to speak;
- For ’tis no enterprise to take in jest,
- To sketch the bottom of all the universe,
- Nor for a tongue that cries Mamma and Babbo.
- But may those Ladies help this verse of mine,
- Who helped Amphion in enclosing Thebes,
- That from the fact the word be not diverse.
- O rabble ill-begotten above all,
- Who’re in the place to speak of which is hard,
- ’Twere better ye had here been sheep or goats!
- When we were down within the darksome well,
- Beneath the giant’s feet, but lower far,
- And I was scanning still the lofty wall,
- I heard it said to me: “Look how thou steppest!
- Take heed thou do not trample with thy feet
- The heads of the tired, miserable brothers!”
- Whereat I turned me round, and saw before me
- And underfoot a lake, that from the frost
- The semblance had of glass, and not of water.
- So thick a veil ne’er made upon its current
- In winter-time Danube in Austria,
- Nor there beneath the frigid sky the Don,
- As there was here; so that if Tambernich
- Had fallen upon it, or Pietrapana,
- E’en at the edge ’twould not have given a creak.
- And as to croak the frog doth place himself
- With muzzle out of water,—when is dreaming
- Of gleaning oftentimes the peasant-girl,—
- Livid, as far down as where shame appears,
- Were the disconsolate shades within the ice,
- Setting their teeth unto the note of storks.
- Each one his countenance held downward bent;
- From mouth the cold, from eyes the doleful heart
- Among them witness of itself procures.
- When round about me somewhat I had looked,
- I downward turned me, and saw two so close,
- The hair upon their heads together mingled.
- “Ye who so strain your breasts together, tell me,”
- I said, “who are you;” and they bent their necks,
- And when to me their faces they had lifted,
- Their eyes, which first were only moist within,
- Gushed o’er the eyelids, and the frost congealed
- The tears between, and locked them up again.
- Clamp never bound together wood with wood
- So strongly; whereat they, like two he-goats,
- Butted together, so much wrath o’ercame them.
- And one, who had by reason of the cold
- Lost both his ears, still with his visage downward,
- Said: “Why dost thou so mirror thyself in us?
- If thou desire to know who these two are,
- The valley whence Bisenzio descends
- Belonged to them and to their father Albert.
- They from one body came, and all Caina
- Thou shalt search through, and shalt not find a shade
- More worthy to be fixed in gelatine;
- Not he in whom were broken breast and shadow
- At one and the same blow by Arthur’s hand;
- Focaccia not; not he who me encumbers
- So with his head I see no farther forward,
- And bore the name of Sassol Mascheroni;
- Well knowest thou who he was, if thou art Tuscan.
- And that thou put me not to further speech,
- Know that I Camicion de’ Pazzi was,
- And wait Carlino to exonerate me.”
- Then I beheld a thousand faces, made
- Purple with cold; whence o’er me comes a shudder,
- And evermore will come, at frozen ponds.
- And while we were advancing tow’rds the middle,
- Where everything of weight unites together,
- And I was shivering in the eternal shade,
- Whether ’twere will, or destiny, or chance,
- I know not; but in walking ’mong the heads
- I struck my foot hard in the face of one.
- Weeping he growled: “Why dost thou trample me?
- Unless thou comest to increase the vengeance
- of Montaperti, why dost thou molest me?”
- And I: “My Master, now wait here for me,
- That I through him may issue from a doubt;
- Then thou mayst hurry me, as thou shalt wish.”
- The Leader stopped; and to that one I said
- Who was blaspheming vehemently still:
- “Who art thou, that thus reprehendest others?”
- “Now who art thou, that goest through Antenora
- Smiting,” replied he, “other people’s cheeks,
- So that, if thou wert living, ’twere too much?”
- “Living I am, and dear to thee it may be,”
- Was my response, “if thou demandest fame,
- That ’mid the other notes thy name I place.”
- And he to me: “For the reverse I long;
- Take thyself hence, and give me no more trouble;
- For ill thou knowest to flatter in this hollow.”
- Then by the scalp behind I seized upon him,
- And said: “It must needs be thou name thyself,
- Or not a hair remain upon thee here.”
- Whence he to me: “Though thou strip off my hair,
- I will not tell thee who I am, nor show thee,
- If on my head a thousand times thou fall.”
- I had his hair in hand already twisted,
- And more than one shock of it had pulled out,
- He barking, with his eyes held firmly down,
- When cried another: “What doth ail thee, Bocca?
- Is’t not enough to clatter with thy jaws,
- But thou must bark? what devil touches thee?”
- “Now,” said I, “I care not to have thee speak,
- Accursed traitor; for unto thy shame
- I will report of thee veracious news.”
- “Begone,” replied he, “and tell what thou wilt,
- But be not silent, if thou issue hence,
- Of him who had just now his tongue so prompt;
- He weepeth here the silver of the French;
- ‘I saw,’ thus canst thou phrase it, ‘him of Duera
- There where the sinners stand out in the cold.’
- If thou shouldst questioned be who else was there,
- Thou hast beside thee him of Beccaria,
- Of whom the gorget Florence slit asunder;
- Gianni del Soldanier, I think, may be
- Yonder with Ganellon, and Tebaldello
- Who oped Faenza when the people slep.”
- Already we had gone away from him,
- When I beheld two frozen in one hole,
- So that one head a hood was to the other;
- And even as bread through hunger is devoured,
- The uppermost on the other set his teeth,
- There where the brain is to the nape united.
- Not in another fashion Tydeus gnawed
- The temples of Menalippus in disdain,
- Than that one did the skull and the other things.
- “O thou, who showest by such bestial sign
- Thy hatred against him whom thou art eating,
- Tell me the wherefore,” said I, “with this compact,
- That if thou rightfully of him complain,
- In knowing who ye are, and his transgression,
- I in the world above repay thee for it,
- If that wherewith I speak be not dried up.”
- Inferno: Canto XXXIII
- His mouth uplifted from his grim repast,
- That sinner, wiping it upon the hair
- Of the same head that he behind had wasted.
- Then he began: “Thou wilt that I renew
- The desperate grief, which wrings my heart already
- To think of only, ere I speak of it;
- But if my words be seed that may bear fruit
- Of infamy to the traitor whom I gnaw,
- Speaking and weeping shalt thou see together.
- I know not who thou art, nor by what mode
- Thou hast come down here; but a Florentine
- Thou seemest to me truly, when I hear thee.
- Thou hast to know I was Count Ugolino,
- And this one was Ruggieri the Archbishop;
- Now I will tell thee why I am such a neighbour.
- That, by effect of his malicious thoughts,
- Trusting in him I was made prisoner,
- And after put to death, I need not say;
- But ne’ertheless what thou canst not have heard,
- That is to say, how cruel was my death,
- Hear shalt thou, and shalt know if he has wronged me.
- A narrow perforation in the mew,
- Which bears because of me the title of Famine,
- And in which others still must be locked up,
- Had shown me through its opening many moons
- Already, when I dreamed the evil dream
- Which of the future rent for me the veil.
- This one appeared to me as lord and master,
- Hunting the wolf and whelps upon the mountain
- For which the Pisans cannot Lucca see.
- With sleuth-hounds gaunt, and eager, and well trained,
- Gualandi with Sismondi and Lanfianchi
- He had sent out before him to the front.
- After brief course seemed unto me forespent
- The father and the sons, and with sharp tushes
- It seemed to me I saw their flanks ripped open.
- When I before the morrow was awake,
- Moaning amid their sleep I heard my sons
- Who with me were, and asking after bread.
- Cruel indeed art thou, if yet thou grieve not,
- Thinking of what my heart foreboded me,
- And weep’st thou not, what art thou wont to weep at?
- They were awake now, and the hour drew nigh
- At which our food used to be brought to us,
- And through his dream was each one apprehensive;
- And I heard locking up the under door
- Of the horrible tower; whereat without a word
- I gazed into the faces of my sons.
- I wept not, I within so turned to stone;
- They wept; and darling little Anselm mine
- Said: ‘Thou dost gaze so, father, what doth ail thee?’
- Still not a tear I shed, nor answer made
- All of that day, nor yet the night thereafter,
- Until another sun rose on the world.
- As now a little glimmer made its way
- Into the dolorous prison, and I saw
- Upon four faces my own very aspect,
- Both of my hands in agony I bit;
- And, thinking that I did it from desire
- Of eating, on a sudden they uprose,
- And said they: ‘Father, much less pain ’twill give us
- If thou do eat of us; thyself didst clothe us
- With this poor flesh, and do thou strip it off.’
- I calmed me then, not to make them more sad.
- That day we all were silent, and the next.
- Ah! obdurate earth, wherefore didst thou not open?
- When we had come unto the fourth day, Gaddo
- Threw himself down outstretched before my feet,
- Saying, ‘My father, why dost thou not help me?’
- And there he died; and, as thou seest me,
- I saw the three fall, one by one, between
- The fifth day and the sixth; whence I betook me,
- Already blind, to groping over each,
- And three days called them after they were dead;
- Then hunger did what sorrow could not do.”
- When he had said this, with his eyes distorted,
- The wretched skull resumed he with his teeth,
- Which, as a dog’s, upon the bone were strong.
- Ah! Pisa, thou opprobrium of the people
- Of the fair land there where the ‘Si’ doth sound,
- Since slow to punish thee thy neighbours are,
- Let the Capraia and Gorgona move,
- And make a hedge across the mouth of Arno
- That every person in thee it may drown!
- For if Count Ugolino had the fame
- Of having in thy castles thee betrayed,
- Thou shouldst not on such cross have put his sons.
- Guiltless of any crime, thou modern Thebes!
- Their youth made Uguccione and Brigata,
- And the other two my song doth name above!
- We passed still farther onward, where the ice
- Another people ruggedly enswathes,
- Not downward turned, but all of them reversed.
- Weeping itself there does not let them weep,
- And grief that finds a barrier in the eyes
- Turns itself inward to increase the anguish;
- Because the earliest tears a cluster form,
- And, in the manner of a crystal visor,
- Fill all the cup beneath the eyebrow full.
- And notwithstanding that, as in a callus,
- Because of cold all sensibility
- Its station had abandoned in my face,
- Still it appeared to me I felt some wind;
- Whence I: “My Master, who sets this in motion?
- Is not below here every vapour quenched?”
- Whence he to me: “Full soon shalt thou be where
- Thine eye shall answer make to thee of this,
- Seeing the cause which raineth down the blast.”
- And one of the wretches of the frozen crust
- Cried out to us: “O souls so merciless
- That the last post is given unto you,
- Lift from mine eyes the rigid veils, that I
- May vent the sorrow which impregns my heart
- A little, e’er the weeping recongeal.”
- Whence I to him: “If thou wouldst have me help thee
- Say who thou wast; and if I free thee not,
- May I go to the bottom of the ice.”
- Then he replied: “I am Friar Alberigo;
- He am I of the fruit of the bad garden,
- Who here a date am getting for my fig.”
- “O,” said I to him, “now art thou, too, dead?”
- And he to me: “How may my body fare
- Up in the world, no knowledge I possess.
- Such an advantage has this Ptolomaea,
- That oftentimes the soul descendeth here
- Sooner than Atropos in motion sets it.
- And, that thou mayest more willingly remove
- From off my countenance these glassy tears,
- Know that as soon as any soul betrays
- As I have done, his body by a demon
- Is taken from him, who thereafter rules it,
- Until his time has wholly been revolved.
- Itself down rushes into such a cistern;
- And still perchance above appears the body
- Of yonder shade, that winters here behind me.
- This thou shouldst know, if thou hast just come down;
- It is Ser Branca d’ Oria, and many years
- Have passed away since he was thus locked up.”
- “I think,” said I to him, “thou dost deceive me;
- For Branca d’ Oria is not dead as yet,
- And eats, and drinks, and sleeps, and puts on clothes.”
- “In moat above,” said he, “of Malebranche,
- There where is boiling the tenacious pitch,
- As yet had Michel Zanche not arrived,
- When this one left a devil in his stead
- In his own body and one near of kin,
- Who made together with him the betrayal.
- But hitherward stretch out thy hand forthwith,
- Open mine eyes;”—and open them I did not,
- And to be rude to him was courtesy.
- Ah, Genoese! ye men at variance
- With every virtue, full of every vice
- Wherefore are ye not scattered from the world?
- For with the vilest spirit of Romagna
- I found of you one such, who for his deeds
- In soul already in Cocytus bathes,
- And still above in body seems alive!
- Inferno: Canto XXXIV
- “‘Vexilla Regis prodeunt Inferni’
- Towards us; therefore look in front of thee,”
- My Master said, “if thou discernest him.”
- As, when there breathes a heavy fog, or when
- Our hemisphere is darkening into night,
- Appears far off a mill the wind is turning,
- Methought that such a building then I saw;
- And, for the wind, I drew myself behind
- My Guide, because there was no other shelter.
- Now was I, and with fear in verse I put it,
- There where the shades were wholly covered up,
- And glimmered through like unto straws in glass.
- Some prone are lying, others stand erect,
- This with the head, and that one with the soles;
- Another, bow-like, face to feet inverts.
- When in advance so far we had proceeded,
- That it my Master pleased to show to me
- The creature who once had the beauteous semblance,
- He from before me moved and made me stop,
- Saying: “Behold Dis, and behold the place
- Where thou with fortitude must arm thyself.”
- How frozen I became and powerless then,
- Ask it not, Reader, for I write it not,
- Because all language would be insufficient.
- I did not die, and I alive remained not;
- Think for thyself now, hast thou aught of wit,
- What I became, being of both deprived.
- The Emperor of the kingdom dolorous
- From his mid-breast forth issued from the ice;
- And better with a giant I compare
- Than do the giants with those arms of his;
- Consider now how great must be that whole,
- Which unto such a part conforms itself.
- Were he as fair once, as he now is foul,
- And lifted up his brow against his Maker,
- Well may proceed from him all tribulation.
- O, what a marvel it appeared to me,
- When I beheld three faces on his head!
- The one in front, and that vermilion was;
- Two were the others, that were joined with this
- Above the middle part of either shoulder,
- And they were joined together at the crest;
- And the right-hand one seemed ’twixt white and yellow;
- The left was such to look upon as those
- Who come from where the Nile falls valley-ward.
- Underneath each came forth two mighty wings,
- Such as befitting were so great a bird;
- Sails of the sea I never saw so large.
- No feathers had they, but as of a bat
- Their fashion was; and he was waving them,
- So that three winds proceeded forth therefrom.
- Thereby Cocytus wholly was congealed.
- With six eyes did he weep, and down three chins
- Trickled the tear-drops and the bloody drivel.
- At every mouth he with his teeth was crunching
- A sinner, in the manner of a brake,
- So that he three of them tormented thus.
- To him in front the biting was as naught
- Unto the clawing, for sometimes the spine
- Utterly stripped of all the skin remained.
- “That soul up there which has the greatest pain,”
- The Master said, “is Judas Iscariot;
- With head inside, he plies his legs without.
- Of the two others, who head downward are,
- The one who hangs from the black jowl is Brutus;
- See how he writhes himself, and speaks no word.
- And the other, who so stalwart seems, is Cassius.
- But night is reascending, and ’tis time
- That we depart, for we have seen the whole.”
- As seemed him good, I clasped him round the neck,
- And he the vantage seized of time and place,
- And when the wings were opened wide apart,
- He laid fast hold upon the shaggy sides;
- From fell to fell descended downward then
- Between the thick hair and the frozen crust.
- When we were come to where the thigh revolves
- Exactly on the thickness of the haunch,
- The Guide, with labour and with hard-drawn breath,
- Turned round his head where he had had his legs,
- And grappled to the hair, as one who mounts,
- So that to Hell I thought we were returning.
- “Keep fast thy hold, for by such stairs as these,”
- The Master said, panting as one fatigued,
- “Must we perforce depart from so much evil.”
- Then through the opening of a rock he issued,
- And down upon the margin seated me;
- Then tow’rds me he outstretched his wary step.
- I lifted up mine eyes and thought to see
- Lucifer in the same way I had left him;
- And I beheld him upward hold his legs.
- And if I then became disquieted,
- Let stolid people think who do not see
- What the point is beyond which I had passed.
- “Rise up,” the Master said, “upon thy feet;
- The way is long, and difficult the road,
- And now the sun to middle-tierce returns.”
- It was not any palace corridor
- There where we were, but dungeon natural,
- With floor uneven and unease of light.
- “Ere from the abyss I tear myself away,
- My Master,” said I when I had arisen,
- “To draw me from an error speak a little;
- Where is the ice? and how is this one fixed
- Thus upside down? and how in such short time
- From eve to morn has the sun made his transit?”
- And he to me: “Thou still imaginest
- Thou art beyond the centre, where I grasped
- The hair of the fell worm, who mines the world.
- That side thou wast, so long as I descended;
- When round I turned me, thou didst pass the point
- To which things heavy draw from every side,
- And now beneath the hemisphere art come
- Opposite that which overhangs the vast
- Dry-land, and ’neath whose cope was put to death
- The Man who without sin was born and lived.
- Thou hast thy feet upon the little sphere
- Which makes the other face of the Judecca.
- Here it is morn when it is evening there;
- And he who with his hair a stairway made us
- Still fixed remaineth as he was before.
- Upon this side he fell down out of heaven;
- And all the land, that whilom here emerged,
- For fear of him made of the sea a veil,
- And came to our hemisphere; and peradventure
- To flee from him, what on this side appears
- Left the place vacant here, and back recoiled.”
- A place there is below, from Beelzebub
- As far receding as the tomb extends,
- Which not by sight is known, but by the sound
- Of a small rivulet, that there descendeth
- Through chasm within the stone, which it has gnawed
- With course that winds about and slightly falls.
- The Guide and I into that hidden road
- Now entered, to return to the bright world;
- And without care of having any rest
- We mounted up, he first and I the second,
- Till I beheld through a round aperture
- Some of the beauteous things that Heaven doth bear;
- Thence we came forth to rebehold the stars.
- PURGATORIO
- Purgatorio: Canto I
- To run o’er better waters hoists its sail
- The little vessel of my genius now,
- That leaves behind itself a sea so cruel;
- And of that second kingdom will I sing
- Wherein the human spirit doth purge itself,
- And to ascend to heaven becometh worthy.
- But let dead Poesy here rise again,
- O holy Muses, since that I am yours,
- And here Calliope somewhat ascend,
- My song accompanying with that sound,
- Of which the miserable magpies felt
- The blow so great, that they despaired of pardon.
- Sweet colour of the oriental sapphire,
- That was upgathered in the cloudless aspect
- Of the pure air, as far as the first circle,
- Unto mine eyes did recommence delight
- Soon as I issued forth from the dead air,
- Which had with sadness filled mine eyes and breast.
- The beauteous planet, that to love incites,
- Was making all the orient to laugh,
- Veiling the Fishes that were in her escort.
- To the right hand I turned, and fixed my mind
- Upon the other pole, and saw four stars
- Ne’er seen before save by the primal people.
- Rejoicing in their flamelets seemed the heaven.
- O thou septentrional and widowed site,
- Because thou art deprived of seeing these!
- When from regarding them I had withdrawn,
- Turning a little to the other pole,
- There where the Wain had disappeared already,
- I saw beside me an old man alone,
- Worthy of so much reverence in his look,
- That more owes not to father any son.
- A long beard and with white hair intermingled
- He wore, in semblance like unto the tresses,
- Of which a double list fell on his breast.
- The rays of the four consecrated stars
- Did so adorn his countenance with light,
- That him I saw as were the sun before him.
- “Who are you? ye who, counter the blind river,
- Have fled away from the eternal prison?”
- Moving those venerable plumes, he said:
- “Who guided you? or who has been your lamp
- In issuing forth out of the night profound,
- That ever black makes the infernal valley?
- The laws of the abyss, are they thus broken?
- Or is there changed in heaven some council new,
- That being damned ye come unto my crags?”
- Then did my Leader lay his grasp upon me,
- And with his words, and with his hands and signs,
- Reverent he made in me my knees and brow;
- Then answered him: “I came not of myself;
- A Lady from Heaven descended, at whose prayers
- I aided this one with my company.
- But since it is thy will more be unfolded
- Of our condition, how it truly is,
- Mine cannot be that this should be denied thee.
- This one has never his last evening seen,
- But by his folly was so near to it
- That very little time was there to turn.
- As I have said, I unto him was sent
- To rescue him, and other way was none
- Than this to which I have myself betaken.
- I’ve shown him all the people of perdition,
- And now those spirits I intend to show
- Who purge themselves beneath thy guardianship.
- How I have brought him would be long to tell thee.
- Virtue descendeth from on high that aids me
- To lead him to behold thee and to hear thee.
- Now may it please thee to vouchsafe his coming;
- He seeketh Liberty, which is so dear,
- As knoweth he who life for her refuses.
- Thou know’st it; since, for her, to thee not bitter
- Was death in Utica, where thou didst leave
- The vesture, that will shine so, the great day.
- By us the eternal edicts are not broken;
- Since this one lives, and Minos binds not me;
- But of that circle I, where are the chaste
- Eyes of thy Marcia, who in looks still prays thee,
- O holy breast, to hold her as thine own;
- For her love, then, incline thyself to us.
- Permit us through thy sevenfold realm to go;
- I will take back this grace from thee to her,
- If to be mentioned there below thou deignest.”
- “Marcia so pleasing was unto mine eyes
- While I was on the other side,” then said he,
- “That every grace she wished of me I granted;
- Now that she dwells beyond the evil river,
- She can no longer move me, by that law
- Which, when I issued forth from there, was made.
- But if a Lady of Heaven do move and rule thee,
- As thou dost say, no flattery is needful;
- Let it suffice thee that for her thou ask me.
- Go, then, and see thou gird this one about
- With a smooth rush, and that thou wash his face,
- So that thou cleanse away all stain therefrom,
- For ’twere not fitting that the eye o’ercast
- By any mist should go before the first
- Angel, who is of those of Paradise.
- This little island round about its base
- Below there, yonder, where the billow beats it,
- Doth rushes bear upon its washy ooze;
- No other plant that putteth forth the leaf,
- Or that doth indurate, can there have life,
- Because it yieldeth not unto the shocks.
- Thereafter be not this way your return;
- The sun, which now is rising, will direct you
- To take the mount by easier ascent.”
- With this he vanished; and I raised me up
- Without a word, and wholly drew myself
- Unto my Guide, and turned mine eyes to him.
- And he began: “Son, follow thou my steps;
- Let us turn back, for on this side declines
- The plain unto its lower boundaries.”
- The dawn was vanquishing the matin hour
- Which fled before it, so that from afar
- I recognised the trembling of the sea.
- Along the solitary plain we went
- As one who unto the lost road returns,
- And till he finds it seems to go in vain.
- As soon as we were come to where the dew
- Fights with the sun, and, being in a part
- Where shadow falls, little evaporates,
- Both of his hands upon the grass outspread
- In gentle manner did my Master place;
- Whence I, who of his action was aware,
- Extended unto him my tearful cheeks;
- There did he make in me uncovered wholly
- That hue which Hell had covered up in me.
- Then came we down upon the desert shore
- Which never yet saw navigate its waters
- Any that afterward had known return.
- There he begirt me as the other pleased;
- O marvellous! for even as he culled
- The humble plant, such it sprang up again
- Suddenly there where he uprooted it.
- Purgatorio: Canto II
- Already had the sun the horizon reached
- Whose circle of meridian covers o’er
- Jerusalem with its most lofty point,
- And night that opposite to him revolves
- Was issuing forth from Ganges with the Scales
- That fall from out her hand when she exceedeth;
- So that the white and the vermilion cheeks
- Of beautiful Aurora, where I was,
- By too great age were changing into orange.
- We still were on the border of the sea,
- Like people who are thinking of their road,
- Who go in heart and with the body stay;
- And lo! as when, upon the approach of morning,
- Through the gross vapours Mars grows fiery red
- Down in the West upon the ocean floor,
- Appeared to me—may I again behold it!—
- A light along the sea so swiftly coming,
- Its motion by no flight of wing is equalled;
- From which when I a little had withdrawn
- Mine eyes, that I might question my Conductor,
- Again I saw it brighter grown and larger.
- Then on each side of it appeared to me
- I knew not what of white, and underneath it
- Little by little there came forth another.
- My Master yet had uttered not a word
- While the first whiteness into wings unfolded;
- But when he clearly recognised the pilot,
- He cried: “Make haste, make haste to bow the knee!
- Behold the Angel of God! fold thou thy hands!
- Henceforward shalt thou see such officers!
- See how he scorneth human arguments,
- So that nor oar he wants, nor other sail
- Than his own wings, between so distant shores.
- See how he holds them pointed up to heaven,
- Fanning the air with the eternal pinions,
- That do not moult themselves like mortal hair!”
- Then as still nearer and more near us came
- The Bird Divine, more radiant he appeared,
- So that near by the eye could not endure him,
- But down I cast it; and he came to shore
- With a small vessel, very swift and light,
- So that the water swallowed naught thereof.
- Upon the stern stood the Celestial Pilot;
- Beatitude seemed written in his face,
- And more than a hundred spirits sat within.
- “In exitu Israel de Aegypto!”
- They chanted all together in one voice,
- With whatso in that psalm is after written.
- Then made he sign of holy rood upon them,
- Whereat all cast themselves upon the shore,
- And he departed swiftly as he came.
- The throng which still remained there unfamiliar
- Seemed with the place, all round about them gazing,
- As one who in new matters makes essay.
- On every side was darting forth the day.
- The sun, who had with his resplendent shafts
- From the mid-heaven chased forth the Capricorn,
- When the new people lifted up their faces
- Towards us, saying to us: “If ye know,
- Show us the way to go unto the mountain.”
- And answer made Virgilius: “Ye believe
- Perchance that we have knowledge of this place,
- But we are strangers even as yourselves.
- Just now we came, a little while before you,
- Another way, which was so rough and steep,
- That mounting will henceforth seem sport to us.”
- The souls who had, from seeing me draw breath,
- Become aware that I was still alive,
- Pallid in their astonishment became;
- And as to messenger who bears the olive
- The people throng to listen to the news,
- And no one shows himself afraid of crowding,
- So at the sight of me stood motionless
- Those fortunate spirits, all of them, as if
- Oblivious to go and make them fair.
- One from among them saw I coming forward,
- As to embrace me, with such great affection,
- That it incited me to do the like.
- O empty shadows, save in aspect only!
- Three times behind it did I clasp my hands,
- As oft returned with them to my own breast!
- I think with wonder I depicted me;
- Whereat the shadow smiled and backward drew;
- And I, pursuing it, pressed farther forward.
- Gently it said that I should stay my steps;
- Then knew I who it was, and I entreated
- That it would stop awhile to speak with me.
- It made reply to me: “Even as I loved thee
- In mortal body, so I love thee free;
- Therefore I stop; but wherefore goest thou?”
- “My own Casella! to return once more
- There where I am, I make this journey,” said I;
- “But how from thee has so much time be taken?”
- And he to me: “No outrage has been done me,
- If he who takes both when and whom he pleases
- Has many times denied to me this passage,
- For of a righteous will his own is made.
- He, sooth to say, for three months past has taken
- Whoever wished to enter with all peace;
- Whence I, who now had turned unto that shore
- Where salt the waters of the Tiber grow,
- Benignantly by him have been received.
- Unto that outlet now his wing is pointed,
- Because for evermore assemble there
- Those who tow’rds Acheron do not descend.”
- And I: “If some new law take not from thee
- Memory or practice of the song of love,
- Which used to quiet in me all my longings,
- Thee may it please to comfort therewithal
- Somewhat this soul of mine, that with its body
- Hitherward coming is so much distressed.”
- “Love, that within my mind discourses with me,”
- Forthwith began he so melodiously,
- The melody within me still is sounding.
- My Master, and myself, and all that people
- Which with him were, appeared as satisfied
- As if naught else might touch the mind of any.
- We all of us were moveless and attentive
- Unto his notes; and lo! the grave old man,
- Exclaiming: “What is this, ye laggard spirits?
- What negligence, what standing still is this?
- Run to the mountain to strip off the slough,
- That lets not God be manifest to you.”
- Even as when, collecting grain or tares,
- The doves, together at their pasture met,
- Quiet, nor showing their accustomed pride,
- If aught appear of which they are afraid,
- Upon a sudden leave their food alone,
- Because they are assailed by greater care;
- So that fresh company did I behold
- The song relinquish, and go tow’rds the hill,
- As one who goes, and knows not whitherward;
- Nor was our own departure less in haste.
- Purgatorio: Canto III
- Inasmuch as the instantaneous flight
- Had scattered them asunder o’er the plain,
- Turned to the mountain whither reason spurs us,
- I pressed me close unto my faithful comrade,
- And how without him had I kept my course?
- Who would have led me up along the mountain?
- He seemed to me within himself remorseful;
- O noble conscience, and without a stain,
- How sharp a sting is trivial fault to thee!
- After his feet had laid aside the haste
- Which mars the dignity of every act,
- My mind, that hitherto had been restrained,
- Let loose its faculties as if delighted,
- And I my sight directed to the hill
- That highest tow’rds the heaven uplifts itself.
- The sun, that in our rear was flaming red,
- Was broken in front of me into the figure
- Which had in me the stoppage of its rays;
- Unto one side I turned me, with the fear
- Of being left alone, when I beheld
- Only in front of me the ground obscured.
- “Why dost thou still mistrust?” my Comforter
- Began to say to me turned wholly round;
- “Dost thou not think me with thee, and that I guide thee?
- ’Tis evening there already where is buried
- The body within which I cast a shadow;
- ’Tis from Brundusium ta’en, and Naples has it.
- Now if in front of me no shadow fall,
- Marvel not at it more than at the heavens,
- Because one ray impedeth not another
- To suffer torments, both of cold and heat,
- Bodies like this that Power provides, which wills
- That how it works be not unveiled to us.
- Insane is he who hopeth that our reason
- Can traverse the illimitable way,
- Which the one Substance in three Persons follows!
- Mortals, remain contented at the ‘Quia;’
- For if ye had been able to see all,
- No need there were for Mary to give birth;
- And ye have seen desiring without fruit,
- Those whose desire would have been quieted,
- Which evermore is given them for a grief.
- I speak of Aristotle and of Plato,
- And many others;”—and here bowed his head,
- And more he said not, and remained disturbed.
- We came meanwhile unto the mountain’s foot;
- There so precipitate we found the rock,
- That nimble legs would there have been in vain.
- ’Twixt Lerici and Turbia, the most desert,
- The most secluded pathway is a stair
- Easy and open, if compared with that.
- “Who knoweth now upon which hand the hill
- Slopes down,” my Master said, his footsteps staying,
- “So that who goeth without wings may mount?”
- And while he held his eyes upon the ground
- Examining the nature of the path,
- And I was looking up around the rock,
- On the left hand appeared to me a throng
- Of souls, that moved their feet in our direction,
- And did not seem to move, they came so slowly.
- “Lift up thine eyes,” I to the Master said;
- “Behold, on this side, who will give us counsel,
- If thou of thine own self can have it not.”
- Then he looked at me, and with frank expression
- Replied: “Let us go there, for they come slowly,
- And thou be steadfast in thy hope, sweet son.”
- Still was that people as far off from us,
- After a thousand steps of ours I say,
- As a good thrower with his hand would reach,
- When they all crowded unto the hard masses
- Of the high bank, and motionless stood and close,
- As he stands still to look who goes in doubt.
- “O happy dead! O spirits elect already!”
- Virgilius made beginning, “by that peace
- Which I believe is waiting for you all,
- Tell us upon what side the mountain slopes,
- So that the going up be possible,
- For to lose time irks him most who most knows.”
- As sheep come issuing forth from out the fold
- By ones and twos and threes, and the others stand
- Timidly, holding down their eyes and nostrils,
- And what the foremost does the others do,
- Huddling themselves against her, if she stop,
- Simple and quiet and the wherefore know not;
- So moving to approach us thereupon
- I saw the leader of that fortunate flock,
- Modest in face and dignified in gait.
- As soon as those in the advance saw broken
- The light upon the ground at my right side,
- So that from me the shadow reached the rock,
- They stopped, and backward drew themselves somewhat;
- And all the others, who came after them,
- Not knowing why nor wherefore, did the same.
- “Without your asking, I confess to you
- This is a human body which you see,
- Whereby the sunshine on the ground is cleft.
- Marvel ye not thereat, but be persuaded
- That not without a power which comes from Heaven
- Doth he endeavour to surmount this wall.”
- The Master thus; and said those worthy people:
- “Return ye then, and enter in before us,”
- Making a signal with the back o’ the hand
- And one of them began: “Whoe’er thou art,
- Thus going turn thine eyes, consider well
- If e’er thou saw me in the other world.”
- I turned me tow’rds him, and looked at him closely;
- Blond was he, beautiful, and of noble aspect,
- But one of his eyebrows had a blow divided.
- When with humility I had disclaimed
- E’er having seen him, “Now behold!” he said,
- And showed me high upon his breast a wound.
- Then said he with a smile: “I am Manfredi,
- The grandson of the Empress Costanza;
- Therefore, when thou returnest, I beseech thee
- Go to my daughter beautiful, the mother
- Of Sicily’s honour and of Aragon’s,
- And the truth tell her, if aught else be told.
- After I had my body lacerated
- By these two mortal stabs, I gave myself
- Weeping to Him, who willingly doth pardon.
- Horrible my iniquities had been;
- But Infinite Goodness hath such ample arms,
- That it receives whatever turns to it.
- Had but Cosenza’s pastor, who in chase
- Of me was sent by Clement at that time,
- In God read understandingly this page,
- The bones of my dead body still would be
- At the bridge-head, near unto Benevento,
- Under the safeguard of the heavy cairn.
- Now the rain bathes and moveth them the wind,
- Beyond the realm, almost beside the Verde,
- Where he transported them with tapers quenched.
- By malison of theirs is not so lost
- Eternal Love, that it cannot return,
- So long as hope has anything of green.
- True is it, who in contumacy dies
- Of Holy Church, though penitent at last,
- Must wait upon the outside this bank
- Thirty times told the time that he has been
- In his presumption, unless such decree
- Shorter by means of righteous prayers become.
- See now if thou hast power to make me happy,
- By making known unto my good Costanza
- How thou hast seen me, and this ban beside,
- For those on earth can much advance us here.”
- Purgatorio: Canto IV
- Whenever by delight or else by pain,
- That seizes any faculty of ours,
- Wholly to that the soul collects itself,
- It seemeth that no other power it heeds;
- And this against that error is which thinks
- One soul above another kindles in us.
- And hence, whenever aught is heard or seen
- Which keeps the soul intently bent upon it,
- Time passes on, and we perceive it not,
- Because one faculty is that which listens,
- And other that which the soul keeps entire;
- This is as if in bonds, and that is free.
- Of this I had experience positive
- In hearing and in gazing at that spirit;
- For fifty full degrees uprisen was
- The sun, and I had not perceived it, when
- We came to where those souls with one accord
- Cried out unto us: “Here is what you ask.”
- A greater opening ofttimes hedges up
- With but a little forkful of his thorns
- The villager, what time the grape imbrowns,
- Than was the passage-way through which ascended
- Only my Leader and myself behind him,
- After that company departed from us.
- One climbs Sanleo and descends in Noli,
- And mounts the summit of Bismantova,
- With feet alone; but here one needs must fly;
- With the swift pinions and the plumes I say
- Of great desire, conducted after him
- Who gave me hope, and made a light for me.
- We mounted upward through the rifted rock,
- And on each side the border pressed upon us,
- And feet and hands the ground beneath required.
- When we were come upon the upper rim
- Of the high bank, out on the open slope,
- “My Master,” said I, “what way shall we take?”
- And he to me: “No step of thine descend;
- Still up the mount behind me win thy way,
- Till some sage escort shall appear to us.”
- The summit was so high it vanquished sight,
- And the hillside precipitous far more
- Than line from middle quadrant to the centre.
- Spent with fatigue was I, when I began:
- “O my sweet Father! turn thee and behold
- How I remain alone, unless thou stay!”
- “O son,” he said, “up yonder drag thyself,”
- Pointing me to a terrace somewhat higher,
- Which on that side encircles all the hill.
- These words of his so spurred me on, that I
- Strained every nerve, behind him scrambling up,
- Until the circle was beneath my feet.
- Thereon ourselves we seated both of us
- Turned to the East, from which we had ascended,
- For all men are delighted to look back.
- To the low shores mine eyes I first directed,
- Then to the sun uplifted them, and wondered
- That on the left hand we were smitten by it.
- The Poet well perceived that I was wholly
- Bewildered at the chariot of the light,
- Where ’twixt us and the Aquilon it entered.
- Whereon he said to me: “If Castor and Pollux
- Were in the company of yonder mirror,
- That up and down conducteth with its light,
- Thou wouldst behold the zodiac’s jagged wheel
- Revolving still more near unto the Bears,
- Unless it swerved aside from its old track.
- How that may be wouldst thou have power to think,
- Collected in thyself, imagine Zion
- Together with this mount on earth to stand,
- So that they both one sole horizon have,
- And hemispheres diverse; whereby the road
- Which Phaeton, alas! knew not to drive,
- Thou’lt see how of necessity must pass
- This on one side, when that upon the other,
- If thine intelligence right clearly heed.”
- “Truly, my Master,” said I, “never yet
- Saw I so clearly as I now discern,
- There where my wit appeared incompetent,
- That the mid-circle of supernal motion,
- Which in some art is the Equator called,
- And aye remains between the Sun and Winter,
- For reason which thou sayest, departeth hence
- Tow’rds the Septentrion, what time the Hebrews
- Beheld it tow’rds the region of the heat.
- But, if it pleaseth thee, I fain would learn
- How far we have to go; for the hill rises
- Higher than eyes of mine have power to rise.”
- And he to me: “This mount is such, that ever
- At the beginning down below ’tis tiresome,
- And aye the more one climbs, the less it hurts.
- Therefore, when it shall seem so pleasant to thee,
- That going up shall be to thee as easy
- As going down the current in a boat,
- Then at this pathway’s ending thou wilt be;
- There to repose thy panting breath expect;
- No more I answer; and this I know for true.”
- And as he finished uttering these words,
- A voice close by us sounded: “Peradventure
- Thou wilt have need of sitting down ere that.”
- At sound thereof each one of us turned round,
- And saw upon the left hand a great rock,
- Which neither I nor he before had noticed.
- Thither we drew; and there were persons there
- Who in the shadow stood behind the rock,
- As one through indolence is wont to stand.
- And one of them, who seemed to me fatigued,
- Was sitting down, and both his knees embraced,
- Holding his face low down between them bowed.
- “O my sweet Lord,” I said, “do turn thine eye
- On him who shows himself more negligent
- Then even Sloth herself his sister were.”
- Then he turned round to us, and he gave heed,
- Just lifting up his eyes above his thigh,
- And said: “Now go thou up, for thou art valiant.”
- Then knew I who he was; and the distress,
- That still a little did my breathing quicken,
- My going to him hindered not; and after
- I came to him he hardly raised his head,
- Saying: “Hast thou seen clearly how the sun
- O’er thy left shoulder drives his chariot?”
- His sluggish attitude and his curt words
- A little unto laughter moved my lips;
- Then I began: “Belacqua, I grieve not
- For thee henceforth; but tell me, wherefore seated
- In this place art thou? Waitest thou an escort?
- Or has thy usual habit seized upon thee?”
- And he: “O brother, what’s the use of climbing?
- Since to my torment would not let me go
- The Angel of God, who sitteth at the gate.
- First heaven must needs so long revolve me round
- Outside thereof, as in my life it did,
- Since the good sighs I to the end postponed,
- Unless, e’er that, some prayer may bring me aid
- Which rises from a heart that lives in grace;
- What profit others that in heaven are heard not?”
- Meanwhile the Poet was before me mounting,
- And saying: “Come now; see the sun has touched
- Meridian, and from the shore the night
- Covers already with her foot Morocco.”
- Purgatorio: Canto V
- I had already from those shades departed,
- And followed in the footsteps of my Guide,
- When from behind, pointing his finger at me,
- One shouted: “See, it seems as if shone not
- The sunshine on the left of him below,
- And like one living seems he to conduct him.”
- Mine eyes I turned at utterance of these words,
- And saw them watching with astonishment
- But me, but me, and the light which was broken!
- “Why doth thy mind so occupy itself,”
- The Master said, “that thou thy pace dost slacken?
- What matters it to thee what here is whispered?
- Come after me, and let the people talk;
- Stand like a steadfast tower, that never wags
- Its top for all the blowing of the winds;
- For evermore the man in whom is springing
- Thought upon thought, removes from him the mark,
- Because the force of one the other weakens.”
- What could I say in answer but “I come”?
- I said it somewhat with that colour tinged
- Which makes a man of pardon sometimes worthy.
- Meanwhile along the mountain-side across
- Came people in advance of us a little,
- Singing the Miserere verse by verse.
- When they became aware I gave no place
- For passage of the sunshine through my body,
- They changed their song into a long, hoarse “Oh!”
- And two of them, in form of messengers,
- Ran forth to meet us, and demanded of us,
- “Of your condition make us cognisant.”
- And said my Master: “Ye can go your way
- And carry back again to those who sent you,
- That this one’s body is of very flesh.
- If they stood still because they saw his shadow,
- As I suppose, enough is answered them;
- Him let them honour, it may profit them.”
- Vapours enkindled saw I ne’er so swiftly
- At early nightfall cleave the air serene,
- Nor, at the set of sun, the clouds of August,
- But upward they returned in briefer time,
- And, on arriving, with the others wheeled
- Tow’rds us, like troops that run without a rein.
- “This folk that presses unto us is great,
- And cometh to implore thee,” said the Poet;
- “So still go onward, and in going listen.”
- “O soul that goest to beatitude
- With the same members wherewith thou wast born,”
- Shouting they came, “a little stay thy steps,
- Look, if thou e’er hast any of us seen,
- So that o’er yonder thou bear news of him;
- Ah, why dost thou go on? Ah, why not stay?
- Long since we all were slain by violence,
- And sinners even to the latest hour;
- Then did a light from heaven admonish us,
- So that, both penitent and pardoning, forth
- From life we issued reconciled to God,
- Who with desire to see Him stirs our hearts.”
- And I: “Although I gaze into your faces,
- No one I recognize; but if may please you
- Aught I have power to do, ye well-born spirits,
- Speak ye, and I will do it, by that peace
- Which, following the feet of such a Guide,
- From world to world makes itself sought by me.”
- And one began: “Each one has confidence
- In thy good offices without an oath,
- Unless the I cannot cut off the I will;
- Whence I, who speak alone before the others,
- Pray thee, if ever thou dost see the land
- That ’twixt Romagna lies and that of Charles,
- Thou be so courteous to me of thy prayers
- In Fano, that they pray for me devoutly,
- That I may purge away my grave offences.
- From thence was I; but the deep wounds, through which
- Issued the blood wherein I had my seat,
- Were dealt me in bosom of the Antenori,
- There where I thought to be the most secure;
- ’Twas he of Este had it done, who held me
- In hatred far beyond what justice willed.
- But if towards the Mira I had fled,
- When I was overtaken at Oriaco,
- I still should be o’er yonder where men breathe.
- I ran to the lagoon, and reeds and mire
- Did so entangle me I fell, and saw there
- A lake made from my veins upon the ground.”
- Then said another: “Ah, be that desire
- Fulfilled that draws thee to the lofty mountain,
- As thou with pious pity aidest mine.
- I was of Montefeltro, and am Buonconte;
- Giovanna, nor none other cares for me;
- Hence among these I go with downcast front.”
- And I to him: “What violence or what chance
- Led thee astray so far from Campaldino,
- That never has thy sepulture been known?”
- “Oh,” he replied, “at Casentino’s foot
- A river crosses named Archiano, born
- Above the Hermitage in Apennine.
- There where the name thereof becometh void
- Did I arrive, pierced through and through the throat,
- Fleeing on foot, and bloodying the plain;
- There my sight lost I, and my utterance
- Ceased in the name of Mary, and thereat
- I fell, and tenantless my flesh remained.
- Truth will I speak, repeat it to the living;
- God’s Angel took me up, and he of hell
- Shouted: ‘O thou from heaven, why dost thou rob me?
- Thou bearest away the eternal part of him,
- For one poor little tear, that takes him from me;
- But with the rest I’ll deal in other fashion!’
- Well knowest thou how in the air is gathered
- That humid vapour which to water turns,
- Soon as it rises where the cold doth grasp it.
- He joined that evil will, which aye seeks evil,
- To intellect, and moved the mist and wind
- By means of power, which his own nature gave;
- Thereafter, when the day was spent, the valley
- From Pratomagno to the great yoke covered
- With fog, and made the heaven above intent,
- So that the pregnant air to water changed;
- Down fell the rain, and to the gullies came
- Whate’er of it earth tolerated not;
- And as it mingled with the mighty torrents,
- Towards the royal river with such speed
- It headlong rushed, that nothing held it back.
- My frozen body near unto its outlet
- The robust Archian found, and into Arno
- Thrust it, and loosened from my breast the cross
- I made of me, when agony o’ercame me;
- It rolled me on the banks and on the bottom,
- Then with its booty covered and begirt me.”
- “Ah, when thou hast returned unto the world,
- And rested thee from thy long journeying,”
- After the second followed the third spirit,
- “Do thou remember me who am the Pia;
- Siena made me, unmade me Maremma;
- He knoweth it, who had encircled first,
- Espousing me, my finger with his gem.”
- Purgatorio: Canto VI
- Whene’er is broken up the game of Zara,
- He who has lost remains behind despondent,
- The throws repeating, and in sadness learns;
- The people with the other all depart;
- One goes in front, and one behind doth pluck him,
- And at his side one brings himself to mind;
- He pauses not, and this and that one hears;
- They crowd no more to whom his hand he stretches,
- And from the throng he thus defends himself.
- Even such was I in that dense multitude,
- Turning to them this way and that my face,
- And, promising, I freed myself therefrom.
- There was the Aretine, who from the arms
- Untamed of Ghin di Tacco had his death,
- And he who fleeing from pursuit was drowned.
- There was imploring with his hands outstretched
- Frederick Novello, and that one of Pisa
- Who made the good Marzucco seem so strong.
- I saw Count Orso; and the soul divided
- By hatred and by envy from its body,
- As it declared, and not for crime committed,
- Pierre de la Brosse I say; and here provide
- While still on earth the Lady of Brabant,
- So that for this she be of no worse flock!
- As soon as I was free from all those shades
- Who only prayed that some one else may pray,
- So as to hasten their becoming holy,
- Began I: “It appears that thou deniest,
- O light of mine, expressly in some text,
- That orison can bend decree of Heaven;
- And ne’ertheless these people pray for this.
- Might then their expectation bootless be?
- Or is to me thy saying not quite clear?”
- And he to me: “My writing is explicit,
- And not fallacious is the hope of these,
- If with sane intellect ’tis well regarded;
- For top of judgment doth not vail itself,
- Because the fire of love fulfils at once
- What he must satisfy who here installs him.
- And there, where I affirmed that proposition,
- Defect was not amended by a prayer,
- Because the prayer from God was separate.
- Verily, in so deep a questioning
- Do not decide, unless she tell it thee,
- Who light ’twixt truth and intellect shall be.
- I know not if thou understand; I speak
- Of Beatrice; her shalt thou see above,
- Smiling and happy, on this mountain’s top.”
- And I: “Good Leader, let us make more haste,
- For I no longer tire me as before;
- And see, e’en now the hill a shadow casts.”
- “We will go forward with this day” he answered,
- “As far as now is possible for us;
- But otherwise the fact is than thou thinkest.
- Ere thou art up there, thou shalt see return
- Him, who now hides himself behind the hill,
- So that thou dost not interrupt his rays.
- But yonder there behold! a soul that stationed
- All, all alone is looking hitherward;
- It will point out to us the quickest way.”
- We came up unto it; O Lombard soul,
- How lofty and disdainful thou didst bear thee,
- And grand and slow in moving of thine eyes!
- Nothing whatever did it say to us,
- But let us go our way, eying us only
- After the manner of a couchant lion;
- Still near to it Virgilius drew, entreating
- That it would point us out the best ascent;
- And it replied not unto his demand,
- But of our native land and of our life
- It questioned us; and the sweet Guide began:
- “Mantua,”—and the shade, all in itself recluse,
- Rose tow’rds him from the place where first it was,
- Saying: “O Mantuan, I am Sordello
- Of thine own land!” and one embraced the other.
- Ah! servile Italy, grief’s hostelry!
- A ship without a pilot in great tempest!
- No Lady thou of Provinces, but brothel!
- That noble soul was so impatient, only
- At the sweet sound of his own native land,
- To make its citizen glad welcome there;
- And now within thee are not without war
- Thy living ones, and one doth gnaw the other
- Of those whom one wall and one fosse shut in!
- Search, wretched one, all round about the shores
- Thy seaboard, and then look within thy bosom,
- If any part of thee enjoyeth peace!
- What boots it, that for thee Justinian
- The bridle mend, if empty be the saddle?
- Withouten this the shame would be the less.
- Ah! people, thou that oughtest to be devout,
- And to let Caesar sit upon the saddle,
- If well thou hearest what God teacheth thee,
- Behold how fell this wild beast has become,
- Being no longer by the spur corrected,
- Since thou hast laid thy hand upon the bridle.
- O German Albert! who abandonest
- Her that has grown recalcitrant and savage,
- And oughtest to bestride her saddle-bow,
- May a just judgment from the stars down fall
- Upon thy blood, and be it new and open,
- That thy successor may have fear thereof;
- Because thy father and thyself have suffered,
- By greed of those transalpine lands distrained,
- The garden of the empire to be waste.
- Come and behold Montecchi and Cappelletti,
- Monaldi and Fillippeschi, careless man!
- Those sad already, and these doubt-depressed!
- Come, cruel one! come and behold the oppression
- Of thy nobility, and cure their wounds,
- And thou shalt see how safe is Santafiore!
- Come and behold thy Rome, that is lamenting,
- Widowed, alone, and day and night exclaims,
- “My Caesar, why hast thou forsaken me?”
- Come and behold how loving are the people;
- And if for us no pity moveth thee,
- Come and be made ashamed of thy renown!
- And if it lawful be, O Jove Supreme!
- Who upon earth for us wast crucified,
- Are thy just eyes averted otherwhere?
- Or preparation is ’t, that, in the abyss
- Of thine own counsel, for some good thou makest
- From our perception utterly cut off?
- For all the towns of Italy are full
- Of tyrants, and becometh a Marcellus
- Each peasant churl who plays the partisan!
- My Florence! well mayst thou contented be
- With this digression, which concerns thee not,
- Thanks to thy people who such forethought take!
- Many at heart have justice, but shoot slowly,
- That unadvised they come not to the bow,
- But on their very lips thy people have it!
- Many refuse to bear the common burden;
- But thy solicitous people answereth
- Without being asked, and crieth: “I submit.”
- Now be thou joyful, for thou hast good reason;
- Thou affluent, thou in peace, thou full of wisdom!
- If I speak true, the event conceals it not.
- Athens and Lacedaemon, they who made
- The ancient laws, and were so civilized,
- Made towards living well a little sign
- Compared with thee, who makest such fine-spun
- Provisions, that to middle of November
- Reaches not what thou in October spinnest.
- How oft, within the time of thy remembrance,
- Laws, money, offices, and usages
- Hast thou remodelled, and renewed thy members?
- And if thou mind thee well, and see the light,
- Thou shalt behold thyself like a sick woman,
- Who cannot find repose upon her down,
- But by her tossing wardeth off her pain.
- Purgatorio: Canto VII
- After the gracious and glad salutations
- Had three and four times been reiterated,
- Sordello backward drew and said, “Who are you?”
- “Or ever to this mountain were directed
- The souls deserving to ascend to God,
- My bones were buried by Octavian.
- I am Virgilius; and for no crime else
- Did I lose heaven, than for not having faith;”
- In this wise then my Leader made reply.
- As one who suddenly before him sees
- Something whereat he marvels, who believes
- And yet does not, saying, “It is! it is not!”
- So he appeared; and then bowed down his brow,
- And with humility returned towards him,
- And, where inferiors embrace, embraced him.
- “O glory of the Latians, thou,” he said,
- “Through whom our language showed what it could do
- O pride eternal of the place I came from,
- What merit or what grace to me reveals thee?
- If I to hear thy words be worthy, tell me
- If thou dost come from Hell, and from what cloister.”
- “Through all the circles of the doleful realm,”
- Responded he, “have I come hitherward;
- Heaven’s power impelled me, and with that I come.
- I by not doing, not by doing, lost
- The sight of that high sun which thou desirest,
- And which too late by me was recognized.
- A place there is below not sad with torments,
- But darkness only, where the lamentations
- Have not the sound of wailing, but are sighs.
- There dwell I with the little innocents
- Snatched by the teeth of Death, or ever they
- Were from our human sinfulness exempt.
- There dwell I among those who the three saintly
- Virtues did not put on, and without vice
- The others knew and followed all of them.
- But if thou know and can, some indication
- Give us by which we may the sooner come
- Where Purgatory has its right beginning.”
- He answered: “No fixed place has been assigned us;
- ’Tis lawful for me to go up and round;
- So far as I can go, as guide I join thee.
- But see already how the day declines,
- And to go up by night we are not able;
- Therefore ’tis well to think of some fair sojourn.
- Souls are there on the right hand here withdrawn;
- If thou permit me I will lead thee to them,
- And thou shalt know them not without delight.”
- “How is this?” was the answer; “should one wish
- To mount by night would he prevented be
- By others? or mayhap would not have power?”
- And on the ground the good Sordello drew
- His finger, saying, “See, this line alone
- Thou couldst not pass after the sun is gone;
- Not that aught else would hindrance give, however,
- To going up, save the nocturnal darkness;
- This with the want of power the will perplexes.
- We might indeed therewith return below,
- And, wandering, walk the hill-side round about,
- While the horizon holds the day imprisoned.”
- Thereon my Lord, as if in wonder, said:
- “Do thou conduct us thither, where thou sayest
- That we can take delight in tarrying.”
- Little had we withdrawn us from that place,
- When I perceived the mount was hollowed out
- In fashion as the valleys here are hollowed.
- “Thitherward,” said that shade, “will we repair,
- Where of itself the hill-side makes a lap,
- And there for the new day will we await.”
- ’Twixt hill and plain there was a winding path
- Which led us to the margin of that dell,
- Where dies the border more than half away.
- Gold and fine silver, and scarlet and pearl-white,
- The Indian wood resplendent and serene,
- Fresh emerald the moment it is broken,
- By herbage and by flowers within that hollow
- Planted, each one in colour would be vanquished,
- As by its greater vanquished is the less.
- Nor in that place had nature painted only,
- But of the sweetness of a thousand odours
- Made there a mingled fragrance and unknown.
- “Salve Regina,” on the green and flowers
- There seated, singing, spirits I beheld,
- Which were not visible outside the valley.
- “Before the scanty sun now seeks his nest,”
- Began the Mantuan who had led us thither,
- “Among them do not wish me to conduct you.
- Better from off this ledge the acts and faces
- Of all of them will you discriminate,
- Than in the plain below received among them.
- He who sits highest, and the semblance bears
- Of having what he should have done neglected,
- And to the others’ song moves not his lips,
- Rudolph the Emperor was, who had the power
- To heal the wounds that Italy have slain,
- So that through others slowly she revives.
- The other, who in look doth comfort him,
- Governed the region where the water springs,
- The Moldau bears the Elbe, and Elbe the sea.
- His name was Ottocar; and in swaddling-clothes
- Far better he than bearded Winceslaus
- His son, who feeds in luxury and ease.
- And the small-nosed, who close in council seems
- With him that has an aspect so benign,
- Died fleeing and disflowering the lily;
- Look there, how he is beating at his breast!
- Behold the other one, who for his cheek
- Sighing has made of his own palm a bed;
- Father and father-in-law of France’s Pest
- Are they, and know his vicious life and lewd,
- And hence proceeds the grief that so doth pierce them.
- He who appears so stalwart, and chimes in,
- Singing, with that one of the manly nose,
- The cord of every valour wore begirt;
- And if as King had after him remained
- The stripling who in rear of him is sitting,
- Well had the valour passed from vase to vase,
- Which cannot of the other heirs be said.
- Frederick and Jacomo possess the realms,
- But none the better heritage possesses.
- Not oftentimes upriseth through the branches
- The probity of man; and this He wills
- Who gives it, so that we may ask of Him.
- Eke to the large-nosed reach my words, no less
- Than to the other, Pier, who with him sings;
- Whence Provence and Apulia grieve already
- The plant is as inferior to its seed,
- As more than Beatrice and Margaret
- Costanza boasteth of her husband still.
- Behold the monarch of the simple life,
- Harry of England, sitting there alone;
- He in his branches has a better issue.
- He who the lowest on the ground among them
- Sits looking upward, is the Marquis William,
- For whose sake Alessandria and her war
- Make Monferrat and Canavese weep.”
- Purgatorio: Canto VIII
- ’Twas now the hour that turneth back desire
- In those who sail the sea, and melts the heart,
- The day they’ve said to their sweet friends farewell,
- And the new pilgrim penetrates with love,
- If he doth hear from far away a bell
- That seemeth to deplore the dying day,
- When I began to make of no avail
- My hearing, and to watch one of the souls
- Uprisen, that begged attention with its hand.
- It joined and lifted upward both its palms,
- Fixing its eyes upon the orient,
- As if it said to God, “Naught else I care for.”
- “Te lucis ante” so devoutly issued
- Forth from its mouth, and with such dulcet notes,
- It made me issue forth from my own mind.
- And then the others, sweetly and devoutly,
- Accompanied it through all the hymn entire,
- Having their eyes on the supernal wheels.
- Here, Reader, fix thine eyes well on the truth,
- For now indeed so subtile is the veil,
- Surely to penetrate within is easy.
- I saw that army of the gentle-born
- Thereafterward in silence upward gaze,
- As if in expectation, pale and humble;
- And from on high come forth and down descend,
- I saw two Angels with two flaming swords,
- Truncated and deprived of their points.
- Green as the little leaflets just now born
- Their garments were, which, by their verdant pinions
- Beaten and blown abroad, they trailed behind.
- One just above us came to take his station,
- And one descended to the opposite bank,
- So that the people were contained between them.
- Clearly in them discerned I the blond head;
- But in their faces was the eye bewildered,
- As faculty confounded by excess.
- “From Mary’s bosom both of them have come,”
- Sordello said, “as guardians of the valley
- Against the serpent, that will come anon.”
- Whereupon I, who knew not by what road,
- Turned round about, and closely drew myself,
- Utterly frozen, to the faithful shoulders.
- And once again Sordello: “Now descend we
- ’Mid the grand shades, and we will speak to them;
- Right pleasant will it be for them to see you.”
- Only three steps I think that I descended,
- And was below, and saw one who was looking
- Only at me, as if he fain would know me.
- Already now the air was growing dark,
- But not so that between his eyes and mine
- It did not show what it before locked up.
- Tow’rds me he moved, and I tow’rds him did move;
- Noble Judge Nino! how it me delighted,
- When I beheld thee not among the damned!
- No greeting fair was left unsaid between us;
- Then asked he: “How long is it since thou camest
- O’er the far waters to the mountain’s foot?”
- “Oh!” said I to him, “through the dismal places
- I came this morn; and am in the first life,
- Albeit the other, going thus, I gain.”
- And on the instant my reply was heard,
- He and Sordello both shrank back from me,
- Like people who are suddenly bewildered.
- One to Virgilius, and the other turned
- To one who sat there, crying, “Up, Currado!
- Come and behold what God in grace has willed!”
- Then, turned to me: “By that especial grace
- Thou owest unto Him, who so conceals
- His own first wherefore, that it has no ford,
- When thou shalt be beyond the waters wide,
- Tell my Giovanna that she pray for me,
- Where answer to the innocent is made.
- I do not think her mother loves me more,
- Since she has laid aside her wimple white,
- Which she, unhappy, needs must wish again.
- Through her full easily is comprehended
- How long in woman lasts the fire of love,
- If eye or touch do not relight it often.
- So fair a hatchment will not make for her
- The Viper marshalling the Milanese
- A-field, as would have made Gallura’s Cock.”
- In this wise spake he, with the stamp impressed
- Upon his aspect of that righteous zeal
- Which measurably burneth in the heart.
- My greedy eyes still wandered up to heaven,
- Still to that point where slowest are the stars,
- Even as a wheel the nearest to its axle.
- And my Conductor: “Son, what dost thou gaze at
- Up there?” And I to him: “At those three torches
- With which this hither pole is all on fire.”
- And he to me: “The four resplendent stars
- Thou sawest this morning are down yonder low,
- And these have mounted up to where those were.”
- As he was speaking, to himself Sordello
- Drew him, and said, “Lo there our Adversary!”
- And pointed with his finger to look thither.
- Upon the side on which the little valley
- No barrier hath, a serpent was; perchance
- The same which gave to Eve the bitter food.
- ’Twixt grass and flowers came on the evil streak,
- Turning at times its head about, and licking
- Its back like to a beast that smoothes itself.
- I did not see, and therefore cannot say
- How the celestial falcons ’gan to move,
- But well I saw that they were both in motion.
- Hearing the air cleft by their verdant wings,
- The serpent fled, and round the Angels wheeled,
- Up to their stations flying back alike.
- The shade that to the Judge had near approached
- When he had called, throughout that whole assault
- Had not a moment loosed its gaze on me.
- “So may the light that leadeth thee on high
- Find in thine own free-will as much of wax
- As needful is up to the highest azure,”
- Began it, “if some true intelligence
- Of Valdimagra or its neighbourhood
- Thou knowest, tell it me, who once was great there.
- Currado Malaspina was I called;
- I’m not the elder, but from him descended;
- To mine I bore the love which here refineth.”
- “O,” said I unto him, “through your domains
- I never passed, but where is there a dwelling
- Throughout all Europe, where they are not known?
- That fame, which doeth honour to your house,
- Proclaims its Signors and proclaims its land,
- So that he knows of them who ne’er was there.
- And, as I hope for heaven, I swear to you
- Your honoured family in naught abates
- The glory of the purse and of the sword.
- It is so privileged by use and nature,
- That though a guilty head misguide the world,
- Sole it goes right, and scorns the evil way.”
- And he: “Now go; for the sun shall not lie
- Seven times upon the pillow which the Ram
- With all his four feet covers and bestrides,
- Before that such a courteous opinion
- Shall in the middle of thy head be nailed
- With greater nails than of another’s speech,
- Unless the course of justice standeth still.”
- Purgatorio: Canto IX
- The concubine of old Tithonus now
- Gleamed white upon the eastern balcony,
- Forth from the arms of her sweet paramour;
- With gems her forehead all relucent was,
- Set in the shape of that cold animal
- Which with its tail doth smite amain the nations,
- And of the steps, with which she mounts, the Night
- Had taken two in that place where we were,
- And now the third was bending down its wings;
- When I, who something had of Adam in me,
- Vanquished by sleep, upon the grass reclined,
- There were all five of us already sat.
- Just at the hour when her sad lay begins
- The little swallow, near unto the morning,
- Perchance in memory of her former woes,
- And when the mind of man, a wanderer
- More from the flesh, and less by thought imprisoned,
- Almost prophetic in its visions is,
- In dreams it seemed to me I saw suspended
- An eagle in the sky, with plumes of gold,
- With wings wide open, and intent to stoop,
- And this, it seemed to me, was where had been
- By Ganymede his kith and kin abandoned,
- When to the high consistory he was rapt.
- I thought within myself, perchance he strikes
- From habit only here, and from elsewhere
- Disdains to bear up any in his feet.
- Then wheeling somewhat more, it seemed to me,
- Terrible as the lightning he descended,
- And snatched me upward even to the fire.
- Therein it seemed that he and I were burning,
- And the imagined fire did scorch me so,
- That of necessity my sleep was broken.
- Not otherwise Achilles started up,
- Around him turning his awakened eyes,
- And knowing not the place in which he was,
- What time from Chiron stealthily his mother
- Carried him sleeping in her arms to Scyros,
- Wherefrom the Greeks withdrew him afterwards,
- Than I upstarted, when from off my face
- Sleep fled away; and pallid I became,
- As doth the man who freezes with affright.
- Only my Comforter was at my side,
- And now the sun was more than two hours high,
- And turned towards the sea-shore was my face.
- “Be not intimidated,” said my Lord,
- “Be reassured, for all is well with us;
- Do not restrain, but put forth all thy strength.
- Thou hast at length arrived at Purgatory;
- See there the cliff that closes it around;
- See there the entrance, where it seems disjoined.
- Whilom at dawn, which doth precede the day,
- When inwardly thy spirit was asleep
- Upon the flowers that deck the land below,
- There came a Lady and said: ‘I am Lucia;
- Let me take this one up, who is asleep;
- So will I make his journey easier for him.’
- Sordello and the other noble shapes
- Remained; she took thee, and, as day grew bright,
- Upward she came, and I upon her footsteps.
- She laid thee here; and first her beauteous eyes
- That open entrance pointed out to me;
- Then she and sleep together went away.”
- In guise of one whose doubts are reassured,
- And who to confidence his fear doth change,
- After the truth has been discovered to him,
- So did I change; and when without disquiet
- My Leader saw me, up along the cliff
- He moved, and I behind him, tow’rd the height.
- Reader, thou seest well how I exalt
- My theme, and therefore if with greater art
- I fortify it, marvel not thereat.
- Nearer approached we, and were in such place,
- That there, where first appeared to me a rift
- Like to a crevice that disparts a wall,
- I saw a portal, and three stairs beneath,
- Diverse in colour, to go up to it,
- And a gate-keeper, who yet spake no word.
- And as I opened more and more mine eyes,
- I saw him seated on the highest stair,
- Such in the face that I endured it not.
- And in his hand he had a naked sword,
- Which so reflected back the sunbeams tow’rds us,
- That oft in vain I lifted up mine eyes.
- “Tell it from where you are, what is’t you wish?”
- Began he to exclaim; “where is the escort?
- Take heed your coming hither harm you not!”
- “A Lady of Heaven, with these things conversant,”
- My Master answered him, “but even now
- Said to us, ‘Thither go; there is the portal.’”
- “And may she speed your footsteps in all good,”
- Again began the courteous janitor;
- “Come forward then unto these stairs of ours.”
- Thither did we approach; and the first stair
- Was marble white, so polished and so smooth,
- I mirrored myself therein as I appear.
- The second, tinct of deeper hue than perse,
- Was of a calcined and uneven stone,
- Cracked all asunder lengthwise and across.
- The third, that uppermost rests massively,
- Porphyry seemed to me, as flaming red
- As blood that from a vein is spirting forth.
- Both of his feet was holding upon this
- The Angel of God, upon the threshold seated,
- Which seemed to me a stone of diamond.
- Along the three stairs upward with good will
- Did my Conductor draw me, saying: “Ask
- Humbly that he the fastening may undo.”
- Devoutly at the holy feet I cast me,
- For mercy’s sake besought that he would open,
- But first upon my breast three times I smote.
- Seven P’s upon my forehead he described
- With the sword’s point, and, “Take heed that thou wash
- These wounds, when thou shalt be within,” he said.
- Ashes, or earth that dry is excavated,
- Of the same colour were with his attire,
- And from beneath it he drew forth two keys.
- One was of gold, and the other was of silver;
- First with the white, and after with the yellow,
- Plied he the door, so that I was content.
- “Whenever faileth either of these keys
- So that it turn not rightly in the lock,”
- He said to us, “this entrance doth not open.
- More precious one is, but the other needs
- More art and intellect ere it unlock,
- For it is that which doth the knot unloose.
- From Peter I have them; and he bade me err
- Rather in opening than in keeping shut,
- If people but fall down before my feet.”
- Then pushed the portals of the sacred door,
- Exclaiming: “Enter; but I give you warning
- That forth returns whoever looks behind.”
- And when upon their hinges were turned round
- The swivels of that consecrated gate,
- Which are of metal, massive and sonorous,
- Roared not so loud, nor so discordant seemed
- Tarpeia, when was ta’en from it the good
- Metellus, wherefore meagre it remained.
- At the first thunder-peal I turned attentive,
- And “Te Deum laudamus” seemed to hear
- In voices mingled with sweet melody.
- Exactly such an image rendered me
- That which I heard, as we are wont to catch,
- When people singing with the organ stand;
- For now we hear, and now hear not, the words.
- Purgatorio: Canto X
- When we had crossed the threshold of the door
- Which the perverted love of souls disuses,
- Because it makes the crooked way seem straight,
- Re-echoing I heard it closed again;
- And if I had turned back mine eyes upon it,
- What for my failing had been fit excuse?
- We mounted upward through a rifted rock,
- Which undulated to this side and that,
- Even as a wave receding and advancing.
- “Here it behoves us use a little art,”
- Began my Leader, “to adapt ourselves
- Now here, now there, to the receding side.”
- And this our footsteps so infrequent made,
- That sooner had the moon’s decreasing disk
- Regained its bed to sink again to rest,
- Than we were forth from out that needle’s eye;
- But when we free and in the open were,
- There where the mountain backward piles itself,
- I wearied out, and both of us uncertain
- About our way, we stopped upon a plain
- More desolate than roads across the deserts.
- From where its margin borders on the void,
- To foot of the high bank that ever rises,
- A human body three times told would measure;
- And far as eye of mine could wing its flight,
- Now on the left, and on the right flank now,
- The same this cornice did appear to me.
- Thereon our feet had not been moved as yet,
- When I perceived the embankment round about,
- Which all right of ascent had interdicted,
- To be of marble white, and so adorned
- With sculptures, that not only Polycletus,
- But Nature’s self, had there been put to shame.
- The Angel, who came down to earth with tidings
- Of peace, that had been wept for many a year,
- And opened Heaven from its long interdict,
- In front of us appeared so truthfully
- There sculptured in a gracious attitude,
- He did not seem an image that is silent.
- One would have sworn that he was saying, “Ave;”
- For she was there in effigy portrayed
- Who turned the key to ope the exalted love,
- And in her mien this language had impressed,
- “Ecce ancilla Dei,” as distinctly
- As any figure stamps itself in wax.
- “Keep not thy mind upon one place alone,”
- The gentle Master said, who had me standing
- Upon that side where people have their hearts;
- Whereat I moved mine eyes, and I beheld
- In rear of Mary, and upon that side
- Where he was standing who conducted me,
- Another story on the rock imposed;
- Wherefore I passed Virgilius and drew near,
- So that before mine eyes it might be set.
- There sculptured in the self-same marble were
- The cart and oxen, drawing the holy ark,
- Wherefore one dreads an office not appointed.
- People appeared in front, and all of them
- In seven choirs divided, of two senses
- Made one say “No,” the other, “Yes, they sing.”
- Likewise unto the smoke of the frankincense,
- Which there was imaged forth, the eyes and nose
- Were in the yes and no discordant made.
- Preceded there the vessel benedight,
- Dancing with girded loins, the humble Psalmist,
- And more and less than King was he in this.
- Opposite, represented at the window
- Of a great palace, Michal looked upon him,
- Even as a woman scornful and afflicted.
- I moved my feet from where I had been standing,
- To examine near at hand another story,
- Which after Michal glimmered white upon me.
- There the high glory of the Roman Prince
- Was chronicled, whose great beneficence
- Moved Gregory to his great victory;
- ’Tis of the Emperor Trajan I am speaking;
- And a poor widow at his bridle stood,
- In attitude of weeping and of grief.
- Around about him seemed it thronged and full
- Of cavaliers, and the eagles in the gold
- Above them visibly in the wind were moving.
- The wretched woman in the midst of these
- Seemed to be saying: “Give me vengeance, Lord,
- For my dead son, for whom my heart is breaking.”
- And he to answer her: “Now wait until
- I shall return.” And she: “My Lord,” like one
- In whom grief is impatient, “shouldst thou not
- Return?” And he: “Who shall be where I am
- Will give it thee.” And she: “Good deed of others
- What boots it thee, if thou neglect thine own?”
- Whence he: “Now comfort thee, for it behoves me
- That I discharge my duty ere I move;
- Justice so wills, and pity doth retain me.”
- He who on no new thing has ever looked
- Was the creator of this visible language,
- Novel to us, for here it is not found.
- While I delighted me in contemplating
- The images of such humility,
- And dear to look on for their Maker’s sake,
- “Behold, upon this side, but rare they make
- Their steps,” the Poet murmured, “many people;
- These will direct us to the lofty stairs.”
- Mine eyes, that in beholding were intent
- To see new things, of which they curious are,
- In turning round towards him were not slow.
- But still I wish not, Reader, thou shouldst swerve
- From thy good purposes, because thou hearest
- How God ordaineth that the debt be paid;
- Attend not to the fashion of the torment,
- Think of what follows; think that at the worst
- It cannot reach beyond the mighty sentence.
- “Master,” began I, “that which I behold
- Moving towards us seems to me not persons,
- And what I know not, so in sight I waver.”
- And he to me: “The grievous quality
- Of this their torment bows them so to earth,
- That my own eyes at first contended with it;
- But look there fixedly, and disentangle
- By sight what cometh underneath those stones;
- Already canst thou see how each is stricken.”
- O ye proud Christians! wretched, weary ones!
- Who, in the vision of the mind infirm
- Confidence have in your backsliding steps,
- Do ye not comprehend that we are worms,
- Born to bring forth the angelic butterfly
- That flieth unto judgment without screen?
- Why floats aloft your spirit high in air?
- Like are ye unto insects undeveloped,
- Even as the worm in whom formation fails!
- As to sustain a ceiling or a roof,
- In place of corbel, oftentimes a figure
- Is seen to join its knees unto its breast,
- Which makes of the unreal real anguish
- Arise in him who sees it, fashioned thus
- Beheld I those, when I had ta’en good heed.
- True is it, they were more or less bent down,
- According as they more or less were laden;
- And he who had most patience in his looks
- Weeping did seem to say, “I can no more!”
- Purgatorio: Canto XI
- “Our Father, thou who dwellest in the heavens,
- Not circumscribed, but from the greater love
- Thou bearest to the first effects on high,
- Praised be thy name and thine omnipotence
- By every creature, as befitting is
- To render thanks to thy sweet effluence.
- Come unto us the peace of thy dominion,
- For unto it we cannot of ourselves,
- If it come not, with all our intellect.
- Even as thine own Angels of their will
- Make sacrifice to thee, Hosanna singing,
- So may all men make sacrifice of theirs.
- Give unto us this day our daily manna,
- Withouten which in this rough wilderness
- Backward goes he who toils most to advance.
- And even as we the trespass we have suffered
- Pardon in one another, pardon thou
- Benignly, and regard not our desert.
- Our virtue, which is easily o’ercome,
- Put not to proof with the old Adversary,
- But thou from him who spurs it so, deliver.
- This last petition verily, dear Lord,
- Not for ourselves is made, who need it not,
- But for their sake who have remained behind us.”
- Thus for themselves and us good furtherance
- Those shades imploring, went beneath a weight
- Like unto that of which we sometimes dream,
- Unequally in anguish round and round
- And weary all, upon that foremost cornice,
- Purging away the smoke-stains of the world.
- If there good words are always said for us,
- What may not here be said and done for them,
- By those who have a good root to their will?
- Well may we help them wash away the marks
- That hence they carried, so that clean and light
- They may ascend unto the starry wheels!
- “Ah! so may pity and justice you disburden
- Soon, that ye may have power to move the wing,
- That shall uplift you after your desire,
- Show us on which hand tow’rd the stairs the way
- Is shortest, and if more than one the passes,
- Point us out that which least abruptly falls;
- For he who cometh with me, through the burden
- Of Adam’s flesh wherewith he is invested,
- Against his will is chary of his climbing.”
- The words of theirs which they returned to those
- That he whom I was following had spoken,
- It was not manifest from whom they came,
- But it was said: “To the right hand come with us
- Along the bank, and ye shall find a pass
- Possible for living person to ascend.
- And were I not impeded by the stone,
- Which this proud neck of mine doth subjugate,
- Whence I am forced to hold my visage down,
- Him, who still lives and does not name himself,
- Would I regard, to see if I may know him
- And make him piteous unto this burden.
- A Latian was I, and born of a great Tuscan;
- Guglielmo Aldobrandeschi was my father;
- I know not if his name were ever with you.
- The ancient blood and deeds of gallantry
- Of my progenitors so arrogant made me
- That, thinking not upon the common mother,
- All men I held in scorn to such extent
- I died therefor, as know the Sienese,
- And every child in Campagnatico.
- I am Omberto; and not to me alone
- Has pride done harm, but all my kith and kin
- Has with it dragged into adversity.
- And here must I this burden bear for it
- Till God be satisfied, since I did not
- Among the living, here among the dead.”
- Listening I downward bent my countenance;
- And one of them, not this one who was speaking,
- Twisted himself beneath the weight that cramps him,
- And looked at me, and knew me, and called out,
- Keeping his eyes laboriously fixed
- On me, who all bowed down was going with them.
- “O,” asked I him, “art thou not Oderisi,
- Agobbio’s honour, and honour of that art
- Which is in Paris called illuminating?”
- “Brother,” said he, “more laughing are the leaves
- Touched by the brush of Franco Bolognese;
- All his the honour now, and mine in part.
- In sooth I had not been so courteous
- While I was living, for the great desire
- Of excellence, on which my heart was bent.
- Here of such pride is paid the forfeiture;
- And yet I should not be here, were it not
- That, having power to sin, I turned to God.
- O thou vain glory of the human powers,
- How little green upon thy summit lingers,
- If’t be not followed by an age of grossness!
- In painting Cimabue thought that he
- Should hold the field, now Giotto has the cry,
- So that the other’s fame is growing dim.
- So has one Guido from the other taken
- The glory of our tongue, and he perchance
- Is born, who from the nest shall chase them both.
- Naught is this mundane rumour but a breath
- Of wind, that comes now this way and now that,
- And changes name, because it changes side.
- What fame shalt thou have more, if old peel off
- From thee thy flesh, than if thou hadst been dead
- Before thou left the ‘pappo’ and the ‘dindi,’
- Ere pass a thousand years? which is a shorter
- Space to the eterne, than twinkling of an eye
- Unto the circle that in heaven wheels slowest.
- With him, who takes so little of the road
- In front of me, all Tuscany resounded;
- And now he scarce is lisped of in Siena,
- Where he was lord, what time was overthrown
- The Florentine delirium, that superb
- Was at that day as now ’tis prostitute.
- Your reputation is the colour of grass
- Which comes and goes, and that discolours it
- By which it issues green from out the earth.”
- And I: “Thy true speech fills my heart with good
- Humility, and great tumour thou assuagest;
- But who is he, of whom just now thou spakest?”
- “That,” he replied, “is Provenzan Salvani,
- And he is here because he had presumed
- To bring Siena all into his hands.
- He has gone thus, and goeth without rest
- E’er since he died; such money renders back
- In payment he who is on earth too daring.”
- And I: “If every spirit who awaits
- The verge of life before that he repent,
- Remains below there and ascends not hither,
- (Unless good orison shall him bestead,)
- Until as much time as he lived be passed,
- How was the coming granted him in largess?”
- “When he in greatest splendour lived,” said he,
- “Freely upon the Campo of Siena,
- All shame being laid aside, he placed himself;
- And there to draw his friend from the duress
- Which in the prison-house of Charles he suffered,
- He brought himself to tremble in each vein.
- I say no more, and know that I speak darkly;
- Yet little time shall pass before thy neighbours
- Will so demean themselves that thou canst gloss it.
- This action has released him from those confines.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XII
- Abreast, like oxen going in a yoke,
- I with that heavy-laden soul went on,
- As long as the sweet pedagogue permitted;
- But when he said, “Leave him, and onward pass,
- For here ’tis good that with the sail and oars,
- As much as may be, each push on his barque;”
- Upright, as walking wills it, I redressed
- My person, notwithstanding that my thoughts
- Remained within me downcast and abashed.
- I had moved on, and followed willingly
- The footsteps of my Master, and we both
- Already showed how light of foot we were,
- When unto me he said: “Cast down thine eyes;
- ’Twere well for thee, to alleviate the way,
- To look upon the bed beneath thy feet.”
- As, that some memory may exist of them,
- Above the buried dead their tombs in earth
- Bear sculptured on them what they were before;
- Whence often there we weep for them afresh,
- From pricking of remembrance, which alone
- To the compassionate doth set its spur;
- So saw I there, but of a better semblance
- In point of artifice, with figures covered
- Whate’er as pathway from the mount projects.
- I saw that one who was created noble
- More than all other creatures, down from heaven
- Flaming with lightnings fall upon one side.
- I saw Briareus smitten by the dart
- Celestial, lying on the other side,
- Heavy upon the earth by mortal frost.
- I saw Thymbraeus, Pallas saw, and Mars,
- Still clad in armour round about their father,
- Gaze at the scattered members of the giants.
- I saw, at foot of his great labour, Nimrod,
- As if bewildered, looking at the people
- Who had been proud with him in Sennaar.
- O Niobe! with what afflicted eyes
- Thee I beheld upon the pathway traced,
- Between thy seven and seven children slain!
- O Saul! how fallen upon thy proper sword
- Didst thou appear there lifeless in Gilboa,
- That felt thereafter neither rain nor dew!
- O mad Arachne! so I thee beheld
- E’en then half spider, sad upon the shreds
- Of fabric wrought in evil hour for thee!
- O Rehoboam! no more seems to threaten
- Thine image there; but full of consternation
- A chariot bears it off, when none pursues!
- Displayed moreo’er the adamantine pavement
- How unto his own mother made Alcmaeon
- Costly appear the luckless ornament;
- Displayed how his own sons did throw themselves
- Upon Sennacherib within the temple,
- And how, he being dead, they left him there;
- Displayed the ruin and the cruel carnage
- That Tomyris wrought, when she to Cyrus said,
- “Blood didst thou thirst for, and with blood I glut thee!”
- Displayed how routed fled the Assyrians
- After that Holofernes had been slain,
- And likewise the remainder of that slaughter.
- I saw there Troy in ashes and in caverns;
- O Ilion! thee, how abject and debased,
- Displayed the image that is there discerned!
- Whoe’er of pencil master was or stile,
- That could portray the shades and traits which there
- Would cause each subtile genius to admire?
- Dead seemed the dead, the living seemed alive;
- Better than I saw not who saw the truth,
- All that I trod upon while bowed I went.
- Now wax ye proud, and on with looks uplifted,
- Ye sons of Eve, and bow not down your faces
- So that ye may behold your evil ways!
- More of the mount by us was now encompassed,
- And far more spent the circuit of the sun,
- Than had the mind preoccupied imagined,
- When he, who ever watchful in advance
- Was going on, began: “Lift up thy head,
- ’Tis no more time to go thus meditating.
- Lo there an Angel who is making haste
- To come towards us; lo, returning is
- From service of the day the sixth handmaiden.
- With reverence thine acts and looks adorn,
- So that he may delight to speed us upward;
- Think that this day will never dawn again.”
- I was familiar with his admonition
- Ever to lose no time; so on this theme
- He could not unto me speak covertly.
- Towards us came the being beautiful
- Vested in white, and in his countenance
- Such as appears the tremulous morning star.
- His arms he opened, and opened then his wings;
- “Come,” said he, “near at hand here are the steps,
- And easy from henceforth is the ascent.”
- At this announcement few are they who come!
- O human creatures, born to soar aloft,
- Why fall ye thus before a little wind?
- He led us on to where the rock was cleft;
- There smote upon my forehead with his wings,
- Then a safe passage promised unto me.
- As on the right hand, to ascend the mount
- Where seated is the church that lordeth it
- O’er the well-guided, above Rubaconte,
- The bold abruptness of the ascent is broken
- By stairways that were made there in the age
- When still were safe the ledger and the stave,
- E’en thus attempered is the bank which falls
- Sheer downward from the second circle there;
- But on this, side and that the high rock graze.
- As we were turning thitherward our persons,
- “Beati pauperes spiritu,” voices
- Sang in such wise that speech could tell it not.
- Ah me! how different are these entrances
- From the Infernal! for with anthems here
- One enters, and below with wild laments.
- We now were hunting up the sacred stairs,
- And it appeared to me by far more easy
- Than on the plain it had appeared before.
- Whence I: “My Master, say, what heavy thing
- Has been uplifted from me, so that hardly
- Aught of fatigue is felt by me in walking?”
- He answered: “When the P’s which have remained
- Still on thy face almost obliterate
- Shall wholly, as the first is, be erased,
- Thy feet will be so vanquished by good will,
- That not alone they shall not feel fatigue,
- But urging up will be to them delight.”
- Then did I even as they do who are going
- With something on the head to them unknown,
- Unless the signs of others make them doubt,
- Wherefore the hand to ascertain is helpful,
- And seeks and finds, and doth fulfill the office
- Which cannot be accomplished by the sight;
- And with the fingers of the right hand spread
- I found but six the letters, that had carved
- Upon my temples he who bore the keys;
- Upon beholding which my Leader smiled.
- Purgatorio: Canto XIII
- We were upon the summit of the stairs,
- Where for the second time is cut away
- The mountain, which ascending shriveth all.
- There in like manner doth a cornice bind
- The hill all round about, as does the first,
- Save that its arc more suddenly is curved.
- Shade is there none, nor sculpture that appears;
- So seems the bank, and so the road seems smooth,
- With but the livid colour of the stone.
- “If to inquire we wait for people here,”
- The Poet said, “I fear that peradventure
- Too much delay will our election have.”
- Then steadfast on the sun his eyes he fixed,
- Made his right side the centre of his motion,
- And turned the left part of himself about.
- “O thou sweet light! with trust in whom I enter
- Upon this novel journey, do thou lead us,”
- Said he, “as one within here should be led.
- Thou warmest the world, thou shinest over it;
- If other reason prompt not otherwise,
- Thy rays should evermore our leaders be!”
- As much as here is counted for a mile,
- So much already there had we advanced
- In little time, by dint of ready will;
- And tow’rds us there were heard to fly, albeit
- They were not visible, spirits uttering
- Unto Love’s table courteous invitations,
- The first voice that passed onward in its flight,
- “Vinum non habent,” said in accents loud,
- And went reiterating it behind us.
- And ere it wholly grew inaudible
- Because of distance, passed another, crying,
- “I am Orestes!” and it also stayed not.
- “O,” said I, “Father, these, what voices are they?”
- And even as I asked, behold the third,
- Saying: “Love those from whom ye have had evil!”
- And the good Master said: “This circle scourges
- The sin of envy, and on that account
- Are drawn from love the lashes of the scourge.
- The bridle of another sound shall be;
- I think that thou wilt hear it, as I judge,
- Before thou comest to the Pass of Pardon.
- But fix thine eyes athwart the air right steadfast,
- And people thou wilt see before us sitting,
- And each one close against the cliff is seated.”
- Then wider than at first mine eyes I opened;
- I looked before me, and saw shades with mantles
- Not from the colour of the stone diverse.
- And when we were a little farther onward,
- I heard a cry of, “Mary, pray for us!”
- A cry of, “Michael, Peter, and all Saints!”
- I do not think there walketh still on earth
- A man so hard, that he would not be pierced
- With pity at what afterward I saw.
- For when I had approached so near to them
- That manifest to me their acts became,
- Drained was I at the eyes by heavy grief.
- Covered with sackcloth vile they seemed to me,
- And one sustained the other with his shoulder,
- And all of them were by the bank sustained.
- Thus do the blind, in want of livelihood,
- Stand at the doors of churches asking alms,
- And one upon another leans his head,
- So that in others pity soon may rise,
- Not only at the accent of their words,
- But at their aspect, which no less implores.
- And as unto the blind the sun comes not,
- So to the shades, of whom just now I spake,
- Heaven’s light will not be bounteous of itself;
- For all their lids an iron wire transpierces,
- And sews them up, as to a sparhawk wild
- Is done, because it will not quiet stay.
- To me it seemed, in passing, to do outrage,
- Seeing the others without being seen;
- Wherefore I turned me to my counsel sage.
- Well knew he what the mute one wished to say,
- And therefore waited not for my demand,
- But said: “Speak, and be brief, and to the point.”
- I had Virgilius upon that side
- Of the embankment from which one may fall,
- Since by no border ’tis engarlanded;
- Upon the other side of me I had
- The shades devout, who through the horrible seam
- Pressed out the tears so that they bathed their cheeks.
- To them I turned me, and, “O people, certain,”
- Began I, “of beholding the high light,
- Which your desire has solely in its care,
- So may grace speedily dissolve the scum
- Upon your consciences, that limpidly
- Through them descend the river of the mind,
- Tell me, for dear ’twill be to me and gracious,
- If any soul among you here is Latian,
- And ’twill perchance be good for him I learn it.”
- “O brother mine, each one is citizen
- Of one true city; but thy meaning is,
- Who may have lived in Italy a pilgrim.”
- By way of answer this I seemed to hear
- A little farther on than where I stood,
- Whereat I made myself still nearer heard.
- Among the rest I saw a shade that waited
- In aspect, and should any one ask how,
- Its chin it lifted upward like a blind man.
- “Spirit,” I said, “who stoopest to ascend,
- If thou art he who did reply to me,
- Make thyself known to me by place or name.”
- “Sienese was I,” it replied, “and with
- The others here recleanse my guilty life,
- Weeping to Him to lend himself to us.
- Sapient I was not, although I Sapia
- Was called, and I was at another’s harm
- More happy far than at my own good fortune.
- And that thou mayst not think that I deceive thee,
- Hear if I was as foolish as I tell thee.
- The arc already of my years descending,
- My fellow-citizens near unto Colle
- Were joined in battle with their adversaries,
- And I was praying God for what he willed.
- Routed were they, and turned into the bitter
- Passes of flight; and I, the chase beholding,
- A joy received unequalled by all others;
- So that I lifted upward my bold face
- Crying to God, ‘Henceforth I fear thee not,’
- As did the blackbird at the little sunshine.
- Peace I desired with God at the extreme
- Of my existence, and as yet would not
- My debt have been by penitence discharged,
- Had it not been that in remembrance held me
- Pier Pettignano in his holy prayers,
- Who out of charity was grieved for me.
- But who art thou, that into our conditions
- Questioning goest, and hast thine eyes unbound
- As I believe, and breathing dost discourse?”
- “Mine eyes,” I said, “will yet be here ta’en from me,
- But for short space; for small is the offence
- Committed by their being turned with envy.
- Far greater is the fear, wherein suspended
- My soul is, of the torment underneath,
- For even now the load down there weighs on me.”
- And she to me: “Who led thee, then, among us
- Up here, if to return below thou thinkest?”
- And I: “He who is with me, and speaks not;
- And living am I; therefore ask of me,
- Spirit elect, if thou wouldst have me move
- O’er yonder yet my mortal feet for thee.”
- “O, this is such a novel thing to hear,”
- She answered, “that great sign it is God loves thee;
- Therefore with prayer of thine sometimes assist me.
- And I implore, by what thou most desirest,
- If e’er thou treadest the soil of Tuscany,
- Well with my kindred reinstate my fame.
- Them wilt thou see among that people vain
- Who hope in Talamone, and will lose there
- More hope than in discovering the Diana;
- But there still more the admirals will lose.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XIV
- “Who is this one that goes about our mountain,
- Or ever Death has given him power of flight,
- And opes his eyes and shuts them at his will?”
- “I know not who, but know he’s not alone;
- Ask him thyself, for thou art nearer to him,
- And gently, so that he may speak, accost him.”
- Thus did two spirits, leaning tow’rds each other,
- Discourse about me there on the right hand;
- Then held supine their faces to address me.
- And said the one: “O soul, that, fastened still
- Within the body, tow’rds the heaven art going,
- For charity console us, and declare
- Whence comest and who art thou; for thou mak’st us
- As much to marvel at this grace of thine
- As must a thing that never yet has been.”
- And I: “Through midst of Tuscany there wanders
- A streamlet that is born in Falterona,
- And not a hundred miles of course suffice it;
- From thereupon do I this body bring.
- To tell you who I am were speech in vain,
- Because my name as yet makes no great noise.”
- “If well thy meaning I can penetrate
- With intellect of mine,” then answered me
- He who first spake, “thou speakest of the Arno.”
- And said the other to him: “Why concealed
- This one the appellation of that river,
- Even as a man doth of things horrible?”
- And thus the shade that questioned was of this
- Himself acquitted: “I know not; but truly
- ’Tis fit the name of such a valley perish;
- For from its fountain-head (where is so pregnant
- The Alpine mountain whence is cleft Peloro
- That in few places it that mark surpasses)
- To where it yields itself in restoration
- Of what the heaven doth of the sea dry up,
- Whence have the rivers that which goes with them,
- Virtue is like an enemy avoided
- By all, as is a serpent, through misfortune
- Of place, or through bad habit that impels them;
- On which account have so transformed their nature
- The dwellers in that miserable valley,
- It seems that Circe had them in her pasture.
- ’Mid ugly swine, of acorns worthier
- Than other food for human use created,
- It first directeth its impoverished way.
- Curs findeth it thereafter, coming downward,
- More snarling than their puissance demands,
- And turns from them disdainfully its muzzle.
- It goes on falling, and the more it grows,
- The more it finds the dogs becoming wolves,
- This maledict and misadventurous ditch.
- Descended then through many a hollow gulf,
- It finds the foxes so replete with fraud,
- They fear no cunning that may master them.
- Nor will I cease because another hears me;
- And well ’twill be for him, if still he mind him
- Of what a truthful spirit to me unravels.
- Thy grandson I behold, who doth become
- A hunter of those wolves upon the bank
- Of the wild stream, and terrifies them all.
- He sells their flesh, it being yet alive;
- Thereafter slaughters them like ancient beeves;
- Many of life, himself of praise, deprives.
- Blood-stained he issues from the dismal forest;
- He leaves it such, a thousand years from now
- In its primeval state ’tis not re-wooded.”
- As at the announcement of impending ills
- The face of him who listens is disturbed,
- From whate’er side the peril seize upon him;
- So I beheld that other soul, which stood
- Turned round to listen, grow disturbed and sad,
- When it had gathered to itself the word.
- The speech of one and aspect of the other
- Had me desirous made to know their names,
- And question mixed with prayers I made thereof,
- Whereat the spirit which first spake to me
- Began again: “Thou wishest I should bring me
- To do for thee what thou’lt not do for me;
- But since God willeth that in thee shine forth
- Such grace of his, I’ll not be chary with thee;
- Know, then, that I Guido del Duca am.
- My blood was so with envy set on fire,
- That if I had beheld a man make merry,
- Thou wouldst have seen me sprinkled o’er with pallor.
- From my own sowing such the straw I reap!
- O human race! why dost thou set thy heart
- Where interdict of partnership must be?
- This is Renier; this is the boast and honour
- Of the house of Calboli, where no one since
- Has made himself the heir of his desert.
- And not alone his blood is made devoid,
- ’Twixt Po and mount, and sea-shore and the Reno,
- Of good required for truth and for diversion;
- For all within these boundaries is full
- Of venomous roots, so that too tardily
- By cultivation now would they diminish.
- Where is good Lizio, and Arrigo Manardi,
- Pier Traversaro, and Guido di Carpigna,
- O Romagnuoli into bastards turned?
- When in Bologna will a Fabbro rise?
- When in Faenza a Bernardin di Fosco,
- The noble scion of ignoble seed?
- Be not astonished, Tuscan, if I weep,
- When I remember, with Guido da Prata,
- Ugolin d’ Azzo, who was living with us,
- Frederick Tignoso and his company,
- The house of Traversara, and th’ Anastagi,
- And one race and the other is extinct;
- The dames and cavaliers, the toils and ease
- That filled our souls with love and courtesy,
- There where the hearts have so malicious grown!
- O Brettinoro! why dost thou not flee,
- Seeing that all thy family is gone,
- And many people, not to be corrupted?
- Bagnacaval does well in not begetting
- And ill does Castrocaro, and Conio worse,
- In taking trouble to beget such Counts.
- Will do well the Pagani, when their Devil
- Shall have departed; but not therefore pure
- Will testimony of them e’er remain.
- O Ugolin de’ Fantoli, secure
- Thy name is, since no longer is awaited
- One who, degenerating, can obscure it!
- But go now, Tuscan, for it now delights me
- To weep far better than it does to speak,
- So much has our discourse my mind distressed.”
- We were aware that those beloved souls
- Heard us depart; therefore, by keeping silent,
- They made us of our pathway confident.
- When we became alone by going onward,
- Thunder, when it doth cleave the air, appeared
- A voice, that counter to us came, exclaiming:
- “Shall slay me whosoever findeth me!”
- And fled as the reverberation dies
- If suddenly the cloud asunder bursts.
- As soon as hearing had a truce from this,
- Behold another, with so great a crash,
- That it resembled thunderings following fast:
- “I am Aglaurus, who became a stone!”
- And then, to press myself close to the Poet,
- I backward, and not forward, took a step.
- Already on all sides the air was quiet;
- And said he to me: “That was the hard curb
- That ought to hold a man within his bounds;
- But you take in the bait so that the hook
- Of the old Adversary draws you to him,
- And hence availeth little curb or call.
- The heavens are calling you, and wheel around you,
- Displaying to you their eternal beauties,
- And still your eye is looking on the ground;
- Whence He, who all discerns, chastises you.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XV
- As much as ’twixt the close of the third hour
- And dawn of day appeareth of that sphere
- Which aye in fashion of a child is playing,
- So much it now appeared, towards the night,
- Was of his course remaining to the sun;
- There it was evening, and ’twas midnight here;
- And the rays smote the middle of our faces,
- Because by us the mount was so encircled,
- That straight towards the west we now were going
- When I perceived my forehead overpowered
- Beneath the splendour far more than at first,
- And stupor were to me the things unknown,
- Whereat towards the summit of my brow
- I raised my hands, and made myself the visor
- Which the excessive glare diminishes.
- As when from off the water, or a mirror,
- The sunbeam leaps unto the opposite side,
- Ascending upward in the selfsame measure
- That it descends, and deviates as far
- From falling of a stone in line direct,
- (As demonstrate experiment and art,)
- So it appeared to me that by a light
- Refracted there before me I was smitten;
- On which account my sight was swift to flee.
- “What is that, Father sweet, from which I cannot
- So fully screen my sight that it avail me,”
- Said I, “and seems towards us to be moving?”
- “Marvel thou not, if dazzle thee as yet
- The family of heaven,” he answered me;
- “An angel ’tis, who comes to invite us upward.
- Soon will it be, that to behold these things
- Shall not be grievous, but delightful to thee
- As much as nature fashioned thee to feel.”
- When we had reached the Angel benedight,
- With joyful voice he said: “Here enter in
- To stairway far less steep than are the others.”
- We mounting were, already thence departed,
- And “Beati misericordes” was
- Behind us sung, “Rejoice, thou that o’ercomest!”
- My Master and myself, we two alone
- Were going upward, and I thought, in going,
- Some profit to acquire from words of his;
- And I to him directed me, thus asking:
- “What did the spirit of Romagna mean,
- Mentioning interdict and partnership?”
- Whence he to me: “Of his own greatest failing
- He knows the harm; and therefore wonder not
- If he reprove us, that we less may rue it.
- Because are thither pointed your desires
- Where by companionship each share is lessened,
- Envy doth ply the bellows to your sighs.
- But if the love of the supernal sphere
- Should upwardly direct your aspiration,
- There would not be that fear within your breast;
- For there, as much the more as one says ‘Our,’
- So much the more of good each one possesses,
- And more of charity in that cloister burns.”
- “I am more hungering to be satisfied,”
- I said, “than if I had before been silent,
- And more of doubt within my mind I gather.
- How can it be, that boon distributed
- The more possessors can more wealthy make
- Therein, than if by few it be possessed?”
- And he to me: “Because thou fixest still
- Thy mind entirely upon earthly things,
- Thou pluckest darkness from the very light.
- That goodness infinite and ineffable
- Which is above there, runneth unto love,
- As to a lucid body comes the sunbeam.
- So much it gives itself as it finds ardour,
- So that as far as charity extends,
- O’er it increases the eternal valour.
- And the more people thitherward aspire,
- More are there to love well, and more they love there,
- And, as a mirror, one reflects the other.
- And if my reasoning appease thee not,
- Thou shalt see Beatrice; and she will fully
- Take from thee this and every other longing.
- Endeavour, then, that soon may be extinct,
- As are the two already, the five wounds
- That close themselves again by being painful.”
- Even as I wished to say, “Thou dost appease me,”
- I saw that I had reached another circle,
- So that my eager eyes made me keep silence.
- There it appeared to me that in a vision
- Ecstatic on a sudden I was rapt,
- And in a temple many persons saw;
- And at the door a woman, with the sweet
- Behaviour of a mother, saying: “Son,
- Why in this manner hast thou dealt with us?
- Lo, sorrowing, thy father and myself
- Were seeking for thee;”—and as here she ceased,
- That which appeared at first had disappeared.
- Then I beheld another with those waters
- Adown her cheeks which grief distils whenever
- From great disdain of others it is born,
- And saying: “If of that city thou art lord,
- For whose name was such strife among the gods,
- And whence doth every science scintillate,
- Avenge thyself on those audacious arms
- That clasped our daughter, O Pisistratus;”
- And the lord seemed to me benign and mild
- To answer her with aspect temperate:
- “What shall we do to those who wish us ill,
- If he who loves us be by us condemned?”
- Then saw I people hot in fire of wrath,
- With stones a young man slaying, clamorously
- Still crying to each other, “Kill him! kill him!”
- And him I saw bow down, because of death
- That weighed already on him, to the earth,
- But of his eyes made ever gates to heaven,
- Imploring the high Lord, in so great strife,
- That he would pardon those his persecutors,
- With such an aspect as unlocks compassion.
- Soon as my soul had outwardly returned
- To things external to it which are true,
- Did I my not false errors recognize.
- My Leader, who could see me bear myself
- Like to a man that rouses him from sleep,
- Exclaimed: “What ails thee, that thou canst not stand?
- But hast been coming more than half a league
- Veiling thine eyes, and with thy legs entangled,
- In guise of one whom wine or sleep subdues?”
- “O my sweet Father, if thou listen to me,
- I’ll tell thee,” said I, “what appeared to me,
- When thus from me my legs were ta’en away.”
- And he: “If thou shouldst have a hundred masks
- Upon thy face, from me would not be shut
- Thy cogitations, howsoever small.
- What thou hast seen was that thou mayst not fail
- To ope thy heart unto the waters of peace,
- Which from the eternal fountain are diffused.
- I did not ask, ‘What ails thee?’ as he does
- Who only looketh with the eyes that see not
- When of the soul bereft the body lies,
- But asked it to give vigour to thy feet;
- Thus must we needs urge on the sluggards, slow
- To use their wakefulness when it returns.”
- We passed along, athwart the twilight peering
- Forward as far as ever eye could stretch
- Against the sunbeams serotine and lucent;
- And lo! by slow degrees a smoke approached
- In our direction, sombre as the night,
- Nor was there place to hide one’s self therefrom.
- This of our eyes and the pure air bereft us.
- Purgatorio: Canto XVI
- Darkness of hell, and of a night deprived
- Of every planet under a poor sky,
- As much as may be tenebrous with cloud,
- Ne’er made unto my sight so thick a veil,
- As did that smoke which there enveloped us,
- Nor to the feeling of so rough a texture;
- For not an eye it suffered to stay open;
- Whereat mine escort, faithful and sagacious,
- Drew near to me and offered me his shoulder.
- E’en as a blind man goes behind his guide,
- Lest he should wander, or should strike against
- Aught that may harm or peradventure kill him,
- So went I through the bitter and foul air,
- Listening unto my Leader, who said only,
- “Look that from me thou be not separated.”
- Voices I heard, and every one appeared
- To supplicate for peace and misericord
- The Lamb of God who takes away our sins.
- Still “Agnus Dei” their exordium was;
- One word there was in all, and metre one,
- So that all harmony appeared among them.
- “Master,” I said, “are spirits those I hear?”
- And he to me: “Thou apprehendest truly,
- And they the knot of anger go unloosing.”
- “Now who art thou, that cleavest through our smoke
- And art discoursing of us even as though
- Thou didst by calends still divide the time?”
- After this manner by a voice was spoken;
- Whereon my Master said: “Do thou reply,
- And ask if on this side the way go upward.”
- And I: “O creature that dost cleanse thyself
- To return beautiful to Him who made thee,
- Thou shalt hear marvels if thou follow me.”
- “Thee will I follow far as is allowed me,”
- He answered; “and if smoke prevent our seeing,
- Hearing shall keep us joined instead thereof.”
- Thereon began I: “With that swathing band
- Which death unwindeth am I going upward,
- And hither came I through the infernal anguish.
- And if God in his grace has me infolded,
- So that he wills that I behold his court
- By method wholly out of modern usage,
- Conceal not from me who ere death thou wast,
- But tell it me, and tell me if I go
- Right for the pass, and be thy words our escort.”
- “Lombard was I, and I was Marco called;
- The world I knew, and loved that excellence,
- At which has each one now unbent his bow.
- For mounting upward, thou art going right.”
- Thus he made answer, and subjoined: “I pray thee
- To pray for me when thou shalt be above.”
- And I to him: “My faith I pledge to thee
- To do what thou dost ask me; but am bursting
- Inly with doubt, unless I rid me of it.
- First it was simple, and is now made double
- By thy opinion, which makes certain to me,
- Here and elsewhere, that which I couple with it.
- The world forsooth is utterly deserted
- By every virtue, as thou tellest me,
- And with iniquity is big and covered;
- But I beseech thee point me out the cause,
- That I may see it, and to others show it;
- For one in the heavens, and here below one puts it.”
- A sigh profound, that grief forced into Ai!
- He first sent forth, and then began he: “Brother,
- The world is blind, and sooth thou comest from it!
- Ye who are living every cause refer
- Still upward to the heavens, as if all things
- They of necessity moved with themselves.
- If this were so, in you would be destroyed
- Free will, nor any justice would there be
- In having joy for good, or grief for evil.
- The heavens your movements do initiate,
- I say not all; but granting that I say it,
- Light has been given you for good and evil,
- And free volition; which, if some fatigue
- In the first battles with the heavens it suffers,
- Afterwards conquers all, if well ’tis nurtured.
- To greater force and to a better nature,
- Though free, ye subject are, and that creates
- The mind in you the heavens have not in charge.
- Hence, if the present world doth go astray,
- In you the cause is, be it sought in you;
- And I therein will now be thy true spy.
- Forth from the hand of Him, who fondles it
- Before it is, like to a little girl
- Weeping and laughing in her childish sport,
- Issues the simple soul, that nothing knows,
- Save that, proceeding from a joyous Maker,
- Gladly it turns to that which gives it pleasure.
- Of trivial good at first it tastes the savour;
- Is cheated by it, and runs after it,
- If guide or rein turn not aside its love.
- Hence it behoved laws for a rein to place,
- Behoved a king to have, who at the least
- Of the true city should discern the tower.
- The laws exist, but who sets hand to them?
- No one; because the shepherd who precedes
- Can ruminate, but cleaveth not the hoof;
- Wherefore the people that perceives its guide
- Strike only at the good for which it hankers,
- Feeds upon that, and farther seeketh not.
- Clearly canst thou perceive that evil guidance
- The cause is that has made the world depraved,
- And not that nature is corrupt in you.
- Rome, that reformed the world, accustomed was
- Two suns to have, which one road and the other,
- Of God and of the world, made manifest.
- One has the other quenched, and to the crosier
- The sword is joined, and ill beseemeth it
- That by main force one with the other go,
- Because, being joined, one feareth not the other;
- If thou believe not, think upon the grain,
- For by its seed each herb is recognized.
- In the land laved by Po and Adige,
- Valour and courtesy used to be found,
- Before that Frederick had his controversy;
- Now in security can pass that way
- Whoever will abstain, through sense of shame,
- From speaking with the good, or drawing near them.
- True, three old men are left, in whom upbraids
- The ancient age the new, and late they deem it
- That God restore them to the better life:
- Currado da Palazzo, and good Gherardo,
- And Guido da Castel, who better named is,
- In fashion of the French, the simple Lombard:
- Say thou henceforward that the Church of Rome,
- Confounding in itself two governments,
- Falls in the mire, and soils itself and burden.”
- “O Marco mine,” I said, “thou reasonest well;
- And now discern I why the sons of Levi
- Have been excluded from the heritage.
- But what Gherardo is it, who, as sample
- Of a lost race, thou sayest has remained
- In reprobation of the barbarous age?”
- “Either thy speech deceives me, or it tempts me,”
- He answered me; “for speaking Tuscan to me,
- It seems of good Gherardo naught thou knowest.
- By other surname do I know him not,
- Unless I take it from his daughter Gaia.
- May God be with you, for I come no farther.
- Behold the dawn, that through the smoke rays out,
- Already whitening; and I must depart—
- Yonder the Angel is—ere he appear.”
- Thus did he speak, and would no farther hear me.
- Purgatorio: Canto XVII
- Remember, Reader, if e’er in the Alps
- A mist o’ertook thee, through which thou couldst see
- Not otherwise than through its membrane mole,
- How, when the vapours humid and condensed
- Begin to dissipate themselves, the sphere
- Of the sun feebly enters in among them,
- And thy imagination will be swift
- In coming to perceive how I re-saw
- The sun at first, that was already setting.
- Thus, to the faithful footsteps of my Master
- Mating mine own, I issued from that cloud
- To rays already dead on the low shores.
- O thou, Imagination, that dost steal us
- So from without sometimes, that man perceives not,
- Although around may sound a thousand trumpets,
- Who moveth thee, if sense impel thee not?
- Moves thee a light, which in the heaven takes form,
- By self, or by a will that downward guides it.
- Of her impiety, who changed her form
- Into the bird that most delights in singing,
- In my imagining appeared the trace;
- And hereupon my mind was so withdrawn
- Within itself, that from without there came
- Nothing that then might be received by it.
- Then reigned within my lofty fantasy
- One crucified, disdainful and ferocious
- In countenance, and even thus was dying.
- Around him were the great Ahasuerus,
- Esther his wife, and the just Mordecai,
- Who was in word and action so entire.
- And even as this image burst asunder
- Of its own self, in fashion of a bubble
- In which the water it was made of fails,
- There rose up in my vision a young maiden
- Bitterly weeping, and she said: “O queen,
- Why hast thou wished in anger to be naught?
- Thou’st slain thyself, Lavinia not to lose;
- Now hast thou lost me; I am she who mourns,
- Mother, at thine ere at another’s ruin.”
- As sleep is broken, when upon a sudden
- New light strikes in upon the eyelids closed,
- And broken quivers ere it dieth wholly,
- So this imagining of mine fell down
- As soon as the effulgence smote my face,
- Greater by far than what is in our wont.
- I turned me round to see where I might be,
- When said a voice, “Here is the passage up;”
- Which from all other purposes removed me,
- And made my wish so full of eagerness
- To look and see who was it that was speaking,
- It never rests till meeting face to face;
- But as before the sun, which quells the sight,
- And in its own excess its figure veils,
- Even so my power was insufficient here.
- “This is a spirit divine, who in the way
- Of going up directs us without asking,
- And who with his own light himself conceals.
- He does with us as man doth with himself;
- For he who sees the need, and waits the asking,
- Malignly leans already tow’rds denial.
- Accord we now our feet to such inviting,
- Let us make haste to mount ere it grow dark;
- For then we could not till the day return.”
- Thus my Conductor said; and I and he
- Together turned our footsteps to a stairway;
- And I, as soon as the first step I reached,
- Near me perceived a motion as of wings,
- And fanning in the face, and saying, “‘Beati
- Pacifici,’ who are without ill anger.”
- Already over us were so uplifted
- The latest sunbeams, which the night pursues,
- That upon many sides the stars appeared.
- “O manhood mine, why dost thou vanish so?”
- I said within myself; for I perceived
- The vigour of my legs was put in truce.
- We at the point were where no more ascends
- The stairway upward, and were motionless,
- Even as a ship, which at the shore arrives;
- And I gave heed a little, if I might hear
- Aught whatsoever in the circle new;
- Then to my Master turned me round and said:
- “Say, my sweet Father, what delinquency
- Is purged here in the circle where we are?
- Although our feet may pause, pause not thy speech.”
- And he to me: “The love of good, remiss
- In what it should have done, is here restored;
- Here plied again the ill-belated oar;
- But still more openly to understand,
- Turn unto me thy mind, and thou shalt gather
- Some profitable fruit from our delay.
- Neither Creator nor a creature ever,
- Son,” he began, “was destitute of love
- Natural or spiritual; and thou knowest it.
- The natural was ever without error;
- But err the other may by evil object,
- Or by too much, or by too little vigour.
- While in the first it well directed is,
- And in the second moderates itself,
- It cannot be the cause of sinful pleasure;
- But when to ill it turns, and, with more care
- Or lesser than it ought, runs after good,
- ’Gainst the Creator works his own creation.
- Hence thou mayst comprehend that love must be
- The seed within yourselves of every virtue,
- And every act that merits punishment.
- Now inasmuch as never from the welfare
- Of its own subject can love turn its sight,
- From their own hatred all things are secure;
- And since we cannot think of any being
- Standing alone, nor from the First divided,
- Of hating Him is all desire cut off.
- Hence if, discriminating, I judge well,
- The evil that one loves is of one’s neighbour,
- And this is born in three modes in your clay.
- There are, who, by abasement of their neighbour,
- Hope to excel, and therefore only long
- That from his greatness he may be cast down;
- There are, who power, grace, honour, and renown
- Fear they may lose because another rises,
- Thence are so sad that the reverse they love;
- And there are those whom injury seems to chafe,
- So that it makes them greedy for revenge,
- And such must needs shape out another’s harm.
- This threefold love is wept for down below;
- Now of the other will I have thee hear,
- That runneth after good with measure faulty.
- Each one confusedly a good conceives
- Wherein the mind may rest, and longeth for it;
- Therefore to overtake it each one strives.
- If languid love to look on this attract you,
- Or in attaining unto it, this cornice,
- After just penitence, torments you for it.
- There’s other good that does not make man happy;
- ’Tis not felicity, ’tis not the good
- Essence, of every good the fruit and root.
- The love that yields itself too much to this
- Above us is lamented in three circles;
- But how tripartite it may be described,
- I say not, that thou seek it for thyself.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XVIII
- An end had put unto his reasoning
- The lofty Teacher, and attent was looking
- Into my face, if I appeared content;
- And I, whom a new thirst still goaded on,
- Without was mute, and said within: “Perchance
- The too much questioning I make annoys him.”
- But that true Father, who had comprehended
- The timid wish, that opened not itself,
- By speaking gave me hardihood to speak.
- Whence I: “My sight is, Master, vivified
- So in thy light, that clearly I discern
- Whate’er thy speech importeth or describes.
- Therefore I thee entreat, sweet Father dear,
- To teach me love, to which thou dost refer
- Every good action and its contrary.”
- “Direct,” he said, “towards me the keen eyes
- Of intellect, and clear will be to thee
- The error of the blind, who would be leaders.
- The soul, which is created apt to love,
- Is mobile unto everything that pleases,
- Soon as by pleasure she is waked to action.
- Your apprehension from some real thing
- An image draws, and in yourselves displays it
- So that it makes the soul turn unto it.
- And if, when turned, towards it she incline,
- Love is that inclination; it is nature,
- Which is by pleasure bound in you anew
- Then even as the fire doth upward move
- By its own form, which to ascend is born,
- Where longest in its matter it endures,
- So comes the captive soul into desire,
- Which is a motion spiritual, and ne’er rests
- Until she doth enjoy the thing beloved.
- Now may apparent be to thee how hidden
- The truth is from those people, who aver
- All love is in itself a laudable thing;
- Because its matter may perchance appear
- Aye to be good; but yet not each impression
- Is good, albeit good may be the wax.”
- “Thy words, and my sequacious intellect,”
- I answered him, “have love revealed to me;
- But that has made me more impregned with doubt;
- For if love from without be offered us,
- And with another foot the soul go not,
- If right or wrong she go, ’tis not her merit.”
- And he to me: “What reason seeth here,
- Myself can tell thee; beyond that await
- For Beatrice, since ’tis a work of faith.
- Every substantial form, that segregate
- From matter is, and with it is united,
- Specific power has in itself collected,
- Which without act is not perceptible,
- Nor shows itself except by its effect,
- As life does in a plant by the green leaves.
- But still, whence cometh the intelligence
- Of the first notions, man is ignorant,
- And the affection for the first allurements,
- Which are in you as instinct in the bee
- To make its honey; and this first desire
- Merit of praise or blame containeth not.
- Now, that to this all others may be gathered,
- Innate within you is the power that counsels,
- And it should keep the threshold of assent.
- This is the principle, from which is taken
- Occasion of desert in you, according
- As good and guilty loves it takes and winnows.
- Those who, in reasoning, to the bottom went,
- Were of this innate liberty aware,
- Therefore bequeathed they Ethics to the world.
- Supposing, then, that from necessity
- Springs every love that is within you kindled,
- Within yourselves the power is to restrain it.
- The noble virtue Beatrice understands
- By the free will; and therefore see that thou
- Bear it in mind, if she should speak of it.”
- The moon, belated almost unto midnight,
- Now made the stars appear to us more rare,
- Formed like a bucket, that is all ablaze,
- And counter to the heavens ran through those paths
- Which the sun sets aflame, when he of Rome
- Sees it ’twixt Sardes and Corsicans go down;
- And that patrician shade, for whom is named
- Pietola more than any Mantuan town,
- Had laid aside the burden of my lading;
- Whence I, who reason manifest and plain
- In answer to my questions had received,
- Stood like a man in drowsy reverie.
- But taken from me was this drowsiness
- Suddenly by a people, that behind
- Our backs already had come round to us.
- And as, of old, Ismenus and Asopus
- Beside them saw at night the rush and throng,
- If but the Thebans were in need of Bacchus,
- So they along that circle curve their step,
- From what I saw of those approaching us,
- Who by good-will and righteous love are ridden.
- Full soon they were upon us, because running
- Moved onward all that mighty multitude,
- And two in the advance cried out, lamenting,
- “Mary in haste unto the mountain ran,
- And Caesar, that he might subdue Ilerda,
- Thrust at Marseilles, and then ran into Spain.”
- “Quick! quick! so that the time may not be lost
- By little love!” forthwith the others cried,
- “For ardour in well-doing freshens grace!”
- “O folk, in whom an eager fervour now
- Supplies perhaps delay and negligence,
- Put by you in well-doing, through lukewarmness,
- This one who lives, and truly I lie not,
- Would fain go up, if but the sun relight us;
- So tell us where the passage nearest is.”
- These were the words of him who was my Guide;
- And some one of those spirits said: “Come on
- Behind us, and the opening shalt thou find;
- So full of longing are we to move onward,
- That stay we cannot; therefore pardon us,
- If thou for churlishness our justice take.
- I was San Zeno’s Abbot at Verona,
- Under the empire of good Barbarossa,
- Of whom still sorrowing Milan holds discourse;
- And he has one foot in the grave already,
- Who shall erelong lament that monastery,
- And sorry be of having there had power,
- Because his son, in his whole body sick,
- And worse in mind, and who was evil-born,
- He put into the place of its true pastor.”
- If more he said, or silent was, I know not,
- He had already passed so far beyond us;
- But this I heard, and to retain it pleased me.
- And he who was in every need my succour
- Said: “Turn thee hitherward; see two of them
- Come fastening upon slothfulness their teeth.”
- In rear of all they shouted: “Sooner were
- The people dead to whom the sea was opened,
- Than their inheritors the Jordan saw;
- And those who the fatigue did not endure
- Unto the issue, with Anchises’ son,
- Themselves to life withouten glory offered.”
- Then when from us so separated were
- Those shades, that they no longer could be seen,
- Within me a new thought did entrance find,
- Whence others many and diverse were born;
- And so I lapsed from one into another,
- That in a reverie mine eyes I closed,
- And meditation into dream transmuted.
- Purgatorio: Canto XIX
- It was the hour when the diurnal heat
- No more can warm the coldness of the moon,
- Vanquished by earth, or peradventure Saturn,
- When geomancers their Fortuna Major
- See in the orient before the dawn
- Rise by a path that long remains not dim,
- There came to me in dreams a stammering woman,
- Squint in her eyes, and in her feet distorted,
- With hands dissevered and of sallow hue.
- I looked at her; and as the sun restores
- The frigid members which the night benumbs,
- Even thus my gaze did render voluble
- Her tongue, and made her all erect thereafter
- In little while, and the lost countenance
- As love desires it so in her did colour.
- When in this wise she had her speech unloosed,
- She ’gan to sing so, that with difficulty
- Could I have turned my thoughts away from her.
- “I am,” she sang, “I am the Siren sweet
- Who mariners amid the main unman,
- So full am I of pleasantness to hear.
- I drew Ulysses from his wandering way
- Unto my song, and he who dwells with me
- Seldom departs so wholly I content him.”
- Her mouth was not yet closed again, before
- Appeared a Lady saintly and alert
- Close at my side to put her to confusion.
- “Virgilius, O Virgilius! who is this?”
- Sternly she said; and he was drawing near
- With eyes still fixed upon that modest one.
- She seized the other and in front laid open,
- Rending her garments, and her belly showed me;
- This waked me with the stench that issued from it.
- I turned mine eyes, and good Virgilius said:
- “At least thrice have I called thee; rise and come;
- Find we the opening by which thou mayst enter.”
- I rose; and full already of high day
- Were all the circles of the Sacred Mountain,
- And with the new sun at our back we went.
- Following behind him, I my forehead bore
- Like unto one who has it laden with thought,
- Who makes himself the half arch of a bridge,
- When I heard say, “Come, here the passage is,”
- Spoken in a manner gentle and benign,
- Such as we hear not in this mortal region.
- With open wings, which of a swan appeared,
- Upward he turned us who thus spake to us,
- Between the two walls of the solid granite.
- He moved his pinions afterwards and fanned us,
- Affirming those ‘qui lugent’ to be blessed,
- For they shall have their souls with comfort filled.
- “What aileth thee, that aye to earth thou gazest?”
- To me my Guide began to say, we both
- Somewhat beyond the Angel having mounted.
- And I: “With such misgiving makes me go
- A vision new, which bends me to itself,
- So that I cannot from the thought withdraw me.”
- “Didst thou behold,” he said, “that old enchantress,
- Who sole above us henceforth is lamented?
- Didst thou behold how man is freed from her?
- Suffice it thee, and smite earth with thy heels,
- Thine eyes lift upward to the lure, that whirls
- The Eternal King with revolutions vast.”
- Even as the hawk, that first his feet surveys,
- Then turns him to the call and stretches forward,
- Through the desire of food that draws him thither,
- Such I became, and such, as far as cleaves
- The rock to give a way to him who mounts,
- Went on to where the circling doth begin.
- On the fifth circle when I had come forth,
- People I saw upon it who were weeping,
- Stretched prone upon the ground, all downward turned.
- “Adhaesit pavimento anima mea,”
- I heard them say with sighings so profound,
- That hardly could the words be understood.
- “O ye elect of God, whose sufferings
- Justice and Hope both render less severe,
- Direct ye us towards the high ascents.”
- “If ye are come secure from this prostration,
- And wish to find the way most speedily,
- Let your right hands be evermore outside.”
- Thus did the Poet ask, and thus was answered
- By them somewhat in front of us; whence I
- In what was spoken divined the rest concealed,
- And unto my Lord’s eyes mine eyes I turned;
- Whence he assented with a cheerful sign
- To what the sight of my desire implored.
- When of myself I could dispose at will,
- Above that creature did I draw myself,
- Whose words before had caused me to take note,
- Saying: “O Spirit, in whom weeping ripens
- That without which to God we cannot turn,
- Suspend awhile for me thy greater care.
- Who wast thou, and why are your backs turned upwards,
- Tell me, and if thou wouldst that I procure thee
- Anything there whence living I departed.”
- And he to me: “Wherefore our backs the heaven
- Turns to itself, know shalt thou; but beforehand
- ‘Scias quod ego fui successor Petri.’
- Between Siestri and Chiaveri descends
- A river beautiful, and of its name
- The title of my blood its summit makes.
- A month and little more essayed I how
- Weighs the great cloak on him from mire who keeps it,
- For all the other burdens seem a feather.
- Tardy, ah woe is me! was my conversion;
- But when the Roman Shepherd I was made,
- Then I discovered life to be a lie.
- I saw that there the heart was not at rest,
- Nor farther in that life could one ascend;
- Whereby the love of this was kindled in me.
- Until that time a wretched soul and parted
- From God was I, and wholly avaricious;
- Now, as thou seest, I here am punished for it.
- What avarice does is here made manifest
- In the purgation of these souls converted,
- And no more bitter pain the Mountain has.
- Even as our eye did not uplift itself
- Aloft, being fastened upon earthly things,
- So justice here has merged it in the earth.
- As avarice had extinguished our affection
- For every good, whereby was action lost,
- So justice here doth hold us in restraint,
- Bound and imprisoned by the feet and hands;
- And so long as it pleases the just Lord
- Shall we remain immovable and prostrate.”
- I on my knees had fallen, and wished to speak;
- But even as I began, and he was ’ware,
- Only by listening, of my reverence,
- “What cause,” he said, “has downward bent thee thus?”
- And I to him: “For your own dignity,
- Standing, my conscience stung me with remorse.”
- “Straighten thy legs, and upward raise thee, brother,”
- He answered: “Err not, fellow-servant am I
- With thee and with the others to one power.
- If e’er that holy, evangelic sound,
- Which sayeth ‘neque nubent,’ thou hast heard,
- Well canst thou see why in this wise I speak.
- Now go; no longer will I have thee linger,
- Because thy stay doth incommode my weeping,
- With which I ripen that which thou hast said.
- On earth I have a grandchild named Alagia,
- Good in herself, unless indeed our house
- Malevolent may make her by example,
- And she alone remains to me on earth.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XX
- Ill strives the will against a better will;
- Therefore, to pleasure him, against my pleasure
- I drew the sponge not saturate from the water.
- Onward I moved, and onward moved my Leader,
- Through vacant places, skirting still the rock,
- As on a wall close to the battlements;
- For they that through their eyes pour drop by drop
- The malady which all the world pervades,
- On the other side too near the verge approach.
- Accursed mayst thou be, thou old she-wolf,
- That more than all the other beasts hast prey,
- Because of hunger infinitely hollow!
- O heaven, in whose gyrations some appear
- To think conditions here below are changed,
- When will he come through whom she shall depart?
- Onward we went with footsteps slow and scarce,
- And I attentive to the shades I heard
- Piteously weeping and bemoaning them;
- And I by peradventure heard “Sweet Mary!”
- Uttered in front of us amid the weeping
- Even as a woman does who is in child-birth;
- And in continuance: “How poor thou wast
- Is manifested by that hostelry
- Where thou didst lay thy sacred burden down.”
- Thereafterward I heard: “O good Fabricius,
- Virtue with poverty didst thou prefer
- To the possession of great wealth with vice.”
- So pleasurable were these words to me
- That I drew farther onward to have knowledge
- Touching that spirit whence they seemed to come.
- He furthermore was speaking of the largess
- Which Nicholas unto the maidens gave,
- In order to conduct their youth to honour.
- “O soul that dost so excellently speak,
- Tell me who wast thou,” said I, “and why only
- Thou dost renew these praises well deserved?
- Not without recompense shall be thy word,
- If I return to finish the short journey
- Of that life which is flying to its end.”
- And he: “I’ll tell thee, not for any comfort
- I may expect from earth, but that so much
- Grace shines in thee or ever thou art dead.
- I was the root of that malignant plant
- Which overshadows all the Christian world,
- So that good fruit is seldom gathered from it;
- But if Douay and Ghent, and Lille and Bruges
- Had Power, soon vengeance would be taken on it;
- And this I pray of Him who judges all.
- Hugh Capet was I called upon the earth;
- From me were born the Louises and Philips,
- By whom in later days has France been governed.
- I was the son of a Parisian butcher,
- What time the ancient kings had perished all,
- Excepting one, contrite in cloth of gray.
- I found me grasping in my hands the rein
- Of the realm’s government, and so great power
- Of new acquest, and so with friends abounding,
- That to the widowed diadem promoted
- The head of mine own offspring was, from whom
- The consecrated bones of these began.
- So long as the great dowry of Provence
- Out of my blood took not the sense of shame,
- ’Twas little worth, but still it did no harm.
- Then it began with falsehood and with force
- Its rapine; and thereafter, for amends,
- Took Ponthieu, Normandy, and Gascony.
- Charles came to Italy, and for amends
- A victim made of Conradin, and then
- Thrust Thomas back to heaven, for amends.
- A time I see, not very distant now,
- Which draweth forth another Charles from France,
- The better to make known both him and his.
- Unarmed he goes, and only with the lance
- That Judas jousted with; and that he thrusts
- So that he makes the paunch of Florence burst.
- He thence not land, but sin and infamy,
- Shall gain, so much more grievous to himself
- As the more light such damage he accounts.
- The other, now gone forth, ta’en in his ship,
- See I his daughter sell, and chaffer for her
- As corsairs do with other female slaves.
- What more, O Avarice, canst thou do to us,
- Since thou my blood so to thyself hast drawn,
- It careth not for its own proper flesh?
- That less may seem the future ill and past,
- I see the flower-de-luce Alagna enter,
- And Christ in his own Vicar captive made.
- I see him yet another time derided;
- I see renewed the vinegar and gall,
- And between living thieves I see him slain.
- I see the modern Pilate so relentless,
- This does not sate him, but without decretal
- He to the temple bears his sordid sails!
- When, O my Lord! shall I be joyful made
- By looking on the vengeance which, concealed,
- Makes sweet thine anger in thy secrecy?
- What I was saying of that only bride
- Of the Holy Ghost, and which occasioned thee
- To turn towards me for some commentary,
- So long has been ordained to all our prayers
- As the day lasts; but when the night comes on,
- Contrary sound we take instead thereof.
- At that time we repeat Pygmalion,
- Of whom a traitor, thief, and parricide
- Made his insatiable desire of gold;
- And the misery of avaricious Midas,
- That followed his inordinate demand,
- At which forevermore one needs but laugh.
- The foolish Achan each one then records,
- And how he stole the spoils; so that the wrath
- Of Joshua still appears to sting him here.
- Then we accuse Sapphira with her husband,
- We laud the hoof-beats Heliodorus had,
- And the whole mount in infamy encircles
- Polymnestor who murdered Polydorus.
- Here finally is cried: ‘O Crassus, tell us,
- For thou dost know, what is the taste of gold?’
- Sometimes we speak, one loud, another low,
- According to desire of speech, that spurs us
- To greater now and now to lesser pace.
- But in the good that here by day is talked of,
- Erewhile alone I was not; yet near by
- No other person lifted up his voice.”
- From him already we departed were,
- And made endeavour to o’ercome the road
- As much as was permitted to our power,
- When I perceived, like something that is falling,
- The mountain tremble, whence a chill seized on me,
- As seizes him who to his death is going.
- Certes so violently shook not Delos,
- Before Latona made her nest therein
- To give birth to the two eyes of the heaven.
- Then upon all sides there began a cry,
- Such that the Master drew himself towards me,
- Saying, “Fear not, while I am guiding thee.”
- “Gloria in excelsis Deo,” all
- Were saying, from what near I comprehended,
- Where it was possible to hear the cry.
- We paused immovable and in suspense,
- Even as the shepherds who first heard that song,
- Until the trembling ceased, and it was finished.
- Then we resumed again our holy path,
- Watching the shades that lay upon the ground,
- Already turned to their accustomed plaint.
- No ignorance ever with so great a strife
- Had rendered me importunate to know,
- If erreth not in this my memory,
- As meditating then I seemed to have;
- Nor out of haste to question did I dare,
- Nor of myself I there could aught perceive;
- So I went onward timorous and thoughtful.
- Purgatorio: Canto XXI
- The natural thirst, that ne’er is satisfied
- Excepting with the water for whose grace
- The woman of Samaria besought,
- Put me in travail, and haste goaded me
- Along the encumbered path behind my Leader
- And I was pitying that righteous vengeance;
- And lo! in the same manner as Luke writeth
- That Christ appeared to two upon the way
- From the sepulchral cave already risen,
- A shade appeared to us, and came behind us,
- Down gazing on the prostrate multitude,
- Nor were we ware of it, until it spake,
- Saying, “My brothers, may God give you peace!”
- We turned us suddenly, and Virgilius rendered
- To him the countersign thereto conforming.
- Thereon began he: “In the blessed council,
- Thee may the court veracious place in peace,
- That me doth banish in eternal exile!”
- “How,” said he, and the while we went with speed,
- “If ye are shades whom God deigns not on high,
- Who up his stairs so far has guided you?”
- And said my Teacher: “If thou note the marks
- Which this one bears, and which the Angel traces
- Well shalt thou see he with the good must reign.
- But because she who spinneth day and night
- For him had not yet drawn the distaff off,
- Which Clotho lays for each one and compacts,
- His soul, which is thy sister and my own,
- In coming upwards could not come alone,
- By reason that it sees not in our fashion.
- Whence I was drawn from out the ample throat
- Of Hell to be his guide, and I shall guide him
- As far on as my school has power to lead.
- But tell us, if thou knowest, why such a shudder
- Erewhile the mountain gave, and why together
- All seemed to cry, as far as its moist feet?”
- In asking he so hit the very eye
- Of my desire, that merely with the hope
- My thirst became the less unsatisfied.
- “Naught is there,” he began, “that without order
- May the religion of the mountain feel,
- Nor aught that may be foreign to its custom.
- Free is it here from every permutation;
- What from itself heaven in itself receiveth
- Can be of this the cause, and naught beside;
- Because that neither rain, nor hail, nor snow,
- Nor dew, nor hoar-frost any higher falls
- Than the short, little stairway of three steps.
- Dense clouds do not appear, nor rarefied,
- Nor coruscation, nor the daughter of Thaumas,
- That often upon earth her region shifts;
- No arid vapour any farther rises
- Than to the top of the three steps I spake of,
- Whereon the Vicar of Peter has his feet.
- Lower down perchance it trembles less or more,
- But, for the wind that in the earth is hidden
- I know not how, up here it never trembled.
- It trembles here, whenever any soul
- Feels itself pure, so that it soars, or moves
- To mount aloft, and such a cry attends it.
- Of purity the will alone gives proof,
- Which, being wholly free to change its convent,
- Takes by surprise the soul, and helps it fly.
- First it wills well; but the desire permits not,
- Which divine justice with the self-same will
- There was to sin, upon the torment sets.
- And I, who have been lying in this pain
- Five hundred years and more, but just now felt
- A free volition for a better seat.
- Therefore thou heardst the earthquake, and the pious
- Spirits along the mountain rendering praise
- Unto the Lord, that soon he speed them upwards.”
- So said he to him; and since we enjoy
- As much in drinking as the thirst is great,
- I could not say how much it did me good.
- And the wise Leader: “Now I see the net
- That snares you here, and how ye are set free,
- Why the earth quakes, and wherefore ye rejoice.
- Now who thou wast be pleased that I may know;
- And why so many centuries thou hast here
- Been lying, let me gather from thy words.”
- “In days when the good Titus, with the aid
- Of the supremest King, avenged the wounds
- Whence issued forth the blood by Judas sold,
- Under the name that most endures and honours,
- Was I on earth,” that spirit made reply,
- “Greatly renowned, but not with faith as yet.
- My vocal spirit was so sweet, that Rome
- Me, a Thoulousian, drew unto herself,
- Where I deserved to deck my brows with myrtle.
- Statius the people name me still on earth;
- I sang of Thebes, and then of great Achilles;
- But on the way fell with my second burden.
- The seeds unto my ardour were the sparks
- Of that celestial flame which heated me,
- Whereby more than a thousand have been fired;
- Of the Aeneid speak I, which to me
- A mother was, and was my nurse in song;
- Without this weighed I not a drachma’s weight.
- And to have lived upon the earth what time
- Virgilius lived, I would accept one sun
- More than I must ere issuing from my ban.”
- These words towards me made Virgilius turn
- With looks that in their silence said, “Be silent!”
- But yet the power that wills cannot do all things;
- For tears and laughter are such pursuivants
- Unto the passion from which each springs forth,
- In the most truthful least the will they follow.
- I only smiled, as one who gives the wink;
- Whereat the shade was silent, and it gazed
- Into mine eyes, where most expression dwells;
- And, “As thou well mayst consummate a labour
- So great,” it said, “why did thy face just now
- Display to me the lightning of a smile?”
- Now am I caught on this side and on that;
- One keeps me silent, one to speak conjures me,
- Wherefore I sigh, and I am understood.
- “Speak,” said my Master, “and be not afraid
- Of speaking, but speak out, and say to him
- What he demands with such solicitude.”
- Whence I: “Thou peradventure marvellest,
- O antique spirit, at the smile I gave;
- But I will have more wonder seize upon thee.
- This one, who guides on high these eyes of mine,
- Is that Virgilius, from whom thou didst learn
- To sing aloud of men and of the Gods.
- If other cause thou to my smile imputedst,
- Abandon it as false, and trust it was
- Those words which thou hast spoken concerning him.”
- Already he was stooping to embrace
- My Teacher’s feet; but he said to him: “Brother,
- Do not; for shade thou art, and shade beholdest.”
- And he uprising: “Now canst thou the sum
- Of love which warms me to thee comprehend,
- When this our vanity I disremember,
- Treating a shadow as substantial thing.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XXII
- Already was the Angel left behind us,
- The Angel who to the sixth round had turned us,
- Having erased one mark from off my face;
- And those who have in justice their desire
- Had said to us, “Beati,” in their voices,
- With “sitio,” and without more ended it.
- And I, more light than through the other passes,
- Went onward so, that without any labour
- I followed upward the swift-footed spirits;
- When thus Virgilius began: “The love
- Kindled by virtue aye another kindles,
- Provided outwardly its flame appear.
- Hence from the hour that Juvenal descended
- Among us into the infernal Limbo,
- Who made apparent to me thy affection,
- My kindliness towards thee was as great
- As ever bound one to an unseen person,
- So that these stairs will now seem short to me.
- But tell me, and forgive me as a friend,
- If too great confidence let loose the rein,
- And as a friend now hold discourse with me;
- How was it possible within thy breast
- For avarice to find place, ’mid so much wisdom
- As thou wast filled with by thy diligence?”
- These words excited Statius at first
- Somewhat to laughter; afterward he answered:
- “Each word of thine is love’s dear sign to me.
- Verily oftentimes do things appear
- Which give fallacious matter to our doubts,
- Instead of the true causes which are hidden!
- Thy question shows me thy belief to be
- That I was niggard in the other life,
- It may be from the circle where I was;
- Therefore know thou, that avarice was removed
- Too far from me; and this extravagance
- Thousands of lunar periods have punished.
- And were it not that I my thoughts uplifted,
- When I the passage heard where thou exclaimest,
- As if indignant, unto human nature,
- ‘To what impellest thou not, O cursed hunger
- Of gold, the appetite of mortal men?’
- Revolving I should feel the dismal joustings.
- Then I perceived the hands could spread too wide
- Their wings in spending, and repented me
- As well of that as of my other sins;
- How many with shorn hair shall rise again
- Because of ignorance, which from this sin
- Cuts off repentance living and in death!
- And know that the transgression which rebuts
- By direct opposition any sin
- Together with it here its verdure dries.
- Therefore if I have been among that folk
- Which mourns its avarice, to purify me,
- For its opposite has this befallen me.”
- “Now when thou sangest the relentless weapons
- Of the twofold affliction of Jocasta,”
- The singer of the Songs Bucolic said,
- “From that which Clio there with thee preludes,
- It does not seem that yet had made thee faithful
- That faith without which no good works suffice.
- If this be so, what candles or what sun
- Scattered thy darkness so that thou didst trim
- Thy sails behind the Fisherman thereafter?”
- And he to him: “Thou first directedst me
- Towards Parnassus, in its grots to drink,
- And first concerning God didst me enlighten.
- Thou didst as he who walketh in the night,
- Who bears his light behind, which helps him not,
- But wary makes the persons after him,
- When thou didst say: ‘The age renews itself,
- Justice returns, and man’s primeval time,
- And a new progeny descends from heaven.’
- Through thee I Poet was, through thee a Christian;
- But that thou better see what I design,
- To colour it will I extend my hand.
- Already was the world in every part
- Pregnant with the true creed, disseminated
- By messengers of the eternal kingdom;
- And thy assertion, spoken of above,
- With the new preachers was in unison;
- Whence I to visit them the custom took.
- Then they became so holy in my sight,
- That, when Domitian persecuted them,
- Not without tears of mine were their laments;
- And all the while that I on earth remained,
- Them I befriended, and their upright customs
- Made me disparage all the other sects.
- And ere I led the Greeks unto the rivers
- Of Thebes, in poetry, I was baptized,
- But out of fear was covertly a Christian,
- For a long time professing paganism;
- And this lukewarmness caused me the fourth circle
- To circuit round more than four centuries.
- Thou, therefore, who hast raised the covering
- That hid from me whatever good I speak of,
- While in ascending we have time to spare,
- Tell me, in what place is our friend Terentius,
- Caecilius, Plautus, Varro, if thou knowest;
- Tell me if they are damned, and in what alley.”
- “These, Persius and myself, and others many,”
- Replied my Leader, “with that Grecian are
- Whom more than all the rest the Muses suckled,
- In the first circle of the prison blind;
- Ofttimes we of the mountain hold discourse
- Which has our nurses ever with itself.
- Euripides is with us, Antiphon,
- Simonides, Agatho, and many other
- Greeks who of old their brows with laurel decked.
- There some of thine own people may be seen,
- Antigone, Deiphile and Argia,
- And there Ismene mournful as of old.
- There she is seen who pointed out Langia;
- There is Tiresias’ daughter, and there Thetis,
- And there Deidamia with her sisters.”
- Silent already were the poets both,
- Attent once more in looking round about,
- From the ascent and from the walls released;
- And four handmaidens of the day already
- Were left behind, and at the pole the fifth
- Was pointing upward still its burning horn,
- What time my Guide: “I think that tow’rds the edge
- Our dexter shoulders it behoves us turn,
- Circling the mount as we are wont to do.”
- Thus in that region custom was our ensign;
- And we resumed our way with less suspicion
- For the assenting of that worthy soul
- They in advance went on, and I alone
- Behind them, and I listened to their speech,
- Which gave me lessons in the art of song.
- But soon their sweet discourses interrupted
- A tree which midway in the road we found,
- With apples sweet and grateful to the smell.
- And even as a fir-tree tapers upward
- From bough to bough, so downwardly did that;
- I think in order that no one might climb it.
- On that side where our pathway was enclosed
- Fell from the lofty rock a limpid water,
- And spread itself abroad upon the leaves.
- The Poets twain unto the tree drew near,
- And from among the foliage a voice
- Cried: “Of this food ye shall have scarcity.”
- Then said: “More thoughtful Mary was of making
- The marriage feast complete and honourable,
- Than of her mouth which now for you responds;
- And for their drink the ancient Roman women
- With water were content; and Daniel
- Disparaged food, and understanding won.
- The primal age was beautiful as gold;
- Acorns it made with hunger savorous,
- And nectar every rivulet with thirst.
- Honey and locusts were the aliments
- That fed the Baptist in the wilderness;
- Whence he is glorious, and so magnified
- As by the Evangel is revealed to you.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XXIII
- The while among the verdant leaves mine eyes
- I riveted, as he is wont to do
- Who wastes his life pursuing little birds,
- My more than Father said unto me: “Son,
- Come now; because the time that is ordained us
- More usefully should be apportioned out.”
- I turned my face and no less soon my steps
- Unto the Sages, who were speaking so
- They made the going of no cost to me;
- And lo! were heard a song and a lament,
- “Labia mea, Domine,” in fashion
- Such that delight and dolence it brought forth.
- “O my sweet Father, what is this I hear?”
- Began I; and he answered: “Shades that go
- Perhaps the knot unloosing of their debt.”
- In the same way that thoughtful pilgrims do,
- Who, unknown people on the road o’ertaking,
- Turn themselves round to them, and do not stop,
- Even thus, behind us with a swifter motion
- Coming and passing onward, gazed upon us
- A crowd of spirits silent and devout.
- Each in his eyes was dark and cavernous,
- Pallid in face, and so emaciate
- That from the bones the skin did shape itself.
- I do not think that so to merest rind
- Could Erisichthon have been withered up
- By famine, when most fear he had of it.
- Thinking within myself I said: “Behold,
- This is the folk who lost Jerusalem,
- When Mary made a prey of her own son.”
- Their sockets were like rings without the gems;
- Whoever in the face of men reads ‘omo’
- Might well in these have recognised the ‘m.’
- Who would believe the odour of an apple,
- Begetting longing, could consume them so,
- And that of water, without knowing how?
- I still was wondering what so famished them,
- For the occasion not yet manifest
- Of their emaciation and sad squalor;
- And lo! from out the hollow of his head
- His eyes a shade turned on me, and looked keenly;
- Then cried aloud: “What grace to me is this?”
- Never should I have known him by his look;
- But in his voice was evident to me
- That which his aspect had suppressed within it.
- This spark within me wholly re-enkindled
- My recognition of his altered face,
- And I recalled the features of Forese.
- “Ah, do not look at this dry leprosy,”
- Entreated he, “which doth my skin discolour,
- Nor at default of flesh that I may have;
- But tell me truth of thee, and who are those
- Two souls, that yonder make for thee an escort;
- Do not delay in speaking unto me.”
- “That face of thine, which dead I once bewept,
- Gives me for weeping now no lesser grief,”
- I answered him, “beholding it so changed!
- But tell me, for God’s sake, what thus denudes you?
- Make me not speak while I am marvelling,
- For ill speaks he who’s full of other longings.”
- And he to me: “From the eternal council
- Falls power into the water and the tree
- Behind us left, whereby I grow so thin.
- All of this people who lamenting sing,
- For following beyond measure appetite
- In hunger and thirst are here re-sanctified.
- Desire to eat and drink enkindles in us
- The scent that issues from the apple-tree,
- And from the spray that sprinkles o’er the verdure;
- And not a single time alone, this ground
- Encompassing, is refreshed our pain,—
- I say our pain, and ought to say our solace,—
- For the same wish doth lead us to the tree
- Which led the Christ rejoicing to say ‘Eli,’
- When with his veins he liberated us.”
- And I to him: “Forese, from that day
- When for a better life thou changedst worlds,
- Up to this time five years have not rolled round.
- If sooner were the power exhausted in thee
- Of sinning more, than thee the hour surprised
- Of that good sorrow which to God reweds us,
- How hast thou come up hitherward already?
- I thought to find thee down there underneath,
- Where time for time doth restitution make.”
- And he to me: “Thus speedily has led me
- To drink of the sweet wormwood of these torments,
- My Nella with her overflowing tears;
- She with her prayers devout and with her sighs
- Has drawn me from the coast where one where one awaits,
- And from the other circles set me free.
- So much more dear and pleasing is to God
- My little widow, whom so much I loved,
- As in good works she is the more alone;
- For the Barbagia of Sardinia
- By far more modest in its women is
- Than the Barbagia I have left her in.
- O brother sweet, what wilt thou have me say?
- A future time is in my sight already,
- To which this hour will not be very old,
- When from the pulpit shall be interdicted
- To the unblushing womankind of Florence
- To go about displaying breast and paps.
- What savages were e’er, what Saracens,
- Who stood in need, to make them covered go,
- Of spiritual or other discipline?
- But if the shameless women were assured
- Of what swift Heaven prepares for them, already
- Wide open would they have their mouths to howl;
- For if my foresight here deceive me not,
- They shall be sad ere he has bearded cheeks
- Who now is hushed to sleep with lullaby.
- O brother, now no longer hide thee from me;
- See that not only I, but all these people
- Are gazing there, where thou dost veil the sun.”
- Whence I to him: “If thou bring back to mind
- What thou with me hast been and I with thee,
- The present memory will be grievous still.
- Out of that life he turned me back who goes
- In front of me, two days agone when round
- The sister of him yonder showed herself,”
- And to the sun I pointed. “Through the deep
- Night of the truly dead has this one led me,
- With this true flesh, that follows after him.
- Thence his encouragements have led me up,
- Ascending and still circling round the mount
- That you doth straighten, whom the world made crooked.
- He says that he will bear me company,
- Till I shall be where Beatrice will be;
- There it behoves me to remain without him.
- This is Virgilius, who thus says to me,”
- And him I pointed at; “the other is
- That shade for whom just now shook every slope
- Your realm, that from itself discharges him.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XXIV
- Nor speech the going, nor the going that
- Slackened; but talking we went bravely on,
- Even as a vessel urged by a good wind.
- And shadows, that appeared things doubly dead,
- From out the sepulchres of their eyes betrayed
- Wonder at me, aware that I was living.
- And I, continuing my colloquy,
- Said: “Peradventure he goes up more slowly
- Than he would do, for other people’s sake.
- But tell me, if thou knowest, where is Piccarda;
- Tell me if any one of note I see
- Among this folk that gazes at me so.”
- “My sister, who, ’twixt beautiful and good,
- I know not which was more, triumphs rejoicing
- Already in her crown on high Olympus.”
- So said he first, and then: “’Tis not forbidden
- To name each other here, so milked away
- Is our resemblance by our dieting.
- This,” pointing with his finger, “is Buonagiunta,
- Buonagiunta, of Lucca; and that face
- Beyond him there, more peaked than the others,
- Has held the holy Church within his arms;
- From Tours was he, and purges by his fasting
- Bolsena’s eels and the Vernaccia wine.”
- He named me many others one by one;
- And all contented seemed at being named,
- So that for this I saw not one dark look.
- I saw for hunger bite the empty air
- Ubaldin dalla Pila, and Boniface,
- Who with his crook had pastured many people.
- I saw Messer Marchese, who had leisure
- Once at Forli for drinking with less dryness,
- And he was one who ne’er felt satisfied.
- But as he does who scans, and then doth prize
- One more than others, did I him of Lucca,
- Who seemed to take most cognizance of me.
- He murmured, and I know not what Gentucca
- From that place heard I, where he felt the wound
- Of justice, that doth macerate them so.
- “O soul,” I said, “that seemest so desirous
- To speak with me, do so that I may hear thee,
- And with thy speech appease thyself and me.”
- “A maid is born, and wears not yet the veil,”
- Began he, “who to thee shall pleasant make
- My city, howsoever men may blame it.
- Thou shalt go on thy way with this prevision;
- If by my murmuring thou hast been deceived,
- True things hereafter will declare it to thee.
- But say if him I here behold, who forth
- Evoked the new-invented rhymes, beginning,
- ‘Ladies, that have intelligence of love?’”
- And I to him: “One am I, who, whenever
- Love doth inspire me, note, and in that measure
- Which he within me dictates, singing go.”
- “O brother, now I see,” he said, “the knot
- Which me, the Notary, and Guittone held
- Short of the sweet new style that now I hear.
- I do perceive full clearly how your pens
- Go closely following after him who dictates,
- Which with our own forsooth came not to pass;
- And he who sets himself to go beyond,
- No difference sees from one style to another;”
- And as if satisfied, he held his peace.
- Even as the birds, that winter tow’rds the Nile,
- Sometimes into a phalanx form themselves,
- Then fly in greater haste, and go in file;
- In such wise all the people who were there,
- Turning their faces, hurried on their steps,
- Both by their leanness and their wishes light.
- And as a man, who weary is with trotting,
- Lets his companions onward go, and walks,
- Until he vents the panting of his chest;
- So did Forese let the holy flock
- Pass by, and came with me behind it, saying,
- “When will it be that I again shall see thee?”
- “How long,” I answered, “I may live, I know not;
- Yet my return will not so speedy be,
- But I shall sooner in desire arrive;
- Because the place where I was set to live
- From day to day of good is more depleted,
- And unto dismal ruin seems ordained.”
- “Now go,” he said, “for him most guilty of it
- At a beast’s tail behold I dragged along
- Towards the valley where is no repentance.
- Faster at every step the beast is going,
- Increasing evermore until it smites him,
- And leaves the body vilely mutilated.
- Not long those wheels shall turn,” and he uplifted
- His eyes to heaven, “ere shall be clear to thee
- That which my speech no farther can declare.
- Now stay behind; because the time so precious
- Is in this kingdom, that I lose too much
- By coming onward thus abreast with thee.”
- As sometimes issues forth upon a gallop
- A cavalier from out a troop that ride,
- And seeks the honour of the first encounter,
- So he with greater strides departed from us;
- And on the road remained I with those two,
- Who were such mighty marshals of the world.
- And when before us he had gone so far
- Mine eyes became to him such pursuivants
- As was my understanding to his words,
- Appeared to me with laden and living boughs
- Another apple-tree, and not far distant,
- From having but just then turned thitherward.
- People I saw beneath it lift their hands,
- And cry I know not what towards the leaves,
- Like little children eager and deluded,
- Who pray, and he they pray to doth not answer,
- But, to make very keen their appetite,
- Holds their desire aloft, and hides it not.
- Then they departed as if undeceived;
- And now we came unto the mighty tree
- Which prayers and tears so manifold refuses.
- “Pass farther onward without drawing near;
- The tree of which Eve ate is higher up,
- And out of that one has this tree been raised.”
- Thus said I know not who among the branches;
- Whereat Virgilius, Statius, and myself
- Went crowding forward on the side that rises.
- “Be mindful,” said he, “of the accursed ones
- Formed of the cloud-rack, who inebriate
- Combated Theseus with their double breasts;
- And of the Jews who showed them soft in drinking,
- Whence Gideon would not have them for companions
- When he tow’rds Midian the hills descended.”
- Thus, closely pressed to one of the two borders,
- On passed we, hearing sins of gluttony,
- Followed forsooth by miserable gains;
- Then set at large upon the lonely road,
- A thousand steps and more we onward went,
- In contemplation, each without a word.
- “What go ye thinking thus, ye three alone?”
- Said suddenly a voice, whereat I started
- As terrified and timid beasts are wont.
- I raised my head to see who this might be,
- And never in a furnace was there seen
- Metals or glass so lucent and so red
- As one I saw who said: “If it may please you
- To mount aloft, here it behoves you turn;
- This way goes he who goeth after peace.”
- His aspect had bereft me of my sight,
- So that I turned me back unto my Teachers,
- Like one who goeth as his hearing guides him.
- And as, the harbinger of early dawn,
- The air of May doth move and breathe out fragrance,
- Impregnate all with herbage and with flowers,
- So did I feel a breeze strike in the midst
- My front, and felt the moving of the plumes
- That breathed around an odour of ambrosia;
- And heard it said: “Blessed are they whom grace
- So much illumines, that the love of taste
- Excites not in their breasts too great desire,
- Hungering at all times so far as is just.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XXV
- Now was it the ascent no hindrance brooked,
- Because the sun had his meridian circle
- To Taurus left, and night to Scorpio;
- Wherefore as doth a man who tarries not,
- But goes his way, whate’er to him appear,
- If of necessity the sting transfix him,
- In this wise did we enter through the gap,
- Taking the stairway, one before the other,
- Which by its narrowness divides the climbers.
- And as the little stork that lifts its wing
- With a desire to fly, and does not venture
- To leave the nest, and lets it downward droop,
- Even such was I, with the desire of asking
- Kindled and quenched, unto the motion coming
- He makes who doth address himself to speak.
- Not for our pace, though rapid it might be,
- My father sweet forbore, but said: “Let fly
- The bow of speech thou to the barb hast drawn.”
- With confidence I opened then my mouth,
- And I began: “How can one meagre grow
- There where the need of nutriment applies not?”
- “If thou wouldst call to mind how Meleager
- Was wasted by the wasting of a brand,
- This would not,” said he, “be to thee so sour;
- And wouldst thou think how at each tremulous motion
- Trembles within a mirror your own image;
- That which seems hard would mellow seem to thee.
- But that thou mayst content thee in thy wish
- Lo Statius here; and him I call and pray
- He now will be the healer of thy wounds.”
- “If I unfold to him the eternal vengeance,”
- Responded Statius, “where thou present art,
- Be my excuse that I can naught deny thee.”
- Then he began: “Son, if these words of mine
- Thy mind doth contemplate and doth receive,
- They’ll be thy light unto the How thou sayest.
- The perfect blood, which never is drunk up
- Into the thirsty veins, and which remaineth
- Like food that from the table thou removest,
- Takes in the heart for all the human members
- Virtue informative, as being that
- Which to be changed to them goes through the veins
- Again digest, descends it where ’tis better
- Silent to be than say; and then drops thence
- Upon another’s blood in natural vase.
- There one together with the other mingles,
- One to be passive meant, the other active
- By reason of the perfect place it springs from;
- And being conjoined, begins to operate,
- Coagulating first, then vivifying
- What for its matter it had made consistent.
- The active virtue, being made a soul
- As of a plant, (in so far different,
- This on the way is, that arrived already,)
- Then works so much, that now it moves and feels
- Like a sea-fungus, and then undertakes
- To organize the powers whose seed it is.
- Now, Son, dilates and now distends itself
- The virtue from the generator’s heart,
- Where nature is intent on all the members.
- But how from animal it man becomes
- Thou dost not see as yet; this is a point
- Which made a wiser man than thou once err
- So far, that in his doctrine separate
- He made the soul from possible intellect,
- For he no organ saw by this assumed.
- Open thy breast unto the truth that’s coming,
- And know that, just as soon as in the foetus
- The articulation of the brain is perfect,
- The primal Motor turns to it well pleased
- At so great art of nature, and inspires
- A spirit new with virtue all replete,
- Which what it finds there active doth attract
- Into its substance, and becomes one soul,
- Which lives, and feels, and on itself revolves.
- And that thou less may wonder at my word,
- Behold the sun’s heat, which becometh wine,
- Joined to the juice that from the vine distils.
- Whenever Lachesis has no more thread,
- It separates from the flesh, and virtually
- Bears with itself the human and divine;
- The other faculties are voiceless all;
- The memory, the intelligence, and the will
- In action far more vigorous than before.
- Without a pause it falleth of itself
- In marvellous way on one shore or the other;
- There of its roads it first is cognizant.
- Soon as the place there circumscribeth it,
- The virtue informative rays round about,
- As, and as much as, in the living members.
- And even as the air, when full of rain,
- By alien rays that are therein reflected,
- With divers colours shows itself adorned,
- So there the neighbouring air doth shape itself
- Into that form which doth impress upon it
- Virtually the soul that has stood still.
- And then in manner of the little flame,
- Which followeth the fire where’er it shifts,
- After the spirit followeth its new form.
- Since afterwards it takes from this its semblance,
- It is called shade; and thence it organizes
- Thereafter every sense, even to the sight.
- Thence is it that we speak, and thence we laugh;
- Thence is it that we form the tears and sighs,
- That on the mountain thou mayhap hast heard.
- According as impress us our desires
- And other affections, so the shade is shaped,
- And this is cause of what thou wonderest at.”
- And now unto the last of all the circles
- Had we arrived, and to the right hand turned,
- And were attentive to another care.
- There the embankment shoots forth flames of fire,
- And upward doth the cornice breathe a blast
- That drives them back, and from itself sequesters.
- Hence we must needs go on the open side,
- And one by one; and I did fear the fire
- On this side, and on that the falling down.
- My Leader said: “Along this place one ought
- To keep upon the eyes a tightened rein,
- Seeing that one so easily might err.”
- “Summae Deus clementiae,” in the bosom
- Of the great burning chanted then I heard,
- Which made me no less eager to turn round;
- And spirits saw I walking through the flame;
- Wherefore I looked, to my own steps and theirs
- Apportioning my sight from time to time.
- After the close which to that hymn is made,
- Aloud they shouted, “Virum non cognosco;”
- Then recommenced the hymn with voices low.
- This also ended, cried they: “To the wood
- Diana ran, and drove forth Helice
- Therefrom, who had of Venus felt the poison.”
- Then to their song returned they; then the wives
- They shouted, and the husbands who were chaste.
- As virtue and the marriage vow imposes.
- And I believe that them this mode suffices,
- For all the time the fire is burning them;
- With such care is it needful, and such food,
- That the last wound of all should be closed up.
- Purgatorio: Canto XXVI
- While on the brink thus one before the other
- We went upon our way, oft the good Master
- Said: “Take thou heed! suffice it that I warn thee.”
- On the right shoulder smote me now the sun,
- That, raying out, already the whole west
- Changed from its azure aspect into white.
- And with my shadow did I make the flame
- Appear more red; and even to such a sign
- Shades saw I many, as they went, give heed.
- This was the cause that gave them a beginning
- To speak of me; and to themselves began they
- To say: “That seems not a factitious body!”
- Then towards me, as far as they could come,
- Came certain of them, always with regard
- Not to step forth where they would not be burned.
- “O thou who goest, not from being slower
- But reverent perhaps, behind the others,
- Answer me, who in thirst and fire am burning.
- Nor to me only is thine answer needful;
- For all of these have greater thirst for it
- Than for cold water Ethiop or Indian.
- Tell us how is it that thou makest thyself
- A wall unto the sun, as if thou hadst not
- Entered as yet into the net of death.”
- Thus one of them addressed me, and I straight
- Should have revealed myself, were I not bent
- On other novelty that then appeared.
- For through the middle of the burning road
- There came a people face to face with these,
- Which held me in suspense with gazing at them.
- There see I hastening upon either side
- Each of the shades, and kissing one another
- Without a pause, content with brief salute.
- Thus in the middle of their brown battalions
- Muzzle to muzzle one ant meets another
- Perchance to spy their journey or their fortune.
- No sooner is the friendly greeting ended,
- Or ever the first footstep passes onward,
- Each one endeavours to outcry the other;
- The new-come people: “Sodom and Gomorrah!”
- The rest: “Into the cow Pasiphae enters,
- So that the bull unto her lust may run!”
- Then as the cranes, that to Riphaean mountains
- Might fly in part, and part towards the sands,
- These of the frost, those of the sun avoidant,
- One folk is going, and the other coming,
- And weeping they return to their first songs,
- And to the cry that most befitteth them;
- And close to me approached, even as before,
- The very same who had entreated me,
- Attent to listen in their countenance.
- I, who their inclination twice had seen,
- Began: “O souls secure in the possession,
- Whene’er it may be, of a state of peace,
- Neither unripe nor ripened have remained
- My members upon earth, but here are with me
- With their own blood and their articulations.
- I go up here to be no longer blind;
- A Lady is above, who wins this grace,
- Whereby the mortal through your world I bring.
- But as your greatest longing satisfied
- May soon become, so that the Heaven may house you
- Which full of love is, and most amply spreads,
- Tell me, that I again in books may write it,
- Who are you, and what is that multitude
- Which goes upon its way behind your backs?”
- Not otherwise with wonder is bewildered
- The mountaineer, and staring round is dumb,
- When rough and rustic to the town he goes,
- Than every shade became in its appearance;
- But when they of their stupor were disburdened,
- Which in high hearts is quickly quieted,
- “Blessed be thou, who of our border-lands,”
- He recommenced who first had questioned us,
- “Experience freightest for a better life.
- The folk that comes not with us have offended
- In that for which once Caesar, triumphing,
- Heard himself called in contumely, ‘Queen.’
- Therefore they separate, exclaiming, ‘Sodom!’
- Themselves reproving, even as thou hast heard,
- And add unto their burning by their shame.
- Our own transgression was hermaphrodite;
- But because we observed not human law,
- Following like unto beasts our appetite,
- In our opprobrium by us is read,
- When we part company, the name of her
- Who bestialized herself in bestial wood.
- Now knowest thou our acts, and what our crime was;
- Wouldst thou perchance by name know who we are,
- There is not time to tell, nor could I do it.
- Thy wish to know me shall in sooth be granted;
- I’m Guido Guinicelli, and now purge me,
- Having repented ere the hour extreme.”
- The same that in the sadness of Lycurgus
- Two sons became, their mother re-beholding,
- Such I became, but rise not to such height,
- The moment I heard name himself the father
- Of me and of my betters, who had ever
- Practised the sweet and gracious rhymes of love;
- And without speech and hearing thoughtfully
- For a long time I went, beholding him,
- Nor for the fire did I approach him nearer.
- When I was fed with looking, utterly
- Myself I offered ready for his service,
- With affirmation that compels belief.
- And he to me: “Thou leavest footprints such
- In me, from what I hear, and so distinct,
- Lethe cannot efface them, nor make dim.
- But if thy words just now the truth have sworn,
- Tell me what is the cause why thou displayest
- In word and look that dear thou holdest me?”
- And I to him: “Those dulcet lays of yours
- Which, long as shall endure our modern fashion,
- Shall make for ever dear their very ink!”
- “O brother,” said he, “he whom I point out,”
- And here he pointed at a spirit in front,
- “Was of the mother tongue a better smith.
- Verses of love and proses of romance,
- He mastered all; and let the idiots talk,
- Who think the Lemosin surpasses him.
- To clamour more than truth they turn their faces,
- And in this way establish their opinion,
- Ere art or reason has by them been heard.
- Thus many ancients with Guittone did,
- From cry to cry still giving him applause,
- Until the truth has conquered with most persons.
- Now, if thou hast such ample privilege
- ’Tis granted thee to go unto the cloister
- Wherein is Christ the abbot of the college,
- To him repeat for me a Paternoster,
- So far as needful to us of this world,
- Where power of sinning is no longer ours.”
- Then, to give place perchance to one behind,
- Whom he had near, he vanished in the fire
- As fish in water going to the bottom.
- I moved a little tow’rds him pointed out,
- And said that to his name my own desire
- An honourable place was making ready.
- He of his own free will began to say:
- ‘Tan m’ abellis vostre cortes deman,
- Que jeu nom’ puesc ni vueill a vos cobrire;
- Jeu sui Arnaut, que plor e vai chantan;
- Consiros vei la passada folor,
- E vei jauzen lo jorn qu’ esper denan.
- Ara vus prec per aquella valor,
- Que vus condus al som de la scalina,
- Sovenga vus a temprar ma dolor.’*
- Then hid him in the fire that purifies them.
- * So pleases me your courteous demand,
- I cannot and I will not hide me from you.
- I am Arnaut, who weep and singing go;
- Contrite I see the folly of the past,
- And joyous see the hoped-for day before me.
- Therefore do I implore you, by that power
- Which guides you to the summit of the stairs,
- Be mindful to assuage my suffering!
- Purgatorio: Canto XXVII
- As when he vibrates forth his earliest rays,
- In regions where his Maker shed his blood,
- (The Ebro falling under lofty Libra,
- And waters in the Ganges burnt with noon,)
- So stood the Sun; hence was the day departing,
- When the glad Angel of God appeared to us.
- Outside the flame he stood upon the verge,
- And chanted forth, “Beati mundo corde,”
- In voice by far more living than our own.
- Then: “No one farther goes, souls sanctified,
- If first the fire bite not; within it enter,
- And be not deaf unto the song beyond.”
- When we were close beside him thus he said;
- Wherefore e’en such became I, when I heard him,
- As he is who is put into the grave.
- Upon my clasped hands I straightened me,
- Scanning the fire, and vividly recalling
- The human bodies I had once seen burned.
- Towards me turned themselves my good Conductors,
- And unto me Virgilius said: “My son,
- Here may indeed be torment, but not death.
- Remember thee, remember! and if I
- On Geryon have safely guided thee,
- What shall I do now I am nearer God?
- Believe for certain, shouldst thou stand a full
- Millennium in the bosom of this flame,
- It could not make thee bald a single hair.
- And if perchance thou think that I deceive thee,
- Draw near to it, and put it to the proof
- With thine own hands upon thy garment’s hem.
- Now lay aside, now lay aside all fear,
- Turn hitherward, and onward come securely;”
- And I still motionless, and ’gainst my conscience!
- Seeing me stand still motionless and stubborn,
- Somewhat disturbed he said: “Now look thou, Son,
- ’Twixt Beatrice and thee there is this wall.”
- As at the name of Thisbe oped his lids
- The dying Pyramus, and gazed upon her,
- What time the mulberry became vermilion,
- Even thus, my obduracy being softened,
- I turned to my wise Guide, hearing the name
- That in my memory evermore is welling.
- Whereat he wagged his head, and said: “How now?
- Shall we stay on this side?” then smiled as one
- Does at a child who’s vanquished by an apple.
- Then into the fire in front of me he entered,
- Beseeching Statius to come after me,
- Who a long way before divided us.
- When I was in it, into molten glass
- I would have cast me to refresh myself,
- So without measure was the burning there!
- And my sweet Father, to encourage me,
- Discoursing still of Beatrice went on,
- Saying: “Her eyes I seem to see already!”
- A voice, that on the other side was singing,
- Directed us, and we, attent alone
- On that, came forth where the ascent began.
- “Venite, benedicti Patris mei,”
- Sounded within a splendour, which was there
- Such it o’ercame me, and I could not look.
- “The sun departs,” it added, “and night cometh;
- Tarry ye not, but onward urge your steps,
- So long as yet the west becomes not dark.”
- Straight forward through the rock the path ascended
- In such a way that I cut off the rays
- Before me of the sun, that now was low.
- And of few stairs we yet had made assay,
- Ere by the vanished shadow the sun’s setting
- Behind us we perceived, I and my Sages.
- And ere in all its parts immeasurable
- The horizon of one aspect had become,
- And Night her boundless dispensation held,
- Each of us of a stair had made his bed;
- Because the nature of the mount took from us
- The power of climbing, more than the delight.
- Even as in ruminating passive grow
- The goats, who have been swift and venturesome
- Upon the mountain-tops ere they were fed,
- Hushed in the shadow, while the sun is hot,
- Watched by the herdsman, who upon his staff
- Is leaning, and in leaning tendeth them;
- And as the shepherd, lodging out of doors,
- Passes the night beside his quiet flock,
- Watching that no wild beast may scatter it,
- Such at that hour were we, all three of us,
- I like the goat, and like the herdsmen they,
- Begirt on this side and on that by rocks.
- Little could there be seen of things without;
- But through that little I beheld the stars
- More luminous and larger than their wont.
- Thus ruminating, and beholding these,
- Sleep seized upon me,—sleep, that oftentimes
- Before a deed is done has tidings of it.
- It was the hour, I think, when from the East
- First on the mountain Citherea beamed,
- Who with the fire of love seems always burning;
- Youthful and beautiful in dreams methought
- I saw a lady walking in a meadow,
- Gathering flowers; and singing she was saying:
- “Know whosoever may my name demand
- That I am Leah, and go moving round
- My beauteous hands to make myself a garland.
- To please me at the mirror, here I deck me,
- But never does my sister Rachel leave
- Her looking-glass, and sitteth all day long.
- To see her beauteous eyes as eager is she,
- As I am to adorn me with my hands;
- Her, seeing, and me, doing satisfies.”
- And now before the antelucan splendours
- That unto pilgrims the more grateful rise,
- As, home-returning, less remote they lodge,
- The darkness fled away on every side,
- And slumber with it; whereupon I rose,
- Seeing already the great Masters risen.
- “That apple sweet, which through so many branches
- The care of mortals goeth in pursuit of,
- To-day shall put in peace thy hungerings.”
- Speaking to me, Virgilius of such words
- As these made use; and never were there guerdons
- That could in pleasantness compare with these.
- Such longing upon longing came upon me
- To be above, that at each step thereafter
- For flight I felt in me the pinions growing.
- When underneath us was the stairway all
- Run o’er, and we were on the highest step,
- Virgilius fastened upon me his eyes,
- And said: “The temporal fire and the eternal,
- Son, thou hast seen, and to a place art come
- Where of myself no farther I discern.
- By intellect and art I here have brought thee;
- Take thine own pleasure for thy guide henceforth;
- Beyond the steep ways and the narrow art thou.
- Behold the sun, that shines upon thy forehead;
- Behold the grass, the flowerets, and the shrubs
- Which of itself alone this land produces.
- Until rejoicing come the beauteous eyes
- Which weeping caused me to come unto thee,
- Thou canst sit down, and thou canst walk among them.
- Expect no more or word or sign from me;
- Free and upright and sound is thy free-will,
- And error were it not to do its bidding;
- Thee o’er thyself I therefore crown and mitre!”
- Purgatorio: Canto XXVIII
- Eager already to search in and round
- The heavenly forest, dense and living-green,
- Which tempered to the eyes the new-born day,
- Withouten more delay I left the bank,
- Taking the level country slowly, slowly
- Over the soil that everywhere breathes fragrance.
- A softly-breathing air, that no mutation
- Had in itself, upon the forehead smote me
- No heavier blow than of a gentle wind,
- Whereat the branches, lightly tremulous,
- Did all of them bow downward toward that side
- Where its first shadow casts the Holy Mountain;
- Yet not from their upright direction swayed,
- So that the little birds upon their tops
- Should leave the practice of each art of theirs;
- But with full ravishment the hours of prime,
- Singing, received they in the midst of leaves,
- That ever bore a burden to their rhymes,
- Such as from branch to branch goes gathering on
- Through the pine forest on the shore of Chiassi,
- When Eolus unlooses the Sirocco.
- Already my slow steps had carried me
- Into the ancient wood so far, that I
- Could not perceive where I had entered it.
- And lo! my further course a stream cut off,
- Which tow’rd the left hand with its little waves
- Bent down the grass that on its margin sprang.
- All waters that on earth most limpid are
- Would seem to have within themselves some mixture
- Compared with that which nothing doth conceal,
- Although it moves on with a brown, brown current
- Under the shade perpetual, that never
- Ray of the sun lets in, nor of the moon.
- With feet I stayed, and with mine eyes I passed
- Beyond the rivulet, to look upon
- The great variety of the fresh may.
- And there appeared to me (even as appears
- Suddenly something that doth turn aside
- Through very wonder every other thought)
- A lady all alone, who went along
- Singing and culling floweret after floweret,
- With which her pathway was all painted over.
- “Ah, beauteous lady, who in rays of love
- Dost warm thyself, if I may trust to looks,
- Which the heart’s witnesses are wont to be,
- May the desire come unto thee to draw
- Near to this river’s bank,” I said to her,
- “So much that I might hear what thou art singing.
- Thou makest me remember where and what
- Proserpina that moment was when lost
- Her mother her, and she herself the Spring.”
- As turns herself, with feet together pressed
- And to the ground, a lady who is dancing,
- And hardly puts one foot before the other,
- On the vermilion and the yellow flowerets
- She turned towards me, not in other wise
- Than maiden who her modest eyes casts down;
- And my entreaties made to be content,
- So near approaching, that the dulcet sound
- Came unto me together with its meaning
- As soon as she was where the grasses are.
- Bathed by the waters of the beauteous river,
- To lift her eyes she granted me the boon.
- I do not think there shone so great a light
- Under the lids of Venus, when transfixed
- By her own son, beyond his usual custom!
- Erect upon the other bank she smiled,
- Bearing full many colours in her hands,
- Which that high land produces without seed.
- Apart three paces did the river make us;
- But Hellespont, where Xerxes passed across,
- (A curb still to all human arrogance,)
- More hatred from Leander did not suffer
- For rolling between Sestos and Abydos,
- Than that from me, because it oped not then.
- “Ye are new-comers; and because I smile,”
- Began she, “peradventure, in this place
- Elect to human nature for its nest,
- Some apprehension keeps you marvelling;
- But the psalm ‘Delectasti’ giveth light
- Which has the power to uncloud your intellect.
- And thou who foremost art, and didst entreat me,
- Speak, if thou wouldst hear more; for I came ready
- To all thy questionings, as far as needful.”
- “The water,” said I, “and the forest’s sound,
- Are combating within me my new faith
- In something which I heard opposed to this.”
- Whence she: “I will relate how from its cause
- Proceedeth that which maketh thee to wonder,
- And purge away the cloud that smites upon thee.
- The Good Supreme, sole in itself delighting,
- Created man good, and this goodly place
- Gave him as hansel of eternal peace.
- By his default short while he sojourned here;
- By his default to weeping and to toil
- He changed his innocent laughter and sweet play.
- That the disturbance which below is made
- By exhalations of the land and water,
- (Which far as may be follow after heat,)
- Might not upon mankind wage any war,
- This mount ascended tow’rds the heaven so high,
- And is exempt, from there where it is locked.
- Now since the universal atmosphere
- Turns in a circuit with the primal motion
- Unless the circle is broken on some side,
- Upon this height, that all is disengaged
- In living ether, doth this motion strike
- And make the forest sound, for it is dense;
- And so much power the stricken plant possesses
- That with its virtue it impregns the air,
- And this, revolving, scatters it around;
- And yonder earth, according as ’tis worthy
- In self or in its clime, conceives and bears
- Of divers qualities the divers trees;
- It should not seem a marvel then on earth,
- This being heard, whenever any plant
- Without seed manifest there taketh root.
- And thou must know, this holy table-land
- In which thou art is full of every seed,
- And fruit has in it never gathered there.
- The water which thou seest springs not from vein
- Restored by vapour that the cold condenses,
- Like to a stream that gains or loses breath;
- But issues from a fountain safe and certain,
- Which by the will of God as much regains
- As it discharges, open on two sides.
- Upon this side with virtue it descends,
- Which takes away all memory of sin;
- On that, of every good deed done restores it.
- Here Lethe, as upon the other side
- Eunoe, it is called; and worketh not
- If first on either side it be not tasted.
- This every other savour doth transcend;
- And notwithstanding slaked so far may be
- Thy thirst, that I reveal to thee no more,
- I’ll give thee a corollary still in grace,
- Nor think my speech will be to thee less dear
- If it spread out beyond my promise to thee.
- Those who in ancient times have feigned in song
- The Age of Gold and its felicity,
- Dreamed of this place perhaps upon Parnassus.
- Here was the human race in innocence;
- Here evermore was Spring, and every fruit;
- This is the nectar of which each one speaks.”
- Then backward did I turn me wholly round
- Unto my Poets, and saw that with a smile
- They had been listening to these closing words;
- Then to the beautiful lady turned mine eyes.
- Purgatorio: Canto XXIX
- Singing like unto an enamoured lady
- She, with the ending of her words, continued:
- “Beati quorum tecta sunt peccata.”
- And even as Nymphs, that wandered all alone
- Among the sylvan shadows, sedulous
- One to avoid and one to see the sun,
- She then against the stream moved onward, going
- Along the bank, and I abreast of her,
- Her little steps with little steps attending.
- Between her steps and mine were not a hundred,
- When equally the margins gave a turn,
- In such a way, that to the East I faced.
- Nor even thus our way continued far
- Before the lady wholly turned herself
- Unto me, saying, “Brother, look and listen!”
- And lo! a sudden lustre ran across
- On every side athwart the spacious forest,
- Such that it made me doubt if it were lightning.
- But since the lightning ceases as it comes,
- And that continuing brightened more and more,
- Within my thought I said, “What thing is this?”
- And a delicious melody there ran
- Along the luminous air, whence holy zeal
- Made me rebuke the hardihood of Eve;
- For there where earth and heaven obedient were,
- The woman only, and but just created,
- Could not endure to stay ’neath any veil;
- Underneath which had she devoutly stayed,
- I sooner should have tasted those delights
- Ineffable, and for a longer time.
- While ’mid such manifold first-fruits I walked
- Of the eternal pleasure all enrapt,
- And still solicitous of more delights,
- In front of us like an enkindled fire
- Became the air beneath the verdant boughs,
- And the sweet sound as singing now was heard.
- O Virgins sacrosanct! if ever hunger,
- Vigils, or cold for you I have endured,
- The occasion spurs me their reward to claim!
- Now Helicon must needs pour forth for me,
- And with her choir Urania must assist me,
- To put in verse things difficult to think.
- A little farther on, seven trees of gold
- In semblance the long space still intervening
- Between ourselves and them did counterfeit;
- But when I had approached so near to them
- The common object, which the sense deceives,
- Lost not by distance any of its marks,
- The faculty that lends discourse to reason
- Did apprehend that they were candlesticks,
- And in the voices of the song “Hosanna!”
- Above them flamed the harness beautiful,
- Far brighter than the moon in the serene
- Of midnight, at the middle of her month.
- I turned me round, with admiration filled,
- To good Virgilius, and he answered me
- With visage no less full of wonderment.
- Then back I turned my face to those high things,
- Which moved themselves towards us so sedately,
- They had been distanced by new-wedded brides.
- The lady chid me: “Why dost thou burn only
- So with affection for the living lights,
- And dost not look at what comes after them?”
- Then saw I people, as behind their leaders,
- Coming behind them, garmented in white,
- And such a whiteness never was on earth.
- The water on my left flank was resplendent,
- And back to me reflected my left side,
- E’en as a mirror, if I looked therein.
- When I upon my margin had such post
- That nothing but the stream divided us,
- Better to see I gave my steps repose;
- And I beheld the flamelets onward go,
- Leaving behind themselves the air depicted,
- And they of trailing pennons had the semblance,
- So that it overhead remained distinct
- With sevenfold lists, all of them of the colours
- Whence the sun’s bow is made, and Delia’s girdle.
- These standards to the rearward longer were
- Than was my sight; and, as it seemed to me,
- Ten paces were the outermost apart.
- Under so fair a heaven as I describe
- The four and twenty Elders, two by two,
- Came on incoronate with flower-de-luce.
- They all of them were singing: “Blessed thou
- Among the daughters of Adam art, and blessed
- For evermore shall be thy loveliness.”
- After the flowers and other tender grasses
- In front of me upon the other margin
- Were disencumbered of that race elect,
- Even as in heaven star followeth after star,
- There came close after them four animals,
- Incoronate each one with verdant leaf.
- Plumed with six wings was every one of them,
- The plumage full of eyes; the eyes of Argus
- If they were living would be such as these.
- Reader! to trace their forms no more I waste
- My rhymes; for other spendings press me so,
- That I in this cannot be prodigal.
- But read Ezekiel, who depicteth them
- As he beheld them from the region cold
- Coming with cloud, with whirlwind, and with fire;
- And such as thou shalt find them in his pages,
- Such were they here; saving that in their plumage
- John is with me, and differeth from him.
- The interval between these four contained
- A chariot triumphal on two wheels,
- Which by a Griffin’s neck came drawn along;
- And upward he extended both his wings
- Between the middle list and three and three,
- So that he injured none by cleaving it.
- So high they rose that they were lost to sight;
- His limbs were gold, so far as he was bird,
- And white the others with vermilion mingled.
- Not only Rome with no such splendid car
- E’er gladdened Africanus, or Augustus,
- But poor to it that of the Sun would be,—
- That of the Sun, which swerving was burnt up
- At the importunate orison of Earth,
- When Jove was so mysteriously just.
- Three maidens at the right wheel in a circle
- Came onward dancing; one so very red
- That in the fire she hardly had been noted.
- The second was as if her flesh and bones
- Had all been fashioned out of emerald;
- The third appeared as snow but newly fallen.
- And now they seemed conducted by the white,
- Now by the red, and from the song of her
- The others took their step, or slow or swift.
- Upon the left hand four made holiday
- Vested in purple, following the measure
- Of one of them with three eyes m her head.
- In rear of all the group here treated of
- Two old men I beheld, unlike in habit,
- But like in gait, each dignified and grave.
- One showed himself as one of the disciples
- Of that supreme Hippocrates, whom nature
- Made for the animals she holds most dear;
- Contrary care the other manifested,
- With sword so shining and so sharp, it caused
- Terror to me on this side of the river.
- Thereafter four I saw of humble aspect,
- And behind all an aged man alone
- Walking in sleep with countenance acute.
- And like the foremost company these seven
- Were habited; yet of the flower-de-luce
- No garland round about the head they wore,
- But of the rose, and other flowers vermilion;
- At little distance would the sight have sworn
- That all were in a flame above their brows.
- And when the car was opposite to me
- Thunder was heard; and all that folk august
- Seemed to have further progress interdicted,
- There with the vanward ensigns standing still.
- Purgatorio: Canto XXX
- When the Septentrion of the highest heaven
- (Which never either setting knew or rising,
- Nor veil of other cloud than that of sin,
- And which made every one therein aware
- Of his own duty, as the lower makes
- Whoever turns the helm to come to port)
- Motionless halted, the veracious people,
- That came at first between it and the Griffin,
- Turned themselves to the car, as to their peace.
- And one of them, as if by Heaven commissioned,
- Singing, “Veni, sponsa, de Libano”
- Shouted three times, and all the others after.
- Even as the Blessed at the final summons
- Shall rise up quickened each one from his cavern,
- Uplifting light the reinvested flesh,
- So upon that celestial chariot
- A hundred rose ‘ad vocem tanti senis,’
- Ministers and messengers of life eternal.
- They all were saying, “Benedictus qui venis,”
- And, scattering flowers above and round about,
- “Manibus o date lilia plenis.”
- Ere now have I beheld, as day began,
- The eastern hemisphere all tinged with rose,
- And the other heaven with fair serene adorned;
- And the sun’s face, uprising, overshadowed
- So that by tempering influence of vapours
- For a long interval the eye sustained it;
- Thus in the bosom of a cloud of flowers
- Which from those hands angelical ascended,
- And downward fell again inside and out,
- Over her snow-white veil with olive cinct
- Appeared a lady under a green mantle,
- Vested in colour of the living flame.
- And my own spirit, that already now
- So long a time had been, that in her presence
- Trembling with awe it had not stood abashed,
- Without more knowledge having by mine eyes,
- Through occult virtue that from her proceeded
- Of ancient love the mighty influence felt.
- As soon as on my vision smote the power
- Sublime, that had already pierced me through
- Ere from my boyhood I had yet come forth,
- To the left hand I turned with that reliance
- With which the little child runs to his mother,
- When he has fear, or when he is afflicted,
- To say unto Virgilius: “Not a drachm
- Of blood remains in me, that does not tremble;
- I know the traces of the ancient flame.”
- But us Virgilius of himself deprived
- Had left, Virgilius, sweetest of all fathers,
- Virgilius, to whom I for safety gave me:
- Nor whatsoever lost the ancient mother
- Availed my cheeks now purified from dew,
- That weeping they should not again be darkened.
- “Dante, because Virgilius has departed
- Do not weep yet, do not weep yet awhile;
- For by another sword thou need’st must weep.”
- E’en as an admiral, who on poop and prow
- Comes to behold the people that are working
- In other ships, and cheers them to well-doing,
- Upon the left hand border of the car,
- When at the sound I turned of my own name,
- Which of necessity is here recorded,
- I saw the Lady, who erewhile appeared
- Veiled underneath the angelic festival,
- Direct her eyes to me across the river.
- Although the veil, that from her head descended,
- Encircled with the foliage of Minerva,
- Did not permit her to appear distinctly,
- In attitude still royally majestic
- Continued she, like unto one who speaks,
- And keeps his warmest utterance in reserve:
- “Look at me well; in sooth I’m Beatrice!
- How didst thou deign to come unto the Mountain?
- Didst thou not know that man is happy here?”
- Mine eyes fell downward into the clear fountain,
- But, seeing myself therein, I sought the grass,
- So great a shame did weigh my forehead down.
- As to the son the mother seems superb,
- So she appeared to me; for somewhat bitter
- Tasteth the savour of severe compassion.
- Silent became she, and the Angels sang
- Suddenly, “In te, Domine, speravi:”
- But beyond ‘pedes meos’ did not pass.
- Even as the snow among the living rafters
- Upon the back of Italy congeals,
- Blown on and drifted by Sclavonian winds,
- And then, dissolving, trickles through itself
- Whene’er the land that loses shadow breathes,
- So that it seems a fire that melts a taper;
- E’en thus was I without a tear or sigh,
- Before the song of those who sing for ever
- After the music of the eternal spheres.
- But when I heard in their sweet melodies
- Compassion for me, more than had they said,
- “O wherefore, lady, dost thou thus upbraid him?”
- The ice, that was about my heart congealed,
- To air and water changed, and in my anguish
- Through mouth and eyes came gushing from my breast.
- She, on the right-hand border of the car
- Still firmly standing, to those holy beings
- Thus her discourse directed afterwards:
- “Ye keep your watch in the eternal day,
- So that nor night nor sleep can steal from you
- One step the ages make upon their path;
- Therefore my answer is with greater care,
- That he may hear me who is weeping yonder,
- So that the sin and dole be of one measure.
- Not only by the work of those great wheels,
- That destine every seed unto some end,
- According as the stars are in conjunction,
- But by the largess of celestial graces,
- Which have such lofty vapours for their rain
- That near to them our sight approaches not,
- Such had this man become in his new life
- Potentially, that every righteous habit
- Would have made admirable proof in him;
- But so much more malignant and more savage
- Becomes the land untilled and with bad seed,
- The more good earthly vigour it possesses.
- Some time did I sustain him with my look;
- Revealing unto him my youthful eyes,
- I led him with me turned in the right way.
- As soon as ever of my second age
- I was upon the threshold and changed life,
- Himself from me he took and gave to others.
- When from the flesh to spirit I ascended,
- And beauty and virtue were in me increased,
- I was to him less dear and less delightful;
- And into ways untrue he turned his steps,
- Pursuing the false images of good,
- That never any promises fulfil;
- Nor prayer for inspiration me availed,
- By means of which in dreams and otherwise
- I called him back, so little did he heed them.
- So low he fell, that all appliances
- For his salvation were already short,
- Save showing him the people of perdition.
- For this I visited the gates of death,
- And unto him, who so far up has led him,
- My intercessions were with weeping borne.
- God’s lofty fiat would be violated,
- If Lethe should be passed, and if such viands
- Should tasted be, withouten any scot
- Of penitence, that gushes forth in tears.”
- Purgatorio: Canto XXXI
- “O thou who art beyond the sacred river,”
- Turning to me the point of her discourse,
- That edgewise even had seemed to me so keen,
- She recommenced, continuing without pause,
- “Say, say if this be true; to such a charge,
- Thy own confession needs must be conjoined.”
- My faculties were in so great confusion,
- That the voice moved, but sooner was extinct
- Than by its organs it was set at large.
- Awhile she waited; then she said: “What thinkest?
- Answer me; for the mournful memories
- In thee not yet are by the waters injured.”
- Confusion and dismay together mingled
- Forced such a Yes! from out my mouth, that sight
- Was needful to the understanding of it.
- Even as a cross-bow breaks, when ’tis discharged
- Too tensely drawn the bowstring and the bow,
- And with less force the arrow hits the mark,
- So I gave way beneath that heavy burden,
- Outpouring in a torrent tears and sighs,
- And the voice flagged upon its passage forth.
- Whence she to me: “In those desires of mine
- Which led thee to the loving of that good,
- Beyond which there is nothing to aspire to,
- What trenches lying traverse or what chains
- Didst thou discover, that of passing onward
- Thou shouldst have thus despoiled thee of the hope?
- And what allurements or what vantages
- Upon the forehead of the others showed,
- That thou shouldst turn thy footsteps unto them?”
- After the heaving of a bitter sigh,
- Hardly had I the voice to make response,
- And with fatigue my lips did fashion it.
- Weeping I said: “The things that present were
- With their false pleasure turned aside my steps,
- Soon as your countenance concealed itself.”
- And she: “Shouldst thou be silent, or deny
- What thou confessest, not less manifest
- Would be thy fault, by such a Judge ’tis known.
- But when from one’s own cheeks comes bursting forth
- The accusal of the sin, in our tribunal
- Against the edge the wheel doth turn itself.
- But still, that thou mayst feel a greater shame
- For thy transgression, and another time
- Hearing the Sirens thou mayst be more strong,
- Cast down the seed of weeping and attend;
- So shalt thou hear, how in an opposite way
- My buried flesh should have directed thee.
- Never to thee presented art or nature
- Pleasure so great as the fair limbs wherein
- I was enclosed, which scattered are in earth.
- And if the highest pleasure thus did fail thee
- By reason of my death, what mortal thing
- Should then have drawn thee into its desire?
- Thou oughtest verily at the first shaft
- Of things fallacious to have risen up
- To follow me, who was no longer such.
- Thou oughtest not to have stooped thy pinions downward
- To wait for further blows, or little girl,
- Or other vanity of such brief use.
- The callow birdlet waits for two or three,
- But to the eyes of those already fledged,
- In vain the net is spread or shaft is shot.”
- Even as children silent in their shame
- Stand listening with their eyes upon the ground,
- And conscious of their fault, and penitent;
- So was I standing; and she said: “If thou
- In hearing sufferest pain, lift up thy beard
- And thou shalt feel a greater pain in seeing.”
- With less resistance is a robust holm
- Uprooted, either by a native wind
- Or else by that from regions of Iarbas,
- Than I upraised at her command my chin;
- And when she by the beard the face demanded,
- Well I perceived the venom of her meaning.
- And as my countenance was lifted up,
- Mine eye perceived those creatures beautiful
- Had rested from the strewing of the flowers;
- And, still but little reassured, mine eyes
- Saw Beatrice turned round towards the monster,
- That is one person only in two natures.
- Beneath her veil, beyond the margent green,
- She seemed to me far more her ancient self
- To excel, than others here, when she was here.
- So pricked me then the thorn of penitence,
- That of all other things the one which turned me
- Most to its love became the most my foe.
- Such self-conviction stung me at the heart
- O’erpowered I fell, and what I then became
- She knoweth who had furnished me the cause.
- Then, when the heart restored my outward sense,
- The lady I had found alone, above me
- I saw, and she was saying, “Hold me, hold me.”
- Up to my throat she in the stream had drawn me,
- And, dragging me behind her, she was moving
- Upon the water lightly as a shuttle.
- When I was near unto the blessed shore,
- “Asperges me,” I heard so sweetly sung,
- Remember it I cannot, much less write it.
- The beautiful lady opened wide her arms,
- Embraced my head, and plunged me underneath,
- Where I was forced to swallow of the water.
- Then forth she drew me, and all dripping brought
- Into the dance of the four beautiful,
- And each one with her arm did cover me.
- ‘We here are Nymphs, and in the Heaven are stars;
- Ere Beatrice descended to the world,
- We as her handmaids were appointed her.
- We’ll lead thee to her eyes; but for the pleasant
- Light that within them is, shall sharpen thine
- The three beyond, who more profoundly look.’
- Thus singing they began; and afterwards
- Unto the Griffin’s breast they led me with them,
- Where Beatrice was standing, turned towards us.
- “See that thou dost not spare thine eyes,” they said;
- “Before the emeralds have we stationed thee,
- Whence Love aforetime drew for thee his weapons.”
- A thousand longings, hotter than the flame,
- Fastened mine eyes upon those eyes relucent,
- That still upon the Griffin steadfast stayed.
- As in a glass the sun, not otherwise
- Within them was the twofold monster shining,
- Now with the one, now with the other nature.
- Think, Reader, if within myself I marvelled,
- When I beheld the thing itself stand still,
- And in its image it transformed itself.
- While with amazement filled and jubilant,
- My soul was tasting of the food, that while
- It satisfies us makes us hunger for it,
- Themselves revealing of the highest rank
- In bearing, did the other three advance,
- Singing to their angelic saraband.
- “Turn, Beatrice, O turn thy holy eyes,”
- Such was their song, “unto thy faithful one,
- Who has to see thee ta’en so many steps.
- In grace do us the grace that thou unveil
- Thy face to him, so that he may discern
- The second beauty which thou dost conceal.”
- O splendour of the living light eternal!
- Who underneath the shadow of Parnassus
- Has grown so pale, or drunk so at its cistern,
- He would not seem to have his mind encumbered
- Striving to paint thee as thou didst appear,
- Where the harmonious heaven o’ershadowed thee,
- When in the open air thou didst unveil?
- Purgatorio: Canto XXXII
- So steadfast and attentive were mine eyes
- In satisfying their decennial thirst,
- That all my other senses were extinct,
- And upon this side and on that they had
- Walls of indifference, so the holy smile
- Drew them unto itself with the old net
- When forcibly my sight was turned away
- Towards my left hand by those goddesses,
- Because I heard from them a “Too intently!”
- And that condition of the sight which is
- In eyes but lately smitten by the sun
- Bereft me of my vision some short while;
- But to the less when sight re-shaped itself,
- I say the less in reference to the greater
- Splendour from which perforce I had withdrawn,
- I saw upon its right wing wheeled about
- The glorious host returning with the sun
- And with the sevenfold flames upon their faces.
- As underneath its shields, to save itself,
- A squadron turns, and with its banner wheels,
- Before the whole thereof can change its front,
- That soldiery of the celestial kingdom
- Which marched in the advance had wholly passed us
- Before the chariot had turned its pole.
- Then to the wheels the maidens turned themselves,
- And the Griffin moved his burden benedight,
- But so that not a feather of him fluttered.
- The lady fair who drew me through the ford
- Followed with Statius and myself the wheel
- Which made its orbit with the lesser arc.
- So passing through the lofty forest, vacant
- By fault of her who in the serpent trusted,
- Angelic music made our steps keep time.
- Perchance as great a space had in three flights
- An arrow loosened from the string o’erpassed,
- As we had moved when Beatrice descended.
- I heard them murmur altogether, “Adam!”
- Then circled they about a tree despoiled
- Of blooms and other leafage on each bough.
- Its tresses, which so much the more dilate
- As higher they ascend, had been by Indians
- Among their forests marvelled at for height.
- “Blessed art thou, O Griffin, who dost not
- Pluck with thy beak these branches sweet to taste,
- Since appetite by this was turned to evil.”
- After this fashion round the tree robust
- The others shouted; and the twofold creature:
- “Thus is preserved the seed of all the just.”
- And turning to the pole which he had dragged,
- He drew it close beneath the widowed bough,
- And what was of it unto it left bound.
- In the same manner as our trees (when downward
- Falls the great light, with that together mingled
- Which after the celestial Lasca shines)
- Begin to swell, and then renew themselves,
- Each one with its own colour, ere the Sun
- Harness his steeds beneath another star:
- Less than of rose and more than violet
- A hue disclosing, was renewed the tree
- That had erewhile its boughs so desolate.
- I never heard, nor here below is sung,
- The hymn which afterward that people sang,
- Nor did I bear the melody throughout.
- Had I the power to paint how fell asleep
- Those eyes compassionless, of Syrinx hearing,
- Those eyes to which more watching cost so dear,
- Even as a painter who from model paints
- I would portray how I was lulled asleep;
- He may, who well can picture drowsihood.
- Therefore I pass to what time I awoke,
- And say a splendour rent from me the veil
- Of slumber, and a calling: “Rise, what dost thou?”
- As to behold the apple-tree in blossom
- Which makes the Angels greedy for its fruit,
- And keeps perpetual bridals in the Heaven,
- Peter and John and James conducted were,
- And, overcome, recovered at the word
- By which still greater slumbers have been broken,
- And saw their school diminished by the loss
- Not only of Elias, but of Moses,
- And the apparel of their Master changed;
- So I revived, and saw that piteous one
- Above me standing, who had been conductress
- Aforetime of my steps beside the river,
- And all in doubt I said, “Where’s Beatrice?”
- And she: “Behold her seated underneath
- The leafage new, upon the root of it.
- Behold the company that circles her;
- The rest behind the Griffin are ascending
- With more melodious song, and more profound.”
- And if her speech were more diffuse I know not,
- Because already in my sight was she
- Who from the hearing of aught else had shut me.
- Alone she sat upon the very earth,
- Left there as guardian of the chariot
- Which I had seen the biform monster fasten.
- Encircling her, a cloister made themselves
- The seven Nymphs, with those lights in their hands
- Which are secure from Aquilon and Auster.
- “Short while shalt thou be here a forester,
- And thou shalt be with me for evermore
- A citizen of that Rome where Christ is Roman.
- Therefore, for that world’s good which liveth ill,
- Fix on the car thine eyes, and what thou seest,
- Having returned to earth, take heed thou write.”
- Thus Beatrice; and I, who at the feet
- Of her commandments all devoted was,
- My mind and eyes directed where she willed.
- Never descended with so swift a motion
- Fire from a heavy cloud, when it is raining
- From out the region which is most remote,
- As I beheld the bird of Jove descend
- Down through the tree, rending away the bark,
- As well as blossoms and the foliage new,
- And he with all his might the chariot smote,
- Whereat it reeled, like vessel in a tempest
- Tossed by the waves, now starboard and now larboard.
- Thereafter saw I leap into the body
- Of the triumphal vehicle a Fox,
- That seemed unfed with any wholesome food.
- But for his hideous sins upbraiding him,
- My Lady put him to as swift a flight
- As such a fleshless skeleton could bear.
- Then by the way that it before had come,
- Into the chariot’s chest I saw the Eagle
- Descend, and leave it feathered with his plumes.
- And such as issues from a heart that mourns,
- A voice from Heaven there issued, and it said:
- “My little bark, how badly art thou freighted!”
- Methought, then, that the earth did yawn between
- Both wheels, and I saw rise from it a Dragon,
- Who through the chariot upward fixed his tail,
- And as a wasp that draweth back its sting,
- Drawing unto himself his tail malign,
- Drew out the floor, and went his way rejoicing.
- That which remained behind, even as with grass
- A fertile region, with the feathers, offered
- Perhaps with pure intention and benign,
- Reclothed itself, and with them were reclothed
- The pole and both the wheels so speedily,
- A sigh doth longer keep the lips apart.
- Transfigured thus the holy edifice
- Thrust forward heads upon the parts of it,
- Three on the pole and one at either corner.
- The first were horned like oxen; but the four
- Had but a single horn upon the forehead;
- A monster such had never yet been seen!
- Firm as a rock upon a mountain high,
- Seated upon it, there appeared to me
- A shameless whore, with eyes swift glancing round,
- And, as if not to have her taken from him,
- Upright beside her I beheld a giant;
- And ever and anon they kissed each other.
- But because she her wanton, roving eye
- Turned upon me, her angry paramour
- Did scourge her from her head unto her feet.
- Then full of jealousy, and fierce with wrath,
- He loosed the monster, and across the forest
- Dragged it so far, he made of that alone
- A shield unto the whore and the strange beast.
- Purgatorio: Canto XXXIII
- “Deus venerunt gentes,” alternating
- Now three, now four, melodious psalmody
- The maidens in the midst of tears began;
- And Beatrice, compassionate and sighing,
- Listened to them with such a countenance,
- That scarce more changed was Mary at the cross.
- But when the other virgins place had given
- For her to speak, uprisen to her feet
- With colour as of fire, she made response:
- “‘Modicum, et non videbitis me;
- Et iterum,’ my sisters predilect,
- ‘Modicum, et vos videbitis me.’”
- Then all the seven in front of her she placed;
- And after her, by beckoning only, moved
- Me and the lady and the sage who stayed.
- So she moved onward; and I do not think
- That her tenth step was placed upon the ground,
- When with her eyes upon mine eyes she smote,
- And with a tranquil aspect, “Come more quickly,”
- To me she said, “that, if I speak with thee,
- To listen to me thou mayst be well placed.”
- As soon as I was with her as I should be,
- She said to me: “Why, brother, dost thou not
- Venture to question now, in coming with me?”
- As unto those who are too reverential,
- Speaking in presence of superiors,
- Who drag no living utterance to their teeth,
- It me befell, that without perfect sound
- Began I: “My necessity, Madonna,
- You know, and that which thereunto is good.”
- And she to me: “Of fear and bashfulness
- Henceforward I will have thee strip thyself,
- So that thou speak no more as one who dreams.
- Know that the vessel which the serpent broke
- Was, and is not; but let him who is guilty
- Think that God’s vengeance does not fear a sop.
- Without an heir shall not for ever be
- The Eagle that left his plumes upon the car,
- Whence it became a monster, then a prey;
- For verily I see, and hence narrate it,
- The stars already near to bring the time,
- From every hindrance safe, and every bar,
- Within which a Five-hundred, Ten, and Five,
- One sent from God, shall slay the thievish woman
- And that same giant who is sinning with her.
- And peradventure my dark utterance,
- Like Themis and the Sphinx, may less persuade thee,
- Since, in their mode, it clouds the intellect;
- But soon the facts shall be the Naiades
- Who shall this difficult enigma solve,
- Without destruction of the flocks and harvests.
- Note thou; and even as by me are uttered
- These words, so teach them unto those who live
- That life which is a running unto death;
- And bear in mind, whene’er thou writest them,
- Not to conceal what thou hast seen the plant,
- That twice already has been pillaged here.
- Whoever pillages or shatters it,
- With blasphemy of deed offendeth God,
- Who made it holy for his use alone.
- For biting that, in pain and in desire
- Five thousand years and more the first-born soul
- Craved Him, who punished in himself the bite.
- Thy genius slumbers, if it deem it not
- For special reason so pre-eminent
- In height, and so inverted in its summit.
- And if thy vain imaginings had not been
- Water of Elsa round about thy mind,
- And Pyramus to the mulberry, their pleasure,
- Thou by so many circumstances only
- The justice of the interdict of God
- Morally in the tree wouldst recognize.
- But since I see thee in thine intellect
- Converted into stone and stained with sin,
- So that the light of my discourse doth daze thee,
- I will too, if not written, at least painted,
- Thou bear it back within thee, for the reason
- That cinct with palm the pilgrim’s staff is borne.”
- And I: “As by a signet is the wax
- Which does not change the figure stamped upon it,
- My brain is now imprinted by yourself.
- But wherefore so beyond my power of sight
- Soars your desirable discourse, that aye
- The more I strive, so much the more I lose it?”
- “That thou mayst recognize,” she said, “the school
- Which thou hast followed, and mayst see how far
- Its doctrine follows after my discourse,
- And mayst behold your path from the divine
- Distant as far as separated is
- From earth the heaven that highest hastens on.”
- Whence her I answered: “I do not remember
- That ever I estranged myself from you,
- Nor have I conscience of it that reproves me.”
- “And if thou art not able to remember,”
- Smiling she answered, “recollect thee now
- That thou this very day hast drunk of Lethe;
- And if from smoke a fire may be inferred,
- Such an oblivion clearly demonstrates
- Some error in thy will elsewhere intent.
- Truly from this time forward shall my words
- Be naked, so far as it is befitting
- To lay them open unto thy rude gaze.”
- And more coruscant and with slower steps
- The sun was holding the meridian circle,
- Which, with the point of view, shifts here and there
- When halted (as he cometh to a halt,
- Who goes before a squadron as its escort,
- If something new he find upon his way)
- The ladies seven at a dark shadow’s edge,
- Such as, beneath green leaves and branches black,
- The Alp upon its frigid border wears.
- In front of them the Tigris and Euphrates
- Methought I saw forth issue from one fountain,
- And slowly part, like friends, from one another.
- “O light, O glory of the human race!
- What stream is this which here unfolds itself
- From out one source, and from itself withdraws?”
- For such a prayer, ’twas said unto me, “Pray
- Matilda that she tell thee;” and here answered,
- As one does who doth free himself from blame,
- The beautiful lady: “This and other things
- Were told to him by me; and sure I am
- The water of Lethe has not hid them from him.”
- And Beatrice: “Perhaps a greater care,
- Which oftentimes our memory takes away,
- Has made the vision of his mind obscure.
- But Eunoe behold, that yonder rises;
- Lead him to it, and, as thou art accustomed,
- Revive again the half-dead virtue in him.”
- Like gentle soul, that maketh no excuse,
- But makes its own will of another’s will
- As soon as by a sign it is disclosed,
- Even so, when she had taken hold of me,
- The beautiful lady moved, and unto Statius
- Said, in her womanly manner, “Come with him.”
- If, Reader, I possessed a longer space
- For writing it, I yet would sing in part
- Of the sweet draught that ne’er would satiate me;
- But inasmuch as full are all the leaves
- Made ready for this second canticle,
- The curb of art no farther lets me go.
- From the most holy water I returned
- Regenerate, in the manner of new trees
- That are renewed with a new foliage,
- Pure and disposed to mount unto the stars.
- PARADISO
- Paradiso: Canto I
- The glory of Him who moveth everything
- Doth penetrate the universe, and shine
- In one part more and in another less.
- Within that heaven which most his light receives
- Was I, and things beheld which to repeat
- Nor knows, nor can, who from above descends;
- Because in drawing near to its desire
- Our intellect ingulphs itself so far,
- That after it the memory cannot go.
- Truly whatever of the holy realm
- I had the power to treasure in my mind
- Shall now become the subject of my song.
- O good Apollo, for this last emprise
- Make of me such a vessel of thy power
- As giving the beloved laurel asks!
- One summit of Parnassus hitherto
- Has been enough for me, but now with both
- I needs must enter the arena left.
- Enter into my bosom, thou, and breathe
- As at the time when Marsyas thou didst draw
- Out of the scabbard of those limbs of his.
- O power divine, lend’st thou thyself to me
- So that the shadow of the blessed realm
- Stamped in my brain I can make manifest,
- Thou’lt see me come unto thy darling tree,
- And crown myself thereafter with those leaves
- Of which the theme and thou shall make me worthy.
- So seldom, Father, do we gather them
- For triumph or of Caesar or of Poet,
- (The fault and shame of human inclinations,)
- That the Peneian foliage should bring forth
- Joy to the joyous Delphic deity,
- When any one it makes to thirst for it.
- A little spark is followed by great flame;
- Perchance with better voices after me
- Shall prayer be made that Cyrrha may respond!
- To mortal men by passages diverse
- Uprises the world’s lamp; but by that one
- Which circles four uniteth with three crosses,
- With better course and with a better star
- Conjoined it issues, and the mundane wax
- Tempers and stamps more after its own fashion.
- Almost that passage had made morning there
- And evening here, and there was wholly white
- That hemisphere, and black the other part,
- When Beatrice towards the left-hand side
- I saw turned round, and gazing at the sun;
- Never did eagle fasten so upon it!
- And even as a second ray is wont
- To issue from the first and reascend,
- Like to a pilgrim who would fain return,
- Thus of her action, through the eyes infused
- In my imagination, mine I made,
- And sunward fixed mine eyes beyond our wont.
- There much is lawful which is here unlawful
- Unto our powers, by virtue of the place
- Made for the human species as its own.
- Not long I bore it, nor so little while
- But I beheld it sparkle round about
- Like iron that comes molten from the fire;
- And suddenly it seemed that day to day
- Was added, as if He who has the power
- Had with another sun the heaven adorned.
- With eyes upon the everlasting wheels
- Stood Beatrice all intent, and I, on her
- Fixing my vision from above removed,
- Such at her aspect inwardly became
- As Glaucus, tasting of the herb that made him
- Peer of the other gods beneath the sea.
- To represent transhumanise in words
- Impossible were; the example, then, suffice
- Him for whom Grace the experience reserves.
- If I was merely what of me thou newly
- Createdst, Love who governest the heaven,
- Thou knowest, who didst lift me with thy light!
- When now the wheel, which thou dost make eternal
- Desiring thee, made me attentive to it
- By harmony thou dost modulate and measure,
- Then seemed to me so much of heaven enkindled
- By the sun’s flame, that neither rain nor river
- E’er made a lake so widely spread abroad.
- The newness of the sound and the great light
- Kindled in me a longing for their cause,
- Never before with such acuteness felt;
- Whence she, who saw me as I saw myself,
- To quiet in me my perturbed mind,
- Opened her mouth, ere I did mine to ask,
- And she began: “Thou makest thyself so dull
- With false imagining, that thou seest not
- What thou wouldst see if thou hadst shaken it off.
- Thou art not upon earth, as thou believest;
- But lightning, fleeing its appropriate site,
- Ne’er ran as thou, who thitherward returnest.”
- If of my former doubt I was divested
- By these brief little words more smiled than spoken,
- I in a new one was the more ensnared;
- And said: “Already did I rest content
- From great amazement; but am now amazed
- In what way I transcend these bodies light.”
- Whereupon she, after a pitying sigh,
- Her eyes directed tow’rds me with that look
- A mother casts on a delirious child;
- And she began: “All things whate’er they be
- Have order among themselves, and this is form,
- That makes the universe resemble God.
- Here do the higher creatures see the footprints
- Of the Eternal Power, which is the end
- Whereto is made the law already mentioned.
- In the order that I speak of are inclined
- All natures, by their destinies diverse,
- More or less near unto their origin;
- Hence they move onward unto ports diverse
- O’er the great sea of being; and each one
- With instinct given it which bears it on.
- This bears away the fire towards the moon;
- This is in mortal hearts the motive power
- This binds together and unites the earth.
- Nor only the created things that are
- Without intelligence this bow shoots forth,
- But those that have both intellect and love.
- The Providence that regulates all this
- Makes with its light the heaven forever quiet,
- Wherein that turns which has the greatest haste.
- And thither now, as to a site decreed,
- Bears us away the virtue of that cord
- Which aims its arrows at a joyous mark.
- True is it, that as oftentimes the form
- Accords not with the intention of the art,
- Because in answering is matter deaf,
- So likewise from this course doth deviate
- Sometimes the creature, who the power possesses,
- Though thus impelled, to swerve some other way,
- (In the same wise as one may see the fire
- Fall from a cloud,) if the first impetus
- Earthward is wrested by some false delight.
- Thou shouldst not wonder more, if well I judge,
- At thine ascent, than at a rivulet
- From some high mount descending to the lowland.
- Marvel it would be in thee, if deprived
- Of hindrance, thou wert seated down below,
- As if on earth the living fire were quiet.”
- Thereat she heavenward turned again her face.
- Paradiso: Canto II
- O Ye, who in some pretty little boat,
- Eager to listen, have been following
- Behind my ship, that singing sails along,
- Turn back to look again upon your shores;
- Do not put out to sea, lest peradventure,
- In losing me, you might yourselves be lost.
- The sea I sail has never yet been passed;
- Minerva breathes, and pilots me Apollo,
- And Muses nine point out to me the Bears.
- Ye other few who have the neck uplifted
- Betimes to th’ bread of Angels upon which
- One liveth here and grows not sated by it,
- Well may you launch upon the deep salt-sea
- Your vessel, keeping still my wake before you
- Upon the water that grows smooth again.
- Those glorious ones who unto Colchos passed
- Were not so wonder-struck as you shall be,
- When Jason they beheld a ploughman made!
- The con-created and perpetual thirst
- For the realm deiform did bear us on,
- As swift almost as ye the heavens behold.
- Upward gazed Beatrice, and I at her;
- And in such space perchance as strikes a bolt
- And flies, and from the notch unlocks itself,
- Arrived I saw me where a wondrous thing
- Drew to itself my sight; and therefore she
- From whom no care of mine could be concealed,
- Towards me turning, blithe as beautiful,
- Said unto me: “Fix gratefully thy mind
- On God, who unto the first star has brought us.”
- It seemed to me a cloud encompassed us,
- Luminous, dense, consolidate and bright
- As adamant on which the sun is striking.
- Into itself did the eternal pearl
- Receive us, even as water doth receive
- A ray of light, remaining still unbroken.
- If I was body, (and we here conceive not
- How one dimension tolerates another,
- Which needs must be if body enter body,)
- More the desire should be enkindled in us
- That essence to behold, wherein is seen
- How God and our own nature were united.
- There will be seen what we receive by faith,
- Not demonstrated, but self-evident
- In guise of the first truth that man believes.
- I made reply: “Madonna, as devoutly
- As most I can do I give thanks to Him
- Who has removed me from the mortal world.
- But tell me what the dusky spots may be
- Upon this body, which below on earth
- Make people tell that fabulous tale of Cain?”
- Somewhat she smiled; and then, “If the opinion
- Of mortals be erroneous,” she said,
- “Where’er the key of sense doth not unlock,
- Certes, the shafts of wonder should not pierce thee
- Now, forasmuch as, following the senses,
- Thou seest that the reason has short wings.
- But tell me what thou think’st of it thyself.”
- And I: “What seems to us up here diverse,
- Is caused, I think, by bodies rare and dense.”
- And she: “Right truly shalt thou see immersed
- In error thy belief, if well thou hearest
- The argument that I shall make against it.
- Lights many the eighth sphere displays to you
- Which in their quality and quantity
- May noted be of aspects different.
- If this were caused by rare and dense alone,
- One only virtue would there be in all
- Or more or less diffused, or equally.
- Virtues diverse must be perforce the fruits
- Of formal principles; and these, save one,
- Of course would by thy reasoning be destroyed.
- Besides, if rarity were of this dimness
- The cause thou askest, either through and through
- This planet thus attenuate were of matter,
- Or else, as in a body is apportioned
- The fat and lean, so in like manner this
- Would in its volume interchange the leaves.
- Were it the former, in the sun’s eclipse
- It would be manifest by the shining through
- Of light, as through aught tenuous interfused.
- This is not so; hence we must scan the other,
- And if it chance the other I demolish,
- Then falsified will thy opinion be.
- But if this rarity go not through and through,
- There needs must be a limit, beyond which
- Its contrary prevents the further passing,
- And thence the foreign radiance is reflected,
- Even as a colour cometh back from glass,
- The which behind itself concealeth lead.
- Now thou wilt say the sunbeam shows itself
- More dimly there than in the other parts,
- By being there reflected farther back.
- From this reply experiment will free thee
- If e’er thou try it, which is wont to be
- The fountain to the rivers of your arts.
- Three mirrors shalt thou take, and two remove
- Alike from thee, the other more remote
- Between the former two shall meet thine eyes.
- Turned towards these, cause that behind thy back
- Be placed a light, illuming the three mirrors
- And coming back to thee by all reflected.
- Though in its quantity be not so ample
- The image most remote, there shalt thou see
- How it perforce is equally resplendent.
- Now, as beneath the touches of warm rays
- Naked the subject of the snow remains
- Both of its former colour and its cold,
- Thee thus remaining in thy intellect,
- Will I inform with such a living light,
- That it shall tremble in its aspect to thee.
- Within the heaven of the divine repose
- Revolves a body, in whose virtue lies
- The being of whatever it contains.
- The following heaven, that has so many eyes,
- Divides this being by essences diverse,
- Distinguished from it, and by it contained.
- The other spheres, by various differences,
- All the distinctions which they have within them
- Dispose unto their ends and their effects.
- Thus do these organs of the world proceed,
- As thou perceivest now, from grade to grade;
- Since from above they take, and act beneath.
- Observe me well, how through this place I come
- Unto the truth thou wishest, that hereafter
- Thou mayst alone know how to keep the ford
- The power and motion of the holy spheres,
- As from the artisan the hammer’s craft,
- Forth from the blessed motors must proceed.
- The heaven, which lights so manifold make fair,
- From the Intelligence profound, which turns it,
- The image takes, and makes of it a seal.
- And even as the soul within your dust
- Through members different and accommodated
- To faculties diverse expands itself,
- So likewise this Intelligence diffuses
- Its virtue multiplied among the stars.
- Itself revolving on its unity.
- Virtue diverse doth a diverse alloyage
- Make with the precious body that it quickens,
- In which, as life in you, it is combined.
- From the glad nature whence it is derived,
- The mingled virtue through the body shines,
- Even as gladness through the living pupil.
- From this proceeds whate’er from light to light
- Appeareth different, not from dense and rare:
- This is the formal principle that produces,
- According to its goodness, dark and bright.”
- Paradiso: Canto III
- That Sun, which erst with love my bosom warmed,
- Of beauteous truth had unto me discovered,
- By proving and reproving, the sweet aspect.
- And, that I might confess myself convinced
- And confident, so far as was befitting,
- I lifted more erect my head to speak.
- But there appeared a vision, which withdrew me
- So close to it, in order to be seen,
- That my confession I remembered not.
- Such as through polished and transparent glass,
- Or waters crystalline and undisturbed,
- But not so deep as that their bed be lost,
- Come back again the outlines of our faces
- So feeble, that a pearl on forehead white
- Comes not less speedily unto our eyes;
- Such saw I many faces prompt to speak,
- So that I ran in error opposite
- To that which kindled love ’twixt man and fountain.
- As soon as I became aware of them,
- Esteeming them as mirrored semblances,
- To see of whom they were, mine eyes I turned,
- And nothing saw, and once more turned them forward
- Direct into the light of my sweet Guide,
- Who smiling kindled in her holy eyes.
- “Marvel thou not,” she said to me, “because
- I smile at this thy puerile conceit,
- Since on the truth it trusts not yet its foot,
- But turns thee, as ’tis wont, on emptiness.
- True substances are these which thou beholdest,
- Here relegate for breaking of some vow.
- Therefore speak with them, listen and believe;
- For the true light, which giveth peace to them,
- Permits them not to turn from it their feet.”
- And I unto the shade that seemed most wishful
- To speak directed me, and I began,
- As one whom too great eagerness bewilders:
- “O well-created spirit, who in the rays
- Of life eternal dost the sweetness taste
- Which being untasted ne’er is comprehended,
- Grateful ’twill be to me, if thou content me
- Both with thy name and with your destiny.”
- Whereat she promptly and with laughing eyes:
- “Our charity doth never shut the doors
- Against a just desire, except as one
- Who wills that all her court be like herself.
- I was a virgin sister in the world;
- And if thy mind doth contemplate me well,
- The being more fair will not conceal me from thee,
- But thou shalt recognise I am Piccarda,
- Who, stationed here among these other blessed,
- Myself am blessed in the slowest sphere.
- All our affections, that alone inflamed
- Are in the pleasure of the Holy Ghost,
- Rejoice at being of his order formed;
- And this allotment, which appears so low,
- Therefore is given us, because our vows
- Have been neglected and in some part void.”
- Whence I to her: “In your miraculous aspects
- There shines I know not what of the divine,
- Which doth transform you from our first conceptions.
- Therefore I was not swift in my remembrance;
- But what thou tellest me now aids me so,
- That the refiguring is easier to me.
- But tell me, ye who in this place are happy,
- Are you desirous of a higher place,
- To see more or to make yourselves more friends?”
- First with those other shades she smiled a little;
- Thereafter answered me so full of gladness,
- She seemed to burn in the first fire of love:
- “Brother, our will is quieted by virtue
- Of charity, that makes us wish alone
- For what we have, nor gives us thirst for more.
- If to be more exalted we aspired,
- Discordant would our aspirations be
- Unto the will of Him who here secludes us;
- Which thou shalt see finds no place in these circles,
- If being in charity is needful here,
- And if thou lookest well into its nature;
- Nay, ’tis essential to this blest existence
- To keep itself within the will divine,
- Whereby our very wishes are made one;
- So that, as we are station above station
- Throughout this realm, to all the realm ’tis pleasing,
- As to the King, who makes his will our will.
- And his will is our peace; this is the sea
- To which is moving onward whatsoever
- It doth create, and all that nature makes.”
- Then it was clear to me how everywhere
- In heaven is Paradise, although the grace
- Of good supreme there rain not in one measure.
- But as it comes to pass, if one food sates,
- And for another still remains the longing,
- We ask for this, and that decline with thanks,
- E’en thus did I; with gesture and with word,
- To learn from her what was the web wherein
- She did not ply the shuttle to the end.
- “A perfect life and merit high in-heaven
- A lady o’er us,” said she, “by whose rule
- Down in your world they vest and veil themselves,
- That until death they may both watch and sleep
- Beside that Spouse who every vow accepts
- Which charity conformeth to his pleasure.
- To follow her, in girlhood from the world
- I fled, and in her habit shut myself,
- And pledged me to the pathway of her sect.
- Then men accustomed unto evil more
- Than unto good, from the sweet cloister tore me;
- God knows what afterward my life became.
- This other splendour, which to thee reveals
- Itself on my right side, and is enkindled
- With all the illumination of our sphere,
- What of myself I say applies to her;
- A nun was she, and likewise from her head
- Was ta’en the shadow of the sacred wimple.
- But when she too was to the world returned
- Against her wishes and against good usage,
- Of the heart’s veil she never was divested.
- Of great Costanza this is the effulgence,
- Who from the second wind of Suabia
- Brought forth the third and latest puissance.”
- Thus unto me she spake, and then began
- “Ave Maria” singing, and in singing
- Vanished, as through deep water something heavy.
- My sight, that followed her as long a time
- As it was possible, when it had lost her
- Turned round unto the mark of more desire,
- And wholly unto Beatrice reverted;
- But she such lightnings flashed into mine eyes,
- That at the first my sight endured it not;
- And this in questioning more backward made me.
- Paradiso: Canto IV
- Between two viands, equally removed
- And tempting, a free man would die of hunger
- Ere either he could bring unto his teeth.
- So would a lamb between the ravenings
- Of two fierce wolves stand fearing both alike;
- And so would stand a dog between two does.
- Hence, if I held my peace, myself I blame not,
- Impelled in equal measure by my doubts,
- Since it must be so, nor do I commend.
- I held my peace; but my desire was painted
- Upon my face, and questioning with that
- More fervent far than by articulate speech.
- Beatrice did as Daniel had done
- Relieving Nebuchadnezzar from the wrath
- Which rendered him unjustly merciless,
- And said: “Well see I how attracteth thee
- One and the other wish, so that thy care
- Binds itself so that forth it does not breathe.
- Thou arguest, if good will be permanent,
- The violence of others, for what reason
- Doth it decrease the measure of my merit?
- Again for doubting furnish thee occasion
- Souls seeming to return unto the stars,
- According to the sentiment of Plato.
- These are the questions which upon thy wish
- Are thrusting equally; and therefore first
- Will I treat that which hath the most of gall.
- He of the Seraphim most absorbed in God,
- Moses, and Samuel, and whichever John
- Thou mayst select, I say, and even Mary,
- Have not in any other heaven their seats,
- Than have those spirits that just appeared to thee,
- Nor of existence more or fewer years;
- But all make beautiful the primal circle,
- And have sweet life in different degrees,
- By feeling more or less the eternal breath.
- They showed themselves here, not because allotted
- This sphere has been to them, but to give sign
- Of the celestial which is least exalted.
- To speak thus is adapted to your mind,
- Since only through the sense it apprehendeth
- What then it worthy makes of intellect.
- On this account the Scripture condescends
- Unto your faculties, and feet and hands
- To God attributes, and means something else;
- And Holy Church under an aspect human
- Gabriel and Michael represent to you,
- And him who made Tobias whole again.
- That which Timaeus argues of the soul
- Doth not resemble that which here is seen,
- Because it seems that as he speaks he thinks.
- He says the soul unto its star returns,
- Believing it to have been severed thence
- Whenever nature gave it as a form.
- Perhaps his doctrine is of other guise
- Than the words sound, and possibly may be
- With meaning that is not to be derided.
- If he doth mean that to these wheels return
- The honour of their influence and the blame,
- Perhaps his bow doth hit upon some truth.
- This principle ill understood once warped
- The whole world nearly, till it went astray
- Invoking Jove and Mercury and Mars.
- The other doubt which doth disquiet thee
- Less venom has, for its malevolence
- Could never lead thee otherwhere from me.
- That as unjust our justice should appear
- In eyes of mortals, is an argument
- Of faith, and not of sin heretical.
- But still, that your perception may be able
- To thoroughly penetrate this verity,
- As thou desirest, I will satisfy thee.
- If it be violence when he who suffers
- Co-operates not with him who uses force,
- These souls were not on that account excused;
- For will is never quenched unless it will,
- But operates as nature doth in fire
- If violence a thousand times distort it.
- Hence, if it yieldeth more or less, it seconds
- The force; and these have done so, having power
- Of turning back unto the holy place.
- If their will had been perfect, like to that
- Which Lawrence fast upon his gridiron held,
- And Mutius made severe to his own hand,
- It would have urged them back along the road
- Whence they were dragged, as soon as they were free;
- But such a solid will is all too rare.
- And by these words, if thou hast gathered them
- As thou shouldst do, the argument is refuted
- That would have still annoyed thee many times.
- But now another passage runs across
- Before thine eyes, and such that by thyself
- Thou couldst not thread it ere thou wouldst be weary.
- I have for certain put into thy mind
- That soul beatified could never lie,
- For it is near the primal Truth,
- And then thou from Piccarda might’st have heard
- Costanza kept affection for the veil,
- So that she seemeth here to contradict me.
- Many times, brother, has it come to pass,
- That, to escape from peril, with reluctance
- That has been done it was not right to do,
- E’en as Alcmaeon (who, being by his father
- Thereto entreated, his own mother slew)
- Not to lose pity pitiless became.
- At this point I desire thee to remember
- That force with will commingles, and they cause
- That the offences cannot be excused.
- Will absolute consenteth not to evil;
- But in so far consenteth as it fears,
- If it refrain, to fall into more harm.
- Hence when Piccarda uses this expression,
- She meaneth the will absolute, and I
- The other, so that both of us speak truth.”
- Such was the flowing of the holy river
- That issued from the fount whence springs all truth;
- This put to rest my wishes one and all.
- “O love of the first lover, O divine,”
- Said I forthwith, “whose speech inundates me
- And warms me so, it more and more revives me,
- My own affection is not so profound
- As to suffice in rendering grace for grace;
- Let Him, who sees and can, thereto respond.
- Well I perceive that never sated is
- Our intellect unless the Truth illume it,
- Beyond which nothing true expands itself.
- It rests therein, as wild beast in his lair,
- When it attains it; and it can attain it;
- If not, then each desire would frustrate be.
- Therefore springs up, in fashion of a shoot,
- Doubt at the foot of truth; and this is nature,
- Which to the top from height to height impels us.
- This doth invite me, this assurance give me
- With reverence, Lady, to inquire of you
- Another truth, which is obscure to me.
- I wish to know if man can satisfy you
- For broken vows with other good deeds, so
- That in your balance they will not be light.”
- Beatrice gazed upon me with her eyes
- Full of the sparks of love, and so divine,
- That, overcome my power, I turned my back
- And almost lost myself with eyes downcast.
- Paradiso: Canto V
- “If in the heat of love I flame upon thee
- Beyond the measure that on earth is seen,
- So that the valour of thine eyes I vanquish,
- Marvel thou not thereat; for this proceeds
- From perfect sight, which as it apprehends
- To the good apprehended moves its feet.
- Well I perceive how is already shining
- Into thine intellect the eternal light,
- That only seen enkindles always love;
- And if some other thing your love seduce,
- ’Tis nothing but a vestige of the same,
- Ill understood, which there is shining through.
- Thou fain wouldst know if with another service
- For broken vow can such return be made
- As to secure the soul from further claim.”
- This Canto thus did Beatrice begin;
- And, as a man who breaks not off his speech,
- Continued thus her holy argument:
- “The greatest gift that in his largess God
- Creating made, and unto his own goodness
- Nearest conformed, and that which he doth prize
- Most highly, is the freedom of the will,
- Wherewith the creatures of intelligence
- Both all and only were and are endowed.
- Now wilt thou see, if thence thou reasonest,
- The high worth of a vow, if it he made
- So that when thou consentest God consents:
- For, closing between God and man the compact,
- A sacrifice is of this treasure made,
- Such as I say, and made by its own act.
- What can be rendered then as compensation?
- Think’st thou to make good use of what thou’st offered,
- With gains ill gotten thou wouldst do good deed.
- Now art thou certain of the greater point;
- But because Holy Church in this dispenses,
- Which seems against the truth which I have shown thee,
- Behoves thee still to sit awhile at table,
- Because the solid food which thou hast taken
- Requireth further aid for thy digestion.
- Open thy mind to that which I reveal,
- And fix it there within; for ’tis not knowledge,
- The having heard without retaining it.
- In the essence of this sacrifice two things
- Convene together; and the one is that
- Of which ’tis made, the other is the agreement.
- This last for evermore is cancelled not
- Unless complied with, and concerning this
- With such precision has above been spoken.
- Therefore it was enjoined upon the Hebrews
- To offer still, though sometimes what was offered
- Might be commuted, as thou ought’st to know.
- The other, which is known to thee as matter,
- May well indeed be such that one errs not
- If it for other matter be exchanged.
- But let none shift the burden on his shoulder
- At his arbitrament, without the turning
- Both of the white and of the yellow key;
- And every permutation deem as foolish,
- If in the substitute the thing relinquished,
- As the four is in six, be not contained.
- Therefore whatever thing has so great weight
- In value that it drags down every balance,
- Cannot be satisfied with other spending.
- Let mortals never take a vow in jest;
- Be faithful and not blind in doing that,
- As Jephthah was in his first offering,
- Whom more beseemed to say, ‘I have done wrong,
- Than to do worse by keeping; and as foolish
- Thou the great leader of the Greeks wilt find,
- Whence wept Iphigenia her fair face,
- And made for her both wise and simple weep,
- Who heard such kind of worship spoken of.’
- Christians, be ye more serious in your movements;
- Be ye not like a feather at each wind,
- And think not every water washes you.
- Ye have the Old and the New Testament,
- And the Pastor of the Church who guideth you
- Let this suffice you unto your salvation.
- If evil appetite cry aught else to you,
- Be ye as men, and not as silly sheep,
- So that the Jew among you may not mock you.
- Be ye not as the lamb that doth abandon
- Its mother’s milk, and frolicsome and simple
- Combats at its own pleasure with itself.”
- Thus Beatrice to me even as I write it;
- Then all desireful turned herself again
- To that part where the world is most alive.
- Her silence and her change of countenance
- Silence imposed upon my eager mind,
- That had already in advance new questions;
- And as an arrow that upon the mark
- Strikes ere the bowstring quiet hath become,
- So did we speed into the second realm.
- My Lady there so joyful I beheld,
- As into the brightness of that heaven she entered,
- More luminous thereat the planet grew;
- And if the star itself was changed and smiled,
- What became I, who by my nature am
- Exceeding mutable in every guise!
- As, in a fish-pond which is pure and tranquil,
- The fishes draw to that which from without
- Comes in such fashion that their food they deem it;
- So I beheld more than a thousand splendours
- Drawing towards us, and in each was heard:
- “Lo, this is she who shall increase our love.”
- And as each one was coming unto us,
- Full of beatitude the shade was seen,
- By the effulgence clear that issued from it.
- Think, Reader, if what here is just beginning
- No farther should proceed, how thou wouldst have
- An agonizing need of knowing more;
- And of thyself thou’lt see how I from these
- Was in desire of hearing their conditions,
- As they unto mine eyes were manifest.
- “O thou well-born, unto whom Grace concedes
- To see the thrones of the eternal triumph,
- Or ever yet the warfare be abandoned
- With light that through the whole of heaven is spread
- Kindled are we, and hence if thou desirest
- To know of us, at thine own pleasure sate thee.”
- Thus by some one among those holy spirits
- Was spoken, and by Beatrice: “Speak, speak
- Securely, and believe them even as Gods.”
- “Well I perceive how thou dost nest thyself
- In thine own light, and drawest it from thine eyes,
- Because they coruscate when thou dost smile,
- But know not who thou art, nor why thou hast,
- Spirit august, thy station in the sphere
- That veils itself to men in alien rays.”
- This said I in direction of the light
- Which first had spoken to me; whence it became
- By far more lucent than it was before.
- Even as the sun, that doth conceal himself
- By too much light, when heat has worn away
- The tempering influence of the vapours dense,
- By greater rapture thus concealed itself
- In its own radiance the figure saintly,
- And thus close, close enfolded answered me
- In fashion as the following Canto sings.
- Paradiso: Canto VI
- “After that Constantine the eagle turned
- Against the course of heaven, which it had followed
- Behind the ancient who Lavinia took,
- Two hundred years and more the bird of God
- In the extreme of Europe held itself,
- Near to the mountains whence it issued first;
- And under shadow of the sacred plumes
- It governed there the world from hand to hand,
- And, changing thus, upon mine own alighted.
- Caesar I was, and am Justinian,
- Who, by the will of primal Love I feel,
- Took from the laws the useless and redundant;
- And ere unto the work I was attent,
- One nature to exist in Christ, not more,
- Believed, and with such faith was I contented.
- But blessed Agapetus, he who was
- The supreme pastor, to the faith sincere
- Pointed me out the way by words of his.
- Him I believed, and what was his assertion
- I now see clearly, even as thou seest
- Each contradiction to be false and true.
- As soon as with the Church I moved my feet,
- God in his grace it pleased with this high task
- To inspire me, and I gave me wholly to it,
- And to my Belisarius I commended
- The arms, to which was heaven’s right hand so joined
- It was a signal that I should repose.
- Now here to the first question terminates
- My answer; but the character thereof
- Constrains me to continue with a sequel,
- In order that thou see with how great reason
- Men move against the standard sacrosanct,
- Both who appropriate and who oppose it.
- Behold how great a power has made it worthy
- Of reverence, beginning from the hour
- When Pallas died to give it sovereignty.
- Thou knowest it made in Alba its abode
- Three hundred years and upward, till at last
- The three to three fought for it yet again.
- Thou knowest what it achieved from Sabine wrong
- Down to Lucretia’s sorrow, in seven kings
- O’ercoming round about the neighboring nations;
- Thou knowest what it achieved, borne by the Romans
- Illustrious against Brennus, against Pyrrhus,
- Against the other princes and confederates.
- Torquatus thence and Quinctius, who from locks
- Unkempt was named, Decii and Fabii,
- Received the fame I willingly embalm;
- It struck to earth the pride of the Arabians,
- Who, following Hannibal, had passed across
- The Alpine ridges, Po, from which thou glidest;
- Beneath it triumphed while they yet were young
- Pompey and Scipio, and to the hill
- Beneath which thou wast born it bitter seemed;
- Then, near unto the time when heaven had willed
- To bring the whole world to its mood serene,
- Did Caesar by the will of Rome assume it.
- What it achieved from Var unto the Rhine,
- Isere beheld and Saone, beheld the Seine,
- And every valley whence the Rhone is filled;
- What it achieved when it had left Ravenna,
- And leaped the Rubicon, was such a flight
- That neither tongue nor pen could follow it.
- Round towards Spain it wheeled its legions; then
- Towards Durazzo, and Pharsalia smote
- That to the calid Nile was felt the pain.
- Antandros and the Simois, whence it started,
- It saw again, and there where Hector lies,
- And ill for Ptolemy then roused itself.
- From thence it came like lightning upon Juba;
- Then wheeled itself again into your West,
- Where the Pompeian clarion it heard.
- From what it wrought with the next standard-bearer
- Brutus and Cassius howl in Hell together,
- And Modena and Perugia dolent were;
- Still doth the mournful Cleopatra weep
- Because thereof, who, fleeing from before it,
- Took from the adder sudden and black death.
- With him it ran even to the Red Sea shore;
- With him it placed the world in so great peace,
- That unto Janus was his temple closed.
- But what the standard that has made me speak
- Achieved before, and after should achieve
- Throughout the mortal realm that lies beneath it,
- Becometh in appearance mean and dim,
- If in the hand of the third Caesar seen
- With eye unclouded and affection pure,
- Because the living Justice that inspires me
- Granted it, in the hand of him I speak of,
- The glory of doing vengeance for its wrath.
- Now here attend to what I answer thee;
- Later it ran with Titus to do vengeance
- Upon the vengeance of the ancient sin.
- And when the tooth of Lombardy had bitten
- The Holy Church, then underneath its wings
- Did Charlemagne victorious succor her.
- Now hast thou power to judge of such as those
- Whom I accused above, and of their crimes,
- Which are the cause of all your miseries.
- To the public standard one the yellow lilies
- Opposes, the other claims it for a party,
- So that ’tis hard to see which sins the most.
- Let, let the Ghibellines ply their handicraft
- Beneath some other standard; for this ever
- Ill follows he who it and justice parts.
- And let not this new Charles e’er strike it down,
- He and his Guelfs, but let him fear the talons
- That from a nobler lion stripped the fell.
- Already oftentimes the sons have wept
- The father’s crime; and let him not believe
- That God will change His scutcheon for the lilies.
- This little planet doth adorn itself
- With the good spirits that have active been,
- That fame and honour might come after them;
- And whensoever the desires mount thither,
- Thus deviating, must perforce the rays
- Of the true love less vividly mount upward.
- But in commensuration of our wages
- With our desert is portion of our joy,
- Because we see them neither less nor greater.
- Herein doth living Justice sweeten so
- Affection in us, that for evermore
- It cannot warp to any iniquity.
- Voices diverse make up sweet melodies;
- So in this life of ours the seats diverse
- Render sweet harmony among these spheres;
- And in the compass of this present pearl
- Shineth the sheen of Romeo, of whom
- The grand and beauteous work was ill rewarded.
- But the Provencals who against him wrought,
- They have not laughed, and therefore ill goes he
- Who makes his hurt of the good deeds of others.
- Four daughters, and each one of them a queen,
- Had Raymond Berenger, and this for him
- Did Romeo, a poor man and a pilgrim;
- And then malicious words incited him
- To summon to a reckoning this just man,
- Who rendered to him seven and five for ten.
- Then he departed poor and stricken in years,
- And if the world could know the heart he had,
- In begging bit by bit his livelihood,
- Though much it laud him, it would laud him more.”
- Paradiso: Canto VII
- “Osanna sanctus Deus Sabaoth,
- Superillustrans claritate tua
- Felices ignes horum malahoth!”
- In this wise, to his melody returning,
- This substance, upon which a double light
- Doubles itself, was seen by me to sing,
- And to their dance this and the others moved,
- And in the manner of swift-hurrying sparks
- Veiled themselves from me with a sudden distance.
- Doubting was I, and saying, “Tell her, tell her,”
- Within me, “tell her,” saying, “tell my Lady,”
- Who slakes my thirst with her sweet effluences;
- And yet that reverence which doth lord it over
- The whole of me only by B and ICE,
- Bowed me again like unto one who drowses.
- Short while did Beatrice endure me thus;
- And she began, lighting me with a smile
- Such as would make one happy in the fire:
- “According to infallible advisement,
- After what manner a just vengeance justly
- Could be avenged has put thee upon thinking,
- But I will speedily thy mind unloose;
- And do thou listen, for these words of mine
- Of a great doctrine will a present make thee.
- By not enduring on the power that wills
- Curb for his good, that man who ne’er was born,
- Damning himself damned all his progeny;
- Whereby the human species down below
- Lay sick for many centuries in great error,
- Till to descend it pleased the Word of God
- To where the nature, which from its own Maker
- Estranged itself, he joined to him in person
- By the sole act of his eternal love.
- Now unto what is said direct thy sight;
- This nature when united to its Maker,
- Such as created, was sincere and good;
- But by itself alone was banished forth
- From Paradise, because it turned aside
- Out of the way of truth and of its life.
- Therefore the penalty the cross held out,
- If measured by the nature thus assumed,
- None ever yet with so great justice stung,
- And none was ever of so great injustice,
- Considering who the Person was that suffered,
- Within whom such a nature was contracted.
- From one act therefore issued things diverse;
- To God and to the Jews one death was pleasing;
- Earth trembled at it and the Heaven was opened.
- It should no longer now seem difficult
- To thee, when it is said that a just vengeance
- By a just court was afterward avenged.
- But now do I behold thy mind entangled
- From thought to thought within a knot, from which
- With great desire it waits to free itself.
- Thou sayest, ‘Well discern I what I hear;
- But it is hidden from me why God willed
- For our redemption only this one mode.’
- Buried remaineth, brother, this decree
- Unto the eyes of every one whose nature
- Is in the flame of love not yet adult.
- Verily, inasmuch as at this mark
- One gazes long and little is discerned,
- Wherefore this mode was worthiest will I say.
- Goodness Divine, which from itself doth spurn
- All envy, burning in itself so sparkles
- That the eternal beauties it unfolds.
- Whate’er from this immediately distils
- Has afterwards no end, for ne’er removed
- Is its impression when it sets its seal.
- Whate’er from this immediately rains down
- Is wholly free, because it is not subject
- Unto the influences of novel things.
- The more conformed thereto, the more it pleases;
- For the blest ardour that irradiates all things
- In that most like itself is most vivacious.
- With all of these things has advantaged been
- The human creature; and if one be wanting,
- From his nobility he needs must fall.
- ’Tis sin alone which doth disfranchise him,
- And render him unlike the Good Supreme,
- So that he little with its light is blanched,
- And to his dignity no more returns,
- Unless he fill up where transgression empties
- With righteous pains for criminal delights.
- Your nature when it sinned so utterly
- In its own seed, out of these dignities
- Even as out of Paradise was driven,
- Nor could itself recover, if thou notest
- With nicest subtilty, by any way,
- Except by passing one of these two fords:
- Either that God through clemency alone
- Had pardon granted, or that man himself
- Had satisfaction for his folly made.
- Fix now thine eye deep into the abyss
- Of the eternal counsel, to my speech
- As far as may be fastened steadfastly!
- Man in his limitations had not power
- To satisfy, not having power to sink
- In his humility obeying then,
- Far as he disobeying thought to rise;
- And for this reason man has been from power
- Of satisfying by himself excluded.
- Therefore it God behoved in his own ways
- Man to restore unto his perfect life,
- I say in one, or else in both of them.
- But since the action of the doer is
- So much more grateful, as it more presents
- The goodness of the heart from which it issues,
- Goodness Divine, that doth imprint the world,
- Has been contented to proceed by each
- And all its ways to lift you up again;
- Nor ’twixt the first day and the final night
- Such high and such magnificent proceeding
- By one or by the other was or shall be;
- For God more bounteous was himself to give
- To make man able to uplift himself,
- Than if he only of himself had pardoned;
- And all the other modes were insufficient
- For justice, were it not the Son of God
- Himself had humbled to become incarnate.
- Now, to fill fully each desire of thine,
- Return I to elucidate one place,
- In order that thou there mayst see as I do.
- Thou sayst: ‘I see the air, I see the fire,
- The water, and the earth, and all their mixtures
- Come to corruption, and short while endure;
- And these things notwithstanding were created;’
- Therefore if that which I have said were true,
- They should have been secure against corruption.
- The Angels, brother, and the land sincere
- In which thou art, created may be called
- Just as they are in their entire existence;
- But all the elements which thou hast named,
- And all those things which out of them are made,
- By a created virtue are informed.
- Created was the matter which they have;
- Created was the informing influence
- Within these stars that round about them go.
- The soul of every brute and of the plants
- By its potential temperament attracts
- The ray and motion of the holy lights;
- But your own life immediately inspires
- Supreme Beneficence, and enamours it
- So with herself, it evermore desires her.
- And thou from this mayst argue furthermore
- Your resurrection, if thou think again
- How human flesh was fashioned at that time
- When the first parents both of them were made.”
- Paradiso: Canto VIII
- The world used in its peril to believe
- That the fair Cypria delirious love
- Rayed out, in the third epicycle turning;
- Wherefore not only unto her paid honour
- Of sacrifices and of votive cry
- The ancient nations in the ancient error,
- But both Dione honoured they and Cupid,
- That as her mother, this one as her son,
- And said that he had sat in Dido’s lap;
- And they from her, whence I beginning take,
- Took the denomination of the star
- That woos the sun, now following, now in front.
- I was not ware of our ascending to it;
- But of our being in it gave full faith
- My Lady whom I saw more beauteous grow.
- And as within a flame a spark is seen,
- And as within a voice a voice discerned,
- When one is steadfast, and one comes and goes,
- Within that light beheld I other lamps
- Move in a circle, speeding more and less,
- Methinks in measure of their inward vision.
- From a cold cloud descended never winds,
- Or visible or not, so rapidly
- They would not laggard and impeded seem
- To any one who had those lights divine
- Seen come towards us, leaving the gyration
- Begun at first in the high Seraphim.
- And behind those that most in front appeared
- Sounded “Osanna!” so that never since
- To hear again was I without desire.
- Then unto us more nearly one approached,
- And it alone began: “We all are ready
- Unto thy pleasure, that thou joy in us.
- We turn around with the celestial Princes,
- One gyre and one gyration and one thirst,
- To whom thou in the world of old didst say,
- ‘Ye who, intelligent, the third heaven are moving;’
- And are so full of love, to pleasure thee
- A little quiet will not be less sweet.”
- After these eyes of mine themselves had offered
- Unto my Lady reverently, and she
- Content and certain of herself had made them,
- Back to the light they turned, which so great promise
- Made of itself, and “Say, who art thou?” was
- My voice, imprinted with a great affection.
- O how and how much I beheld it grow
- With the new joy that superadded was
- Unto its joys, as soon as I had spoken!
- Thus changed, it said to me: “The world possessed me
- Short time below; and, if it had been more,
- Much evil will be which would not have been.
- My gladness keepeth me concealed from thee,
- Which rayeth round about me, and doth hide me
- Like as a creature swathed in its own silk.
- Much didst thou love me, and thou hadst good reason;
- For had I been below, I should have shown thee
- Somewhat beyond the foliage of my love.
- That left-hand margin, which doth bathe itself
- In Rhone, when it is mingled with the Sorgue,
- Me for its lord awaited in due time,
- And that horn of Ausonia, which is towned
- With Bari, with Gaeta and Catona,
- Whence Tronto and Verde in the sea disgorge.
- Already flashed upon my brow the crown
- Of that dominion which the Danube waters
- After the German borders it abandons;
- And beautiful Trinacria, that is murky
- ’Twixt Pachino and Peloro, (on the gulf
- Which greatest scath from Eurus doth receive,)
- Not through Typhoeus, but through nascent sulphur,
- Would have awaited her own monarchs still,
- Through me from Charles descended and from Rudolph,
- If evil lordship, that exasperates ever
- The subject populations, had not moved
- Palermo to the outcry of ‘Death! death!’
- And if my brother could but this foresee,
- The greedy poverty of Catalonia
- Straight would he flee, that it might not molest him;
- For verily ’tis needful to provide,
- Through him or other, so that on his bark
- Already freighted no more freight be placed.
- His nature, which from liberal covetous
- Descended, such a soldiery would need
- As should not care for hoarding in a chest.”
- “Because I do believe the lofty joy
- Thy speech infuses into me, my Lord,
- Where every good thing doth begin and end
- Thou seest as I see it, the more grateful
- Is it to me; and this too hold I dear,
- That gazing upon God thou dost discern it.
- Glad hast thou made me; so make clear to me,
- Since speaking thou hast stirred me up to doubt,
- How from sweet seed can bitter issue forth.”
- This I to him; and he to me: “If I
- Can show to thee a truth, to what thou askest
- Thy face thou’lt hold as thou dost hold thy back.
- The Good which all the realm thou art ascending
- Turns and contents, maketh its providence
- To be a power within these bodies vast;
- And not alone the natures are foreseen
- Within the mind that in itself is perfect,
- But they together with their preservation.
- For whatsoever thing this bow shoots forth
- Falls foreordained unto an end foreseen,
- Even as a shaft directed to its mark.
- If that were not, the heaven which thou dost walk
- Would in such manner its effects produce,
- That they no longer would be arts, but ruins.
- This cannot be, if the Intelligences
- That keep these stars in motion are not maimed,
- And maimed the First that has not made them perfect.
- Wilt thou this truth have clearer made to thee?”
- And I: “Not so; for ’tis impossible
- That nature tire, I see, in what is needful.”
- Whence he again: “Now say, would it be worse
- For men on earth were they not citizens?”
- “Yes,” I replied; “and here I ask no reason.”
- “And can they be so, if below they live not
- Diversely unto offices diverse?
- No, if your master writeth well for you.”
- So came he with deductions to this point;
- Then he concluded: “Therefore it behoves
- The roots of your effects to be diverse.
- Hence one is Solon born, another Xerxes,
- Another Melchisedec, and another he
- Who, flying through the air, his son did lose.
- Revolving Nature, which a signet is
- To mortal wax, doth practise well her art,
- But not one inn distinguish from another;
- Thence happens it that Esau differeth
- In seed from Jacob; and Quirinus comes
- From sire so vile that he is given to Mars.
- A generated nature its own way
- Would always make like its progenitors,
- If Providence divine were not triumphant.
- Now that which was behind thee is before thee;
- But that thou know that I with thee am pleased,
- With a corollary will I mantle thee.
- Evermore nature, if it fortune find
- Discordant to it, like each other seed
- Out of its region, maketh evil thrift;
- And if the world below would fix its mind
- On the foundation which is laid by nature,
- Pursuing that, ’twould have the people good.
- But you unto religion wrench aside
- Him who was born to gird him with the sword,
- And make a king of him who is for sermons;
- Therefore your footsteps wander from the road.”
- Paradiso: Canto IX
- Beautiful Clemence, after that thy Charles
- Had me enlightened, he narrated to me
- The treacheries his seed should undergo;
- But said: “Be still and let the years roll round;”
- So I can only say, that lamentation
- Legitimate shall follow on your wrongs.
- And of that holy light the life already
- Had to the Sun which fills it turned again,
- As to that good which for each thing sufficeth.
- Ah, souls deceived, and creatures impious,
- Who from such good do turn away your hearts,
- Directing upon vanity your foreheads!
- And now, behold, another of those splendours
- Approached me, and its will to pleasure me
- It signified by brightening outwardly.
- The eyes of Beatrice, that fastened were
- Upon me, as before, of dear assent
- To my desire assurance gave to me.
- “Ah, bring swift compensation to my wish,
- Thou blessed spirit,” I said, “and give me proof
- That what I think in thee I can reflect!”
- Whereat the light, that still was new to me,
- Out of its depths, whence it before was singing,
- As one delighted to do good, continued:
- “Within that region of the land depraved
- Of Italy, that lies between Rialto
- And fountain-heads of Brenta and of Piava,
- Rises a hill, and mounts not very high,
- Wherefrom descended formerly a torch
- That made upon that region great assault.
- Out of one root were born both I and it;
- Cunizza was I called, and here I shine
- Because the splendour of this star o’ercame me.
- But gladly to myself the cause I pardon
- Of my allotment, and it does not grieve me;
- Which would perhaps seem strong unto your vulgar.
- Of this so luculent and precious jewel,
- Which of our heaven is nearest unto me,
- Great fame remained; and ere it die away
- This hundredth year shall yet quintupled be.
- See if man ought to make him excellent,
- So that another life the first may leave!
- And thus thinks not the present multitude
- Shut in by Adige and Tagliamento,
- Nor yet for being scourged is penitent.
- But soon ’twill be that Padua in the marsh
- Will change the water that Vicenza bathes,
- Because the folk are stubborn against duty;
- And where the Sile and Cagnano join
- One lordeth it, and goes with lofty head,
- For catching whom e’en now the net is making.
- Feltro moreover of her impious pastor
- Shall weep the crime, which shall so monstrous be
- That for the like none ever entered Malta.
- Ample exceedingly would be the vat
- That of the Ferrarese could hold the blood,
- And weary who should weigh it ounce by ounce,
- Of which this courteous priest shall make a gift
- To show himself a partisan; and such gifts
- Will to the living of the land conform.
- Above us there are mirrors, Thrones you call them,
- From which shines out on us God Judicant,
- So that this utterance seems good to us.”
- Here it was silent, and it had the semblance
- Of being turned elsewhither, by the wheel
- On which it entered as it was before.
- The other joy, already known to me,
- Became a thing transplendent in my sight,
- As a fine ruby smitten by the sun.
- Through joy effulgence is acquired above,
- As here a smile; but down below, the shade
- Outwardly darkens, as the mind is sad.
- “God seeth all things, and in Him, blest spirit,
- Thy sight is,” said I, “so that never will
- Of his can possibly from thee be hidden;
- Thy voice, then, that for ever makes the heavens
- Glad, with the singing of those holy fires
- Which of their six wings make themselves a cowl,
- Wherefore does it not satisfy my longings?
- Indeed, I would not wait thy questioning
- If I in thee were as thou art in me.”
- “The greatest of the valleys where the water
- Expands itself,” forthwith its words began,
- “That sea excepted which the earth engarlands,
- Between discordant shores against the sun
- Extends so far, that it meridian makes
- Where it was wont before to make the horizon.
- I was a dweller on that valley’s shore
- ’Twixt Ebro and Magra that with journey short
- Doth from the Tuscan part the Genoese.
- With the same sunset and same sunrise nearly
- Sit Buggia and the city whence I was,
- That with its blood once made the harbour hot.
- Folco that people called me unto whom
- My name was known; and now with me this heaven
- Imprints itself, as I did once with it;
- For more the daughter of Belus never burned,
- Offending both Sichaeus and Creusa,
- Than I, so long as it became my locks,
- Nor yet that Rodophean, who deluded
- was by Demophoon, nor yet Alcides,
- When Iole he in his heart had locked.
- Yet here is no repenting, but we smile,
- Not at the fault, which comes not back to mind,
- But at the power which ordered and foresaw.
- Here we behold the art that doth adorn
- With such affection, and the good discover
- Whereby the world above turns that below.
- But that thou wholly satisfied mayst bear
- Thy wishes hence which in this sphere are born,
- Still farther to proceed behoveth me.
- Thou fain wouldst know who is within this light
- That here beside me thus is scintillating,
- Even as a sunbeam in the limpid water.
- Then know thou, that within there is at rest
- Rahab, and being to our order joined,
- With her in its supremest grade ’tis sealed.
- Into this heaven, where ends the shadowy cone
- Cast by your world, before all other souls
- First of Christ’s triumph was she taken up.
- Full meet it was to leave her in some heaven,
- Even as a palm of the high victory
- Which he acquired with one palm and the other,
- Because she favoured the first glorious deed
- Of Joshua upon the Holy Land,
- That little stirs the memory of the Pope.
- Thy city, which an offshoot is of him
- Who first upon his Maker turned his back,
- And whose ambition is so sorely wept,
- Brings forth and scatters the accursed flower
- Which both the sheep and lambs hath led astray
- Since it has turned the shepherd to a wolf.
- For this the Evangel and the mighty Doctors
- Are derelict, and only the Decretals
- So studied that it shows upon their margins.
- On this are Pope and Cardinals intent;
- Their meditations reach not Nazareth,
- There where his pinions Gabriel unfolded;
- But Vatican and the other parts elect
- Of Rome, which have a cemetery been
- Unto the soldiery that followed Peter
- Shall soon be free from this adultery.”
- Paradiso: Canto X
- Looking into his Son with all the Love
- Which each of them eternally breathes forth,
- The Primal and unutterable Power
- Whate’er before the mind or eye revolves
- With so much order made, there can be none
- Who this beholds without enjoying Him.
- Lift up then, Reader, to the lofty wheels
- With me thy vision straight unto that part
- Where the one motion on the other strikes,
- And there begin to contemplate with joy
- That Master’s art, who in himself so loves it
- That never doth his eye depart therefrom.
- Behold how from that point goes branching off
- The oblique circle, which conveys the planets,
- To satisfy the world that calls upon them;
- And if their pathway were not thus inflected,
- Much virtue in the heavens would be in vain,
- And almost every power below here dead.
- If from the straight line distant more or less
- Were the departure, much would wanting be
- Above and underneath of mundane order.
- Remain now, Reader, still upon thy bench,
- In thought pursuing that which is foretasted,
- If thou wouldst jocund be instead of weary.
- I’ve set before thee; henceforth feed thyself,
- For to itself diverteth all my care
- That theme whereof I have been made the scribe.
- The greatest of the ministers of nature,
- Who with the power of heaven the world imprints
- And measures with his light the time for us,
- With that part which above is called to mind
- Conjoined, along the spirals was revolving,
- Where each time earlier he presents himself;
- And I was with him; but of the ascending
- I was not conscious, saving as a man
- Of a first thought is conscious ere it come;
- And Beatrice, she who is seen to pass
- From good to better, and so suddenly
- That not by time her action is expressed,
- How lucent in herself must she have been!
- And what was in the sun, wherein I entered,
- Apparent not by colour but by light,
- I, though I call on genius, art, and practice,
- Cannot so tell that it could be imagined;
- Believe one can, and let him long to see it.
- And if our fantasies too lowly are
- For altitude so great, it is no marvel,
- Since o’er the sun was never eye could go.
- Such in this place was the fourth family
- Of the high Father, who forever sates it,
- Showing how he breathes forth and how begets.
- And Beatrice began: “Give thanks, give thanks
- Unto the Sun of Angels, who to this
- Sensible one has raised thee by his grace!”
- Never was heart of mortal so disposed
- To worship, nor to give itself to God
- With all its gratitude was it so ready,
- As at those words did I myself become;
- And all my love was so absorbed in Him,
- That in oblivion Beatrice was eclipsed.
- Nor this displeased her; but she smiled at it
- So that the splendour of her laughing eyes
- My single mind on many things divided.
- Lights many saw I, vivid and triumphant,
- Make us a centre and themselves a circle,
- More sweet in voice than luminous in aspect.
- Thus girt about the daughter of Latona
- We sometimes see, when pregnant is the air,
- So that it holds the thread which makes her zone.
- Within the court of Heaven, whence I return,
- Are many jewels found, so fair and precious
- They cannot be transported from the realm;
- And of them was the singing of those lights.
- Who takes not wings that he may fly up thither,
- The tidings thence may from the dumb await!
- As soon as singing thus those burning suns
- Had round about us whirled themselves three times,
- Like unto stars neighbouring the steadfast poles,
- Ladies they seemed, not from the dance released,
- But who stop short, in silence listening
- Till they have gathered the new melody.
- And within one I heard beginning: “When
- The radiance of grace, by which is kindled
- True love, and which thereafter grows by loving,
- Within thee multiplied is so resplendent
- That it conducts thee upward by that stair,
- Where without reascending none descends,
- Who should deny the wine out of his vial
- Unto thy thirst, in liberty were not
- Except as water which descends not seaward.
- Fain wouldst thou know with what plants is enflowered
- This garland that encircles with delight
- The Lady fair who makes thee strong for heaven.
- Of the lambs was I of the holy flock
- Which Dominic conducteth by a road
- Where well one fattens if he strayeth not.
- He who is nearest to me on the right
- My brother and master was; and he Albertus
- Is of Cologne, I Thomas of Aquinum.
- If thou of all the others wouldst be certain,
- Follow behind my speaking with thy sight
- Upward along the blessed garland turning.
- That next effulgence issues from the smile
- Of Gratian, who assisted both the courts
- In such wise that it pleased in Paradise.
- The other which near by adorns our choir
- That Peter was who, e’en as the poor widow,
- Offered his treasure unto Holy Church.
- The fifth light, that among us is the fairest,
- Breathes forth from such a love, that all the world
- Below is greedy to learn tidings of it.
- Within it is the lofty mind, where knowledge
- So deep was put, that, if the true be true,
- To see so much there never rose a second.
- Thou seest next the lustre of that taper,
- Which in the flesh below looked most within
- The angelic nature and its ministry.
- Within that other little light is smiling
- The advocate of the Christian centuries,
- Out of whose rhetoric Augustine was furnished.
- Now if thou trainest thy mind’s eye along
- From light to light pursuant of my praise,
- With thirst already of the eighth thou waitest.
- By seeing every good therein exults
- The sainted soul, which the fallacious world
- Makes manifest to him who listeneth well;
- The body whence ’twas hunted forth is lying
- Down in Cieldauro, and from martyrdom
- And banishment it came unto this peace.
- See farther onward flame the burning breath
- Of Isidore, of Beda, and of Richard
- Who was in contemplation more than man.
- This, whence to me returneth thy regard,
- The light is of a spirit unto whom
- In his grave meditations death seemed slow.
- It is the light eternal of Sigier,
- Who, reading lectures in the Street of Straw,
- Did syllogize invidious verities.”
- Then, as a horologe that calleth us
- What time the Bride of God is rising up
- With matins to her Spouse that he may love her,
- Wherein one part the other draws and urges,
- Ting! ting! resounding with so sweet a note,
- That swells with love the spirit well disposed,
- Thus I beheld the glorious wheel move round,
- And render voice to voice, in modulation
- And sweetness that can not be comprehended,
- Excepting there where joy is made eternal.
- Paradiso: Canto XI
- O Thou insensate care of mortal men,
- How inconclusive are the syllogisms
- That make thee beat thy wings in downward flight!
- One after laws and one to aphorisms
- Was going, and one following the priesthood,
- And one to reign by force or sophistry,
- And one in theft, and one in state affairs,
- One in the pleasures of the flesh involved
- Wearied himself, one gave himself to ease;
- When I, from all these things emancipate,
- With Beatrice above there in the Heavens
- With such exceeding glory was received!
- When each one had returned unto that point
- Within the circle where it was before,
- It stood as in a candlestick a candle;
- And from within the effulgence which at first
- Had spoken unto me, I heard begin
- Smiling while it more luminous became:
- “Even as I am kindled in its ray,
- So, looking into the Eternal Light,
- The occasion of thy thoughts I apprehend.
- Thou doubtest, and wouldst have me to resift
- In language so extended and so open
- My speech, that to thy sense it may be plain,
- Where just before I said, ‘where well one fattens,’
- And where I said, ‘there never rose a second;’
- And here ’tis needful we distinguish well.
- The Providence, which governeth the world
- With counsel, wherein all created vision
- Is vanquished ere it reach unto the bottom,
- (So that towards her own Beloved might go
- The bride of Him who, uttering a loud cry,
- Espoused her with his consecrated blood,
- Self-confident and unto Him more faithful,)
- Two Princes did ordain in her behoof,
- Which on this side and that might be her guide.
- The one was all seraphical in ardour;
- The other by his wisdom upon earth
- A splendour was of light cherubical.
- One will I speak of, for of both is spoken
- In praising one, whichever may be taken,
- Because unto one end their labours were.
- Between Tupino and the stream that falls
- Down from the hill elect of blessed Ubald,
- A fertile slope of lofty mountain hangs,
- From which Perugia feels the cold and heat
- Through Porta Sole, and behind it weep
- Gualdo and Nocera their grievous yoke.
- From out that slope, there where it breaketh most
- Its steepness, rose upon the world a sun
- As this one does sometimes from out the Ganges;
- Therefore let him who speaketh of that place,
- Say not Ascesi, for he would say little,
- But Orient, if he properly would speak.
- He was not yet far distant from his rising
- Before he had begun to make the earth
- Some comfort from his mighty virtue feel.
- For he in youth his father’s wrath incurred
- For certain Dame, to whom, as unto death,
- The gate of pleasure no one doth unlock;
- And was before his spiritual court
- ‘Et coram patre’ unto her united;
- Then day by day more fervently he loved her.
- She, reft of her first husband, scorned, obscure,
- One thousand and one hundred years and more,
- Waited without a suitor till he came.
- Naught it availed to hear, that with Amyclas
- Found her unmoved at sounding of his voice
- He who struck terror into all the world;
- Naught it availed being constant and undaunted,
- So that, when Mary still remained below,
- She mounted up with Christ upon the cross.
- But that too darkly I may not proceed,
- Francis and Poverty for these two lovers
- Take thou henceforward in my speech diffuse.
- Their concord and their joyous semblances,
- The love, the wonder, and the sweet regard,
- They made to be the cause of holy thoughts;
- So much so that the venerable Bernard
- First bared his feet, and after so great peace
- Ran, and, in running, thought himself too slow.
- O wealth unknown! O veritable good!
- Giles bares his feet, and bares his feet Sylvester
- Behind the bridegroom, so doth please the bride!
- Then goes his way that father and that master,
- He and his Lady and that family
- Which now was girding on the humble cord;
- Nor cowardice of heart weighed down his brow
- At being son of Peter Bernardone,
- Nor for appearing marvellously scorned;
- But regally his hard determination
- To Innocent he opened, and from him
- Received the primal seal upon his Order.
- After the people mendicant increased
- Behind this man, whose admirable life
- Better in glory of the heavens were sung,
- Incoronated with a second crown
- Was through Honorius by the Eternal Spirit
- The holy purpose of this Archimandrite.
- And when he had, through thirst of martyrdom,
- In the proud presence of the Sultan preached
- Christ and the others who came after him,
- And, finding for conversion too unripe
- The folk, and not to tarry there in vain,
- Returned to fruit of the Italic grass,
- On the rude rock ’twixt Tiber and the Arno
- From Christ did he receive the final seal,
- Which during two whole years his members bore.
- When He, who chose him unto so much good,
- Was pleased to draw him up to the reward
- That he had merited by being lowly,
- Unto his friars, as to the rightful heirs,
- His most dear Lady did he recommend,
- And bade that they should love her faithfully;
- And from her bosom the illustrious soul
- Wished to depart, returning to its realm,
- And for its body wished no other bier.
- Think now what man was he, who was a fit
- Companion over the high seas to keep
- The bark of Peter to its proper bearings.
- And this man was our Patriarch; hence whoever
- Doth follow him as he commands can see
- That he is laden with good merchandise.
- But for new pasturage his flock has grown
- So greedy, that it is impossible
- They be not scattered over fields diverse;
- And in proportion as his sheep remote
- And vagabond go farther off from him,
- More void of milk return they to the fold.
- Verily some there are that fear a hurt,
- And keep close to the shepherd; but so few,
- That little cloth doth furnish forth their hoods.
- Now if my utterance be not indistinct,
- If thine own hearing hath attentive been,
- If thou recall to mind what I have said,
- In part contented shall thy wishes be;
- For thou shalt see the plant that’s chipped away,
- And the rebuke that lieth in the words,
- ‘Where well one fattens, if he strayeth not.’”
- Paradiso: Canto XII
- Soon as the blessed flame had taken up
- The final word to give it utterance,
- Began the holy millstone to revolve,
- And in its gyre had not turned wholly round,
- Before another in a ring enclosed it,
- And motion joined to motion, song to song;
- Song that as greatly doth transcend our Muses,
- Our Sirens, in those dulcet clarions,
- As primal splendour that which is reflected.
- And as are spanned athwart a tender cloud
- Two rainbows parallel and like in colour,
- When Juno to her handmaid gives command,
- (The one without born of the one within,
- Like to the speaking of that vagrant one
- Whom love consumed as doth the sun the vapours,)
- And make the people here, through covenant
- God set with Noah, presageful of the world
- That shall no more be covered with a flood,
- In such wise of those sempiternal roses
- The garlands twain encompassed us about,
- And thus the outer to the inner answered.
- After the dance, and other grand rejoicings,
- Both of the singing, and the flaming forth
- Effulgence with effulgence blithe and tender,
- Together, at once, with one accord had stopped,
- (Even as the eyes, that, as volition moves them,
- Must needs together shut and lift themselves,)
- Out of the heart of one of the new lights
- There came a voice, that needle to the star
- Made me appear in turning thitherward.
- And it began: “The love that makes me fair
- Draws me to speak about the other leader,
- By whom so well is spoken here of mine.
- ’Tis right, where one is, to bring in the other,
- That, as they were united in their warfare,
- Together likewise may their glory shine.
- The soldiery of Christ, which it had cost
- So dear to arm again, behind the standard
- Moved slow and doubtful and in numbers few,
- When the Emperor who reigneth evermore
- Provided for the host that was in peril,
- Through grace alone and not that it was worthy;
- And, as was said, he to his Bride brought succour
- With champions twain, at whose deed, at whose word
- The straggling people were together drawn.
- Within that region where the sweet west wind
- Rises to open the new leaves, wherewith
- Europe is seen to clothe herself afresh,
- Not far off from the beating of the waves,
- Behind which in his long career the sun
- Sometimes conceals himself from every man,
- Is situate the fortunate Calahorra,
- Under protection of the mighty shield
- In which the Lion subject is and sovereign.
- Therein was born the amorous paramour
- Of Christian Faith, the athlete consecrate,
- Kind to his own and cruel to his foes;
- And when it was created was his mind
- Replete with such a living energy,
- That in his mother her it made prophetic.
- As soon as the espousals were complete
- Between him and the Faith at holy font,
- Where they with mutual safety dowered each other,
- The woman, who for him had given assent,
- Saw in a dream the admirable fruit
- That issue would from him and from his heirs;
- And that he might be construed as he was,
- A spirit from this place went forth to name him
- With His possessive whose he wholly was.
- Dominic was he called; and him I speak of
- Even as of the husbandman whom Christ
- Elected to his garden to assist him.
- Envoy and servant sooth he seemed of Christ,
- For the first love made manifest in him
- Was the first counsel that was given by Christ.
- Silent and wakeful many a time was he
- Discovered by his nurse upon the ground,
- As if he would have said, ‘For this I came.’
- O thou his father, Felix verily!
- O thou his mother, verily Joanna,
- If this, interpreted, means as is said!
- Not for the world which people toil for now
- In following Ostiense and Taddeo,
- But through his longing after the true manna,
- He in short time became so great a teacher,
- That he began to go about the vineyard,
- Which fadeth soon, if faithless be the dresser;
- And of the See, (that once was more benignant
- Unto the righteous poor, not through itself,
- But him who sits there and degenerates,)
- Not to dispense or two or three for six,
- Not any fortune of first vacancy,
- ‘Non decimas quae sunt pauperum Dei,’
- He asked for, but against the errant world
- Permission to do battle for the seed,
- Of which these four and twenty plants surround thee.
- Then with the doctrine and the will together,
- With office apostolical he moved,
- Like torrent which some lofty vein out-presses;
- And in among the shoots heretical
- His impetus with greater fury smote,
- Wherever the resistance was the greatest.
- Of him were made thereafter divers runnels,
- Whereby the garden catholic is watered,
- So that more living its plantations stand.
- If such the one wheel of the Biga was,
- In which the Holy Church itself defended
- And in the field its civic battle won,
- Truly full manifest should be to thee
- The excellence of the other, unto whom
- Thomas so courteous was before my coming.
- But still the orbit, which the highest part
- Of its circumference made, is derelict,
- So that the mould is where was once the crust.
- His family, that had straight forward moved
- With feet upon his footprints, are turned round
- So that they set the point upon the heel.
- And soon aware they will be of the harvest
- Of this bad husbandry, when shall the tares
- Complain the granary is taken from them.
- Yet say I, he who searcheth leaf by leaf
- Our volume through, would still some page discover
- Where he could read, ‘I am as I am wont.’
- ’Twill not be from Casal nor Acquasparta,
- From whence come such unto the written word
- That one avoids it, and the other narrows.
- Bonaventura of Bagnoregio’s life
- Am I, who always in great offices
- Postponed considerations sinister.
- Here are Illuminato and Agostino,
- Who of the first barefooted beggars were
- That with the cord the friends of God became.
- Hugh of Saint Victor is among them here,
- And Peter Mangiador, and Peter of Spain,
- Who down below in volumes twelve is shining;
- Nathan the seer, and metropolitan
- Chrysostom, and Anselmus, and Donatus
- Who deigned to lay his hand to the first art;
- Here is Rabanus, and beside me here
- Shines the Calabrian Abbot Joachim,
- He with the spirit of prophecy endowed.
- To celebrate so great a paladin
- Have moved me the impassioned courtesy
- And the discreet discourses of Friar Thomas,
- And with me they have moved this company.”
- Paradiso: Canto XIII
- Let him imagine, who would well conceive
- What now I saw, and let him while I speak
- Retain the image as a steadfast rock,
- The fifteen stars, that in their divers regions
- The sky enliven with a light so great
- That it transcends all clusters of the air;
- Let him the Wain imagine unto which
- Our vault of heaven sufficeth night and day,
- So that in turning of its pole it fails not;
- Let him the mouth imagine of the horn
- That in the point beginneth of the axis
- Round about which the primal wheel revolves,—
- To have fashioned of themselves two signs in heaven,
- Like unto that which Minos’ daughter made,
- The moment when she felt the frost of death;
- And one to have its rays within the other,
- And both to whirl themselves in such a manner
- That one should forward go, the other backward;
- And he will have some shadowing forth of that
- True constellation and the double dance
- That circled round the point at which I was;
- Because it is as much beyond our wont,
- As swifter than the motion of the Chiana
- Moveth the heaven that all the rest outspeeds.
- There sang they neither Bacchus, nor Apollo,
- But in the divine nature Persons three,
- And in one person the divine and human.
- The singing and the dance fulfilled their measure,
- And unto us those holy lights gave need,
- Growing in happiness from care to care.
- Then broke the silence of those saints concordant
- The light in which the admirable life
- Of God’s own mendicant was told to me,
- And said: “Now that one straw is trodden out
- Now that its seed is garnered up already,
- Sweet love invites me to thresh out the other.
- Into that bosom, thou believest, whence
- Was drawn the rib to form the beauteous cheek
- Whose taste to all the world is costing dear,
- And into that which, by the lance transfixed,
- Before and since, such satisfaction made
- That it weighs down the balance of all sin,
- Whate’er of light it has to human nature
- Been lawful to possess was all infused
- By the same power that both of them created;
- And hence at what I said above dost wonder,
- When I narrated that no second had
- The good which in the fifth light is enclosed.
- Now ope thine eyes to what I answer thee,
- And thou shalt see thy creed and my discourse
- Fit in the truth as centre in a circle.
- That which can die, and that which dieth not,
- Are nothing but the splendour of the idea
- Which by his love our Lord brings into being;
- Because that living Light, which from its fount
- Effulgent flows, so that it disunites not
- From Him nor from the Love in them intrined,
- Through its own goodness reunites its rays
- In nine subsistences, as in a mirror,
- Itself eternally remaining One.
- Thence it descends to the last potencies,
- Downward from act to act becoming such
- That only brief contingencies it makes;
- And these contingencies I hold to be
- Things generated, which the heaven produces
- By its own motion, with seed and without.
- Neither their wax, nor that which tempers it,
- Remains immutable, and hence beneath
- The ideal signet more and less shines through;
- Therefore it happens, that the selfsame tree
- After its kind bears worse and better fruit,
- And ye are born with characters diverse.
- If in perfection tempered were the wax,
- And were the heaven in its supremest virtue,
- The brilliance of the seal would all appear;
- But nature gives it evermore deficient,
- In the like manner working as the artist,
- Who has the skill of art and hand that trembles.
- If then the fervent Love, the Vision clear,
- Of primal Virtue do dispose and seal,
- Perfection absolute is there acquired.
- Thus was of old the earth created worthy
- Of all and every animal perfection;
- And thus the Virgin was impregnate made;
- So that thine own opinion I commend,
- That human nature never yet has been,
- Nor will be, what it was in those two persons.
- Now if no farther forth I should proceed,
- ‘Then in what way was he without a peer?’
- Would be the first beginning of thy words.
- But, that may well appear what now appears not,
- Think who he was, and what occasion moved him
- To make request, when it was told him, ‘Ask.’
- I’ve not so spoken that thou canst not see
- Clearly he was a king who asked for wisdom,
- That he might be sufficiently a king;
- ’Twas not to know the number in which are
- The motors here above, or if ‘necesse’
- With a contingent e’er ‘necesse’ make,
- ‘Non si est dare primum motum esse,’
- Or if in semicircle can be made
- Triangle so that it have no right angle.
- Whence, if thou notest this and what I said,
- A regal prudence is that peerless seeing
- In which the shaft of my intention strikes.
- And if on ‘rose’ thou turnest thy clear eyes,
- Thou’lt see that it has reference alone
- To kings who’re many, and the good are rare.
- With this distinction take thou what I said,
- And thus it can consist with thy belief
- Of the first father and of our Delight.
- And lead shall this be always to thy feet,
- To make thee, like a weary man, move slowly
- Both to the Yes and No thou seest not;
- For very low among the fools is he
- Who affirms without distinction, or denies,
- As well in one as in the other case;
- Because it happens that full often bends
- Current opinion in the false direction,
- And then the feelings bind the intellect.
- Far more than uselessly he leaves the shore,
- (Since he returneth not the same he went,)
- Who fishes for the truth, and has no skill;
- And in the world proofs manifest thereof
- Parmenides, Melissus, Brissus are,
- And many who went on and knew not whither;
- Thus did Sabellius, Arius, and those fools
- Who have been even as swords unto the Scriptures
- In rendering distorted their straight faces.
- Nor yet shall people be too confident
- In judging, even as he is who doth count
- The corn in field or ever it be ripe.
- For I have seen all winter long the thorn
- First show itself intractable and fierce,
- And after bear the rose upon its top;
- And I have seen a ship direct and swift
- Run o’er the sea throughout its course entire,
- To perish at the harbour’s mouth at last.
- Let not Dame Bertha nor Ser Martin think,
- Seeing one steal, another offering make,
- To see them in the arbitrament divine;
- For one may rise, and fall the other may.”
- Paradiso: Canto XIV
- From centre unto rim, from rim to centre,
- In a round vase the water moves itself,
- As from without ’tis struck or from within.
- Into my mind upon a sudden dropped
- What I am saying, at the moment when
- Silent became the glorious life of Thomas,
- Because of the resemblance that was born
- Of his discourse and that of Beatrice,
- Whom, after him, it pleased thus to begin:
- “This man has need (and does not tell you so,
- Nor with the voice, nor even in his thought)
- Of going to the root of one truth more.
- Declare unto him if the light wherewith
- Blossoms your substance shall remain with you
- Eternally the same that it is now;
- And if it do remain, say in what manner,
- After ye are again made visible,
- It can be that it injure not your sight.”
- As by a greater gladness urged and drawn
- They who are dancing in a ring sometimes
- Uplift their voices and their motions quicken;
- So, at that orison devout and prompt,
- The holy circles a new joy displayed
- In their revolving and their wondrous song.
- Whoso lamenteth him that here we die
- That we may live above, has never there
- Seen the refreshment of the eternal rain.
- The One and Two and Three who ever liveth,
- And reigneth ever in Three and Two and One,
- Not circumscribed and all things circumscribing,
- Three several times was chanted by each one
- Among those spirits, with such melody
- That for all merit it were just reward;
- And, in the lustre most divine of all
- The lesser ring, I heard a modest voice,
- Such as perhaps the Angel’s was to Mary,
- Answer: “As long as the festivity
- Of Paradise shall be, so long our love
- Shall radiate round about us such a vesture.
- Its brightness is proportioned to the ardour,
- The ardour to the vision; and the vision
- Equals what grace it has above its worth.
- When, glorious and sanctified, our flesh
- Is reassumed, then shall our persons be
- More pleasing by their being all complete;
- For will increase whate’er bestows on us
- Of light gratuitous the Good Supreme,
- Light which enables us to look on Him;
- Therefore the vision must perforce increase,
- Increase the ardour which from that is kindled,
- Increase the radiance which from this proceeds.
- But even as a coal that sends forth flame,
- And by its vivid whiteness overpowers it
- So that its own appearance it maintains,
- Thus the effulgence that surrounds us now
- Shall be o’erpowered in aspect by the flesh,
- Which still to-day the earth doth cover up;
- Nor can so great a splendour weary us,
- For strong will be the organs of the body
- To everything which hath the power to please us.”
- So sudden and alert appeared to me
- Both one and the other choir to say Amen,
- That well they showed desire for their dead bodies;
- Nor sole for them perhaps, but for the mothers,
- The fathers, and the rest who had been dear
- Or ever they became eternal flames.
- And lo! all round about of equal brightness
- Arose a lustre over what was there,
- Like an horizon that is clearing up.
- And as at rise of early eve begin
- Along the welkin new appearances,
- So that the sight seems real and unreal,
- It seemed to me that new subsistences
- Began there to be seen, and make a circle
- Outside the other two circumferences.
- O very sparkling of the Holy Spirit,
- How sudden and incandescent it became
- Unto mine eyes, that vanquished bore it not!
- But Beatrice so beautiful and smiling
- Appeared to me, that with the other sights
- That followed not my memory I must leave her.
- Then to uplift themselves mine eyes resumed
- The power, and I beheld myself translated
- To higher salvation with my Lady only.
- Well was I ware that I was more uplifted
- By the enkindled smiling of the star,
- That seemed to me more ruddy than its wont.
- With all my heart, and in that dialect
- Which is the same in all, such holocaust
- To God I made as the new grace beseemed;
- And not yet from my bosom was exhausted
- The ardour of sacrifice, before I knew
- This offering was accepted and auspicious;
- For with so great a lustre and so red
- Splendours appeared to me in twofold rays,
- I said: “O Helios who dost so adorn them!”
- Even as distinct with less and greater lights
- Glimmers between the two poles of the world
- The Galaxy that maketh wise men doubt,
- Thus constellated in the depths of Mars,
- Those rays described the venerable sign
- That quadrants joining in a circle make.
- Here doth my memory overcome my genius;
- For on that cross as levin gleamed forth Christ,
- So that I cannot find ensample worthy;
- But he who takes his cross and follows Christ
- Again will pardon me what I omit,
- Seeing in that aurora lighten Christ.
- From horn to horn, and ’twixt the top and base,
- Lights were in motion, brightly scintillating
- As they together met and passed each other;
- Thus level and aslant and swift and slow
- We here behold, renewing still the sight,
- The particles of bodies long and short,
- Across the sunbeam move, wherewith is listed
- Sometimes the shade, which for their own defence
- People with cunning and with art contrive.
- And as a lute and harp, accordant strung
- With many strings, a dulcet tinkling make
- To him by whom the notes are not distinguished,
- So from the lights that there to me appeared
- Upgathered through the cross a melody,
- Which rapt me, not distinguishing the hymn.
- Well was I ware it was of lofty laud,
- Because there came to me, “Arise and conquer!”
- As unto him who hears and comprehends not.
- So much enamoured I became therewith,
- That until then there was not anything
- That e’er had fettered me with such sweet bonds.
- Perhaps my word appears somewhat too bold,
- Postponing the delight of those fair eyes,
- Into which gazing my desire has rest;
- But who bethinks him that the living seals
- Of every beauty grow in power ascending,
- And that I there had not turned round to those,
- Can me excuse, if I myself accuse
- To excuse myself, and see that I speak truly:
- For here the holy joy is not disclosed,
- Because ascending it becomes more pure.
- Paradiso: Canto XV
- A will benign, in which reveals itself
- Ever the love that righteously inspires,
- As in the iniquitous, cupidity,
- Silence imposed upon that dulcet lyre,
- And quieted the consecrated chords,
- That Heaven’s right hand doth tighten and relax.
- How unto just entreaties shall be deaf
- Those substances, which, to give me desire
- Of praying them, with one accord grew silent?
- ’Tis well that without end he should lament,
- Who for the love of thing that doth not last
- Eternally despoils him of that love!
- As through the pure and tranquil evening air
- There shoots from time to time a sudden fire,
- Moving the eyes that steadfast were before,
- And seems to be a star that changeth place,
- Except that in the part where it is kindled
- Nothing is missed, and this endureth little;
- So from the horn that to the right extends
- Unto that cross’s foot there ran a star
- Out of the constellation shining there;
- Nor was the gem dissevered from its ribbon,
- But down the radiant fillet ran along,
- So that fire seemed it behind alabaster.
- Thus piteous did Anchises’ shade reach forward,
- If any faith our greatest Muse deserve,
- When in Elysium he his son perceived.
- “O sanguis meus, O superinfusa
- Gratia Dei, sicut tibi, cui
- Bis unquam Coeli janua reclusa?”
- Thus that effulgence; whence I gave it heed;
- Then round unto my Lady turned my sight,
- And on this side and that was stupefied;
- For in her eyes was burning such a smile
- That with mine own methought I touched the bottom
- Both of my grace and of my Paradise!
- Then, pleasant to the hearing and the sight,
- The spirit joined to its beginning things
- I understood not, so profound it spake;
- Nor did it hide itself from me by choice,
- But by necessity; for its conception
- Above the mark of mortals set itself.
- And when the bow of burning sympathy
- Was so far slackened, that its speech descended
- Towards the mark of our intelligence,
- The first thing that was understood by me
- Was “Benedight be Thou, O Trine and One,
- Who hast unto my seed so courteous been!”
- And it continued: “Hunger long and grateful,
- Drawn from the reading of the mighty volume
- Wherein is never changed the white nor dark,
- Thou hast appeased, my son, within this light
- In which I speak to thee, by grace of her
- Who to this lofty flight with plumage clothed thee.
- Thou thinkest that to me thy thought doth pass
- From Him who is the first, as from the unit,
- If that be known, ray out the five and six;
- And therefore who I am thou askest not,
- And why I seem more joyous unto thee
- Than any other of this gladsome crowd.
- Thou think’st the truth; because the small and great
- Of this existence look into the mirror
- Wherein, before thou think’st, thy thought thou showest.
- But that the sacred love, in which I watch
- With sight perpetual, and which makes me thirst
- With sweet desire, may better be fulfilled,
- Now let thy voice secure and frank and glad
- Proclaim the wishes, the desire proclaim,
- To which my answer is decreed already.”
- To Beatrice I turned me, and she heard
- Before I spake, and smiled to me a sign,
- That made the wings of my desire increase;
- Then in this wise began I: “Love and knowledge,
- When on you dawned the first Equality,
- Of the same weight for each of you became;
- For in the Sun, which lighted you and burned
- With heat and radiance, they so equal are,
- That all similitudes are insufficient.
- But among mortals will and argument,
- For reason that to you is manifest,
- Diversely feathered in their pinions are.
- Whence I, who mortal am, feel in myself
- This inequality; so give not thanks,
- Save in my heart, for this paternal welcome.
- Truly do I entreat thee, living topaz!
- Set in this precious jewel as a gem,
- That thou wilt satisfy me with thy name.”
- “O leaf of mine, in whom I pleasure took
- E’en while awaiting, I was thine own root!”
- Such a beginning he in answer made me.
- Then said to me: “That one from whom is named
- Thy race, and who a hundred years and more
- Has circled round the mount on the first cornice,
- A son of mine and thy great-grandsire was;
- Well it behoves thee that the long fatigue
- Thou shouldst for him make shorter with thy works.
- Florence, within the ancient boundary
- From which she taketh still her tierce and nones,
- Abode in quiet, temperate and chaste.
- No golden chain she had, nor coronal,
- Nor ladies shod with sandal shoon, nor girdle
- That caught the eye more than the person did.
- Not yet the daughter at her birth struck fear
- Into the father, for the time and dower
- Did not o’errun this side or that the measure.
- No houses had she void of families,
- Not yet had thither come Sardanapalus
- To show what in a chamber can be done;
- Not yet surpassed had Montemalo been
- By your Uccellatojo, which surpassed
- Shall in its downfall be as in its rise.
- Bellincion Berti saw I go begirt
- With leather and with bone, and from the mirror
- His dame depart without a painted face;
- And him of Nerli saw, and him of Vecchio,
- Contented with their simple suits of buff
- And with the spindle and the flax their dames.
- O fortunate women! and each one was certain
- Of her own burial-place, and none as yet
- For sake of France was in her bed deserted.
- One o’er the cradle kept her studious watch,
- And in her lullaby the language used
- That first delights the fathers and the mothers;
- Another, drawing tresses from her distaff,
- Told o’er among her family the tales
- Of Trojans and of Fesole and Rome.
- As great a marvel then would have been held
- A Lapo Salterello, a Cianghella,
- As Cincinnatus or Cornelia now.
- To such a quiet, such a beautiful
- Life of the citizen, to such a safe
- Community, and to so sweet an inn,
- Did Mary give me, with loud cries invoked,
- And in your ancient Baptistery at once
- Christian and Cacciaguida I became.
- Moronto was my brother, and Eliseo;
- From Val di Pado came to me my wife,
- And from that place thy surname was derived.
- I followed afterward the Emperor Conrad,
- And he begirt me of his chivalry,
- So much I pleased him with my noble deeds.
- I followed in his train against that law’s
- Iniquity, whose people doth usurp
- Your just possession, through your Pastor’s fault.
- There by that execrable race was I
- Released from bonds of the fallacious world,
- The love of which defileth many souls,
- And came from martyrdom unto this peace.”
- Paradiso: Canto XVI
- O thou our poor nobility of blood,
- If thou dost make the people glory in thee
- Down here where our affection languishes,
- A marvellous thing it ne’er will be to me;
- For there where appetite is not perverted,
- I say in Heaven, of thee I made a boast!
- Truly thou art a cloak that quickly shortens,
- So that unless we piece thee day by day
- Time goeth round about thee with his shears!
- With ‘You,’ which Rome was first to tolerate,
- (Wherein her family less perseveres,)
- Yet once again my words beginning made;
- Whence Beatrice, who stood somewhat apart,
- Smiling, appeared like unto her who coughed
- At the first failing writ of Guenever.
- And I began: “You are my ancestor,
- You give to me all hardihood to speak,
- You lift me so that I am more than I.
- So many rivulets with gladness fill
- My mind, that of itself it makes a joy
- Because it can endure this and not burst.
- Then tell me, my beloved root ancestral,
- Who were your ancestors, and what the years
- That in your boyhood chronicled themselves?
- Tell me about the sheepfold of Saint John,
- How large it was, and who the people were
- Within it worthy of the highest seats.”
- As at the blowing of the winds a coal
- Quickens to flame, so I beheld that light
- Become resplendent at my blandishments.
- And as unto mine eyes it grew more fair,
- With voice more sweet and tender, but not in
- This modern dialect, it said to me:
- “From uttering of the ‘Ave,’ till the birth
- In which my mother, who is now a saint,
- Of me was lightened who had been her burden,
- Unto its Lion had this fire returned
- Five hundred fifty times and thirty more,
- To reinflame itself beneath his paw.
- My ancestors and I our birthplace had
- Where first is found the last ward of the city
- By him who runneth in your annual game.
- Suffice it of my elders to hear this;
- But who they were, and whence they thither came,
- Silence is more considerate than speech.
- All those who at that time were there between
- Mars and the Baptist, fit for bearing arms,
- Were a fifth part of those who now are living;
- But the community, that now is mixed
- With Campi and Certaldo and Figghine,
- Pure in the lowest artisan was seen.
- O how much better ’twere to have as neighbours
- The folk of whom I speak, and at Galluzzo
- And at Trespiano have your boundary,
- Than have them in the town, and bear the stench
- Of Aguglione’s churl, and him of Signa
- Who has sharp eyes for trickery already.
- Had not the folk, which most of all the world
- Degenerates, been a step-dame unto Caesar,
- But as a mother to her son benignant,
- Some who turn Florentines, and trade and discount,
- Would have gone back again to Simifonte
- There where their grandsires went about as beggars.
- At Montemurlo still would be the Counts,
- The Cerchi in the parish of Acone,
- Perhaps in Valdigrieve the Buondelmonti.
- Ever the intermingling of the people
- Has been the source of malady in cities,
- As in the body food it surfeits on;
- And a blind bull more headlong plunges down
- Than a blind lamb; and very often cuts
- Better and more a single sword than five.
- If Luni thou regard, and Urbisaglia,
- How they have passed away, and how are passing
- Chiusi and Sinigaglia after them,
- To hear how races waste themselves away,
- Will seem to thee no novel thing nor hard,
- Seeing that even cities have an end.
- All things of yours have their mortality,
- Even as yourselves; but it is hidden in some
- That a long while endure, and lives are short;
- And as the turning of the lunar heaven
- Covers and bares the shores without a pause,
- In the like manner fortune does with Florence.
- Therefore should not appear a marvellous thing
- What I shall say of the great Florentines
- Of whom the fame is hidden in the Past.
- I saw the Ughi, saw the Catellini,
- Filippi, Greci, Ormanni, and Alberichi,
- Even in their fall illustrious citizens;
- And saw, as mighty as they ancient were,
- With him of La Sannella him of Arca,
- And Soldanier, Ardinghi, and Bostichi.
- Near to the gate that is at present laden
- With a new felony of so much weight
- That soon it shall be jetsam from the bark,
- The Ravignani were, from whom descended
- The County Guido, and whoe’er the name
- Of the great Bellincione since hath taken.
- He of La Pressa knew the art of ruling
- Already, and already Galigajo
- Had hilt and pommel gilded in his house.
- Mighty already was the Column Vair,
- Sacchetti, Giuochi, Fifant, and Barucci,
- And Galli, and they who for the bushel blush.
- The stock from which were the Calfucci born
- Was great already, and already chosen
- To curule chairs the Sizii and Arrigucci.
- O how beheld I those who are undone
- By their own pride! and how the Balls of Gold
- Florence enflowered in all their mighty deeds!
- So likewise did the ancestors of those
- Who evermore, when vacant is your church,
- Fatten by staying in consistory.
- The insolent race, that like a dragon follows
- Whoever flees, and unto him that shows
- His teeth or purse is gentle as a lamb,
- Already rising was, but from low people;
- So that it pleased not Ubertin Donato
- That his wife’s father should make him their kin.
- Already had Caponsacco to the Market
- From Fesole descended, and already
- Giuda and Infangato were good burghers.
- I’ll tell a thing incredible, but true;
- One entered the small circuit by a gate
- Which from the Della Pera took its name!
- Each one that bears the beautiful escutcheon
- Of the great baron whose renown and name
- The festival of Thomas keepeth fresh,
- Knighthood and privilege from him received;
- Though with the populace unites himself
- To-day the man who binds it with a border.
- Already were Gualterotti and Importuni;
- And still more quiet would the Borgo be
- If with new neighbours it remained unfed.
- The house from which is born your lamentation,
- Through just disdain that death among you brought
- And put an end unto your joyous life,
- Was honoured in itself and its companions.
- O Buondelmonte, how in evil hour
- Thou fled’st the bridal at another’s promptings!
- Many would be rejoicing who are sad,
- If God had thee surrendered to the Ema
- The first time that thou camest to the city.
- But it behoved the mutilated stone
- Which guards the bridge, that Florence should provide
- A victim in her latest hour of peace.
- With all these families, and others with them,
- Florence beheld I in so great repose,
- That no occasion had she whence to weep;
- With all these families beheld so just
- And glorious her people, that the lily
- Never upon the spear was placed reversed,
- Nor by division was vermilion made.”
- Paradiso: Canto XVII
- As came to Clymene, to be made certain
- Of that which he had heard against himself,
- He who makes fathers chary still to children,
- Even such was I, and such was I perceived
- By Beatrice and by the holy light
- That first on my account had changed its place.
- Therefore my Lady said to me: “Send forth
- The flame of thy desire, so that it issue
- Imprinted well with the internal stamp;
- Not that our knowledge may be greater made
- By speech of thine, but to accustom thee
- To tell thy thirst, that we may give thee drink.”
- “O my beloved tree, (that so dost lift thee,
- That even as minds terrestrial perceive
- No triangle containeth two obtuse,
- So thou beholdest the contingent things
- Ere in themselves they are, fixing thine eyes
- Upon the point in which all times are present,)
- While I was with Virgilius conjoined
- Upon the mountain that the souls doth heal,
- And when descending into the dead world,
- Were spoken to me of my future life
- Some grievous words; although I feel myself
- In sooth foursquare against the blows of chance.
- On this account my wish would be content
- To hear what fortune is approaching me,
- Because foreseen an arrow comes more slowly.”
- Thus did I say unto that selfsame light
- That unto me had spoken before; and even
- As Beatrice willed was my own will confessed.
- Not in vague phrase, in which the foolish folk
- Ensnared themselves of old, ere yet was slain
- The Lamb of God who taketh sins away,
- But with clear words and unambiguous
- Language responded that paternal love,
- Hid and revealed by its own proper smile:
- “Contingency, that outside of the volume
- Of your materiality extends not,
- Is all depicted in the eternal aspect.
- Necessity however thence it takes not,
- Except as from the eye, in which ’tis mirrored,
- A ship that with the current down descends.
- From thence, e’en as there cometh to the ear
- Sweet harmony from an organ, comes in sight
- To me the time that is preparing for thee.
- As forth from Athens went Hippolytus,
- By reason of his step-dame false and cruel,
- So thou from Florence must perforce depart.
- Already this is willed, and this is sought for;
- And soon it shall be done by him who thinks it,
- Where every day the Christ is bought and sold.
- The blame shall follow the offended party
- In outcry as is usual; but the vengeance
- Shall witness to the truth that doth dispense it.
- Thou shalt abandon everything beloved
- Most tenderly, and this the arrow is
- Which first the bow of banishment shoots forth.
- Thou shalt have proof how savoureth of salt
- The bread of others, and how hard a road
- The going down and up another’s stairs.
- And that which most shall weigh upon thy shoulders
- Will be the bad and foolish company
- With which into this valley thou shalt fall;
- For all ingrate, all mad and impious
- Will they become against thee; but soon after
- They, and not thou, shall have the forehead scarlet.
- Of their bestiality their own proceedings
- Shall furnish proof; so ’twill be well for thee
- A party to have made thee by thyself.
- Thine earliest refuge and thine earliest inn
- Shall be the mighty Lombard’s courtesy,
- Who on the Ladder bears the holy bird,
- Who such benign regard shall have for thee
- That ’twixt you twain, in doing and in asking,
- That shall be first which is with others last.
- With him shalt thou see one who at his birth
- Has by this star of strength been so impressed,
- That notable shall his achievements be.
- Not yet the people are aware of him
- Through his young age, since only nine years yet
- Around about him have these wheels revolved.
- But ere the Gascon cheat the noble Henry,
- Some sparkles of his virtue shall appear
- In caring not for silver nor for toil.
- So recognized shall his magnificence
- Become hereafter, that his enemies
- Will not have power to keep mute tongues about it.
- On him rely, and on his benefits;
- By him shall many people be transformed,
- Changing condition rich and mendicant;
- And written in thy mind thou hence shalt bear
- Of him, but shalt not say it”—and things said he
- Incredible to those who shall be present.
- Then added: “Son, these are the commentaries
- On what was said to thee; behold the snares
- That are concealed behind few revolutions;
- Yet would I not thy neighbours thou shouldst envy,
- Because thy life into the future reaches
- Beyond the punishment of their perfidies.”
- When by its silence showed that sainted soul
- That it had finished putting in the woof
- Into that web which I had given it warped,
- Began I, even as he who yearneth after,
- Being in doubt, some counsel from a person
- Who seeth, and uprightly wills, and loves:
- “Well see I, father mine, how spurreth on
- The time towards me such a blow to deal me
- As heaviest is to him who most gives way.
- Therefore with foresight it is well I arm me,
- That, if the dearest place be taken from me,
- I may not lose the others by my songs.
- Down through the world of infinite bitterness,
- And o’er the mountain, from whose beauteous summit
- The eyes of my own Lady lifted me,
- And afterward through heaven from light to light,
- I have learned that which, if I tell again,
- Will be a savour of strong herbs to many.
- And if I am a timid friend to truth,
- I fear lest I may lose my life with those
- Who will hereafter call this time the olden.”
- The light in which was smiling my own treasure
- Which there I had discovered, flashed at first
- As in the sunshine doth a golden mirror;
- Then made reply: “A conscience overcast
- Or with its own or with another’s shame,
- Will taste forsooth the tartness of thy word;
- But ne’ertheless, all falsehood laid aside,
- Make manifest thy vision utterly,
- And let them scratch wherever is the itch;
- For if thine utterance shall offensive be
- At the first taste, a vital nutriment
- ’Twill leave thereafter, when it is digested.
- This cry of thine shall do as doth the wind,
- Which smiteth most the most exalted summits,
- And that is no slight argument of honour.
- Therefore are shown to thee within these wheels,
- Upon the mount and in the dolorous valley,
- Only the souls that unto fame are known;
- Because the spirit of the hearer rests not,
- Nor doth confirm its faith by an example
- Which has the root of it unknown and hidden,
- Or other reason that is not apparent.”
- Paradiso: Canto XVIII
- Now was alone rejoicing in its word
- That soul beatified, and I was tasting
- My own, the bitter tempering with the sweet,
- And the Lady who to God was leading me
- Said: “Change thy thought; consider that I am
- Near unto Him who every wrong disburdens.”
- Unto the loving accents of my comfort
- I turned me round, and then what love I saw
- Within those holy eyes I here relinquish;
- Not only that my language I distrust,
- But that my mind cannot return so far
- Above itself, unless another guide it.
- Thus much upon that point can I repeat,
- That, her again beholding, my affection
- From every other longing was released.
- While the eternal pleasure, which direct
- Rayed upon Beatrice, from her fair face
- Contented me with its reflected aspect,
- Conquering me with the radiance of a smile,
- She said to me, “Turn thee about and listen;
- Not in mine eyes alone is Paradise.”
- Even as sometimes here do we behold
- The affection in the look, if it be such
- That all the soul is wrapt away by it,
- So, by the flaming of the effulgence holy
- To which I turned, I recognized therein
- The wish of speaking to me somewhat farther.
- And it began: “In this fifth resting-place
- Upon the tree that liveth by its summit,
- And aye bears fruit, and never loses leaf,
- Are blessed spirits that below, ere yet
- They came to Heaven, were of such great renown
- That every Muse therewith would affluent be.
- Therefore look thou upon the cross’s horns;
- He whom I now shall name will there enact
- What doth within a cloud its own swift fire.”
- I saw athwart the Cross a splendour drawn
- By naming Joshua, (even as he did it,)
- Nor noted I the word before the deed;
- And at the name of the great Maccabee
- I saw another move itself revolving,
- And gladness was the whip unto that top.
- Likewise for Charlemagne and for Orlando,
- Two of them my regard attentive followed
- As followeth the eye its falcon flying.
- William thereafterward, and Renouard,
- And the Duke Godfrey, did attract my sight
- Along upon that Cross, and Robert Guiscard.
- Then, moved and mingled with the other lights,
- The soul that had addressed me showed how great
- An artist ’twas among the heavenly singers.
- To my right side I turned myself around,
- My duty to behold in Beatrice
- Either by words or gesture signified;
- And so translucent I beheld her eyes,
- So full of pleasure, that her countenance
- Surpassed its other and its latest wont.
- And as, by feeling greater delectation,
- A man in doing good from day to day
- Becomes aware his virtue is increasing,
- So I became aware that my gyration
- With heaven together had increased its arc,
- That miracle beholding more adorned.
- And such as is the change, in little lapse
- Of time, in a pale woman, when her face
- Is from the load of bashfulness unladen,
- Such was it in mine eyes, when I had turned,
- Caused by the whiteness of the temperate star,
- The sixth, which to itself had gathered me.
- Within that Jovial torch did I behold
- The sparkling of the love which was therein
- Delineate our language to mine eyes.
- And even as birds uprisen from the shore,
- As in congratulation o’er their food,
- Make squadrons of themselves, now round, now long,
- So from within those lights the holy creatures
- Sang flying to and fro, and in their figures
- Made of themselves now D, now I, now L.
- First singing they to their own music moved;
- Then one becoming of these characters,
- A little while they rested and were silent.
- O divine Pegasea, thou who genius
- Dost glorious make, and render it long-lived,
- And this through thee the cities and the kingdoms,
- Illume me with thyself, that I may bring
- Their figures out as I have them conceived!
- Apparent be thy power in these brief verses!
- Themselves then they displayed in five times seven
- Vowels and consonants; and I observed
- The parts as they seemed spoken unto me.
- ‘Diligite justitiam,’ these were
- First verb and noun of all that was depicted;
- ‘Qui judicatis terram’ were the last.
- Thereafter in the M of the fifth word
- Remained they so arranged, that Jupiter
- Seemed to be silver there with gold inlaid.
- And other lights I saw descend where was
- The summit of the M, and pause there singing
- The good, I think, that draws them to itself.
- Then, as in striking upon burning logs
- Upward there fly innumerable sparks,
- Whence fools are wont to look for auguries,
- More than a thousand lights seemed thence to rise,
- And to ascend, some more, and others less,
- Even as the Sun that lights them had allotted;
- And, each one being quiet in its place,
- The head and neck beheld I of an eagle
- Delineated by that inlaid fire.
- He who there paints has none to be his guide;
- But Himself guides; and is from Him remembered
- That virtue which is form unto the nest.
- The other beatitude, that contented seemed
- At first to bloom a lily on the M,
- By a slight motion followed out the imprint.
- O gentle star! what and how many gems
- Did demonstrate to me, that all our justice
- Effect is of that heaven which thou ingemmest!
- Wherefore I pray the Mind, in which begin
- Thy motion and thy virtue, to regard
- Whence comes the smoke that vitiates thy rays;
- So that a second time it now be wroth
- With buying and with selling in the temple
- Whose walls were built with signs and martyrdoms!
- O soldiery of heaven, whom I contemplate,
- Implore for those who are upon the earth
- All gone astray after the bad example!
- Once ’twas the custom to make war with swords;
- But now ’tis made by taking here and there
- The bread the pitying Father shuts from none.
- Yet thou, who writest but to cancel, think
- That Peter and that Paul, who for this vineyard
- Which thou art spoiling died, are still alive!
- Well canst thou say: “So steadfast my desire
- Is unto him who willed to live alone,
- And for a dance was led to martyrdom,
- That I know not the Fisherman nor Paul.”
- Paradiso: Canto XIX
- Appeared before me with its wings outspread
- The beautiful image that in sweet fruition
- Made jubilant the interwoven souls;
- Appeared a little ruby each, wherein
- Ray of the sun was burning so enkindled
- That each into mine eyes refracted it.
- And what it now behoves me to retrace
- Nor voice has e’er reported, nor ink written,
- Nor was by fantasy e’er comprehended;
- For speak I saw, and likewise heard, the beak,
- And utter with its voice both ‘I’ and ‘My,’
- When in conception it was ‘We’ and ‘Our.’
- And it began: “Being just and merciful
- Am I exalted here unto that glory
- Which cannot be exceeded by desire;
- And upon earth I left my memory
- Such, that the evil-minded people there
- Commend it, but continue not the story.”
- So doth a single heat from many embers
- Make itself felt, even as from many loves
- Issued a single sound from out that image.
- Whence I thereafter: “O perpetual flowers
- Of the eternal joy, that only one
- Make me perceive your odours manifold,
- Exhaling, break within me the great fast
- Which a long season has in hunger held me,
- Not finding for it any food on earth.
- Well do I know, that if in heaven its mirror
- Justice Divine another realm doth make,
- Yours apprehends it not through any veil.
- You know how I attentively address me
- To listen; and you know what is the doubt
- That is in me so very old a fast.”
- Even as a falcon, issuing from his hood,
- Doth move his head, and with his wings applaud him,
- Showing desire, and making himself fine,
- Saw I become that standard, which of lauds
- Was interwoven of the grace divine,
- With such songs as he knows who there rejoices.
- Then it began: “He who a compass turned
- On the world’s outer verge, and who within it
- Devised so much occult and manifest,
- Could not the impress of his power so make
- On all the universe, as that his Word
- Should not remain in infinite excess.
- And this makes certain that the first proud being,
- Who was the paragon of every creature,
- By not awaiting light fell immature.
- And hence appears it, that each minor nature
- Is scant receptacle unto that good
- Which has no end, and by itself is measured.
- In consequence our vision, which perforce
- Must be some ray of that intelligence
- With which all things whatever are replete,
- Cannot in its own nature be so potent,
- That it shall not its origin discern
- Far beyond that which is apparent to it.
- Therefore into the justice sempiternal
- The power of vision that your world receives,
- As eye into the ocean, penetrates;
- Which, though it see the bottom near the shore,
- Upon the deep perceives it not, and yet
- ’Tis there, but it is hidden by the depth.
- There is no light but comes from the serene
- That never is o’ercast, nay, it is darkness
- Or shadow of the flesh, or else its poison.
- Amply to thee is opened now the cavern
- Which has concealed from thee the living justice
- Of which thou mad’st such frequent questioning.
- For saidst thou: ‘Born a man is on the shore
- Of Indus, and is none who there can speak
- Of Christ, nor who can read, nor who can write;
- And all his inclinations and his actions
- Are good, so far as human reason sees,
- Without a sin in life or in discourse:
- He dieth unbaptised and without faith;
- Where is this justice that condemneth him?
- Where is his fault, if he do not believe?’
- Now who art thou, that on the bench wouldst sit
- In judgment at a thousand miles away,
- With the short vision of a single span?
- Truly to him who with me subtilizes,
- If so the Scripture were not over you,
- For doubting there were marvellous occasion.
- O animals terrene, O stolid minds,
- The primal will, that in itself is good,
- Ne’er from itself, the Good Supreme, has moved.
- So much is just as is accordant with it;
- No good created draws it to itself,
- But it, by raying forth, occasions that.”
- Even as above her nest goes circling round
- The stork when she has fed her little ones,
- And he who has been fed looks up at her,
- So lifted I my brows, and even such
- Became the blessed image, which its wings
- Was moving, by so many counsels urged.
- Circling around it sang, and said: “As are
- My notes to thee, who dost not comprehend them,
- Such is the eternal judgment to you mortals.”
- Those lucent splendours of the Holy Spirit
- Grew quiet then, but still within the standard
- That made the Romans reverend to the world.
- It recommenced: “Unto this kingdom never
- Ascended one who had not faith in Christ,
- Before or since he to the tree was nailed.
- But look thou, many crying are, ‘Christ, Christ!’
- Who at the judgment shall be far less near
- To him than some shall be who knew not Christ.
- Such Christians shall the Ethiop condemn,
- When the two companies shall be divided,
- The one for ever rich, the other poor.
- What to your kings may not the Persians say,
- When they that volume opened shall behold
- In which are written down all their dispraises?
- There shall be seen, among the deeds of Albert,
- That which ere long shall set the pen in motion,
- For which the realm of Prague shall be deserted.
- There shall be seen the woe that on the Seine
- He brings by falsifying of the coin,
- Who by the blow of a wild boar shall die.
- There shall be seen the pride that causes thirst,
- Which makes the Scot and Englishman so mad
- That they within their boundaries cannot rest;
- Be seen the luxury and effeminate life
- Of him of Spain, and the Bohemian,
- Who valour never knew and never wished;
- Be seen the Cripple of Jerusalem,
- His goodness represented by an I,
- While the reverse an M shall represent;
- Be seen the avarice and poltroonery
- Of him who guards the Island of the Fire,
- Wherein Anchises finished his long life;
- And to declare how pitiful he is
- Shall be his record in contracted letters
- Which shall make note of much in little space.
- And shall appear to each one the foul deeds
- Of uncle and of brother who a nation
- So famous have dishonoured, and two crowns.
- And he of Portugal and he of Norway
- Shall there be known, and he of Rascia too,
- Who saw in evil hour the coin of Venice.
- O happy Hungary, if she let herself
- Be wronged no farther! and Navarre the happy,
- If with the hills that gird her she be armed!
- And each one may believe that now, as hansel
- Thereof, do Nicosia and Famagosta
- Lament and rage because of their own beast,
- Who from the others’ flank departeth not.”
- Paradiso: Canto XX
- When he who all the world illuminates
- Out of our hemisphere so far descends
- That on all sides the daylight is consumed,
- The heaven, that erst by him alone was kindled,
- Doth suddenly reveal itself again
- By many lights, wherein is one resplendent.
- And came into my mind this act of heaven,
- When the ensign of the world and of its leaders
- Had silent in the blessed beak become;
- Because those living luminaries all,
- By far more luminous, did songs begin
- Lapsing and falling from my memory.
- O gentle Love, that with a smile dost cloak thee,
- How ardent in those sparks didst thou appear,
- That had the breath alone of holy thoughts!
- After the precious and pellucid crystals,
- With which begemmed the sixth light I beheld,
- Silence imposed on the angelic bells,
- I seemed to hear the murmuring of a river
- That clear descendeth down from rock to rock,
- Showing the affluence of its mountain-top.
- And as the sound upon the cithern’s neck
- Taketh its form, and as upon the vent
- Of rustic pipe the wind that enters it,
- Even thus, relieved from the delay of waiting,
- That murmuring of the eagle mounted up
- Along its neck, as if it had been hollow.
- There it became a voice, and issued thence
- From out its beak, in such a form of words
- As the heart waited for wherein I wrote them.
- “The part in me which sees and bears the sun
- In mortal eagles,” it began to me,
- “Now fixedly must needs be looked upon;
- For of the fires of which I make my figure,
- Those whence the eye doth sparkle in my head
- Of all their orders the supremest are.
- He who is shining in the midst as pupil
- Was once the singer of the Holy Spirit,
- Who bore the ark from city unto city;
- Now knoweth he the merit of his song,
- In so far as effect of his own counsel,
- By the reward which is commensurate.
- Of five, that make a circle for my brow,
- He that approacheth nearest to my beak
- Did the poor widow for her son console;
- Now knoweth he how dearly it doth cost
- Not following Christ, by the experience
- Of this sweet life and of its opposite.
- He who comes next in the circumference
- Of which I speak, upon its highest arc,
- Did death postpone by penitence sincere;
- Now knoweth he that the eternal judgment
- Suffers no change, albeit worthy prayer
- Maketh below to-morrow of to-day.
- The next who follows, with the laws and me,
- Under the good intent that bore bad fruit
- Became a Greek by ceding to the pastor;
- Now knoweth he how all the ill deduced
- From his good action is not harmful to him,
- Although the world thereby may be destroyed.
- And he, whom in the downward arc thou seest,
- Guglielmo was, whom the same land deplores
- That weepeth Charles and Frederick yet alive;
- Now knoweth he how heaven enamoured is
- With a just king; and in the outward show
- Of his effulgence he reveals it still.
- Who would believe, down in the errant world,
- That e’er the Trojan Ripheus in this round
- Could be the fifth one of the holy lights?
- Now knoweth he enough of what the world
- Has not the power to see of grace divine,
- Although his sight may not discern the bottom.”
- Like as a lark that in the air expatiates,
- First singing and then silent with content
- Of the last sweetness that doth satisfy her,
- Such seemed to me the image of the imprint
- Of the eternal pleasure, by whose will
- Doth everything become the thing it is.
- And notwithstanding to my doubt I was
- As glass is to the colour that invests it,
- To wait the time in silence it endured not,
- But forth from out my mouth, “What things are these?”
- Extorted with the force of its own weight;
- Whereat I saw great joy of coruscation.
- Thereafterward with eye still more enkindled
- The blessed standard made to me reply,
- To keep me not in wonderment suspended:
- “I see that thou believest in these things
- Because I say them, but thou seest not how;
- So that, although believed in, they are hidden.
- Thou doest as he doth who a thing by name
- Well apprehendeth, but its quiddity
- Cannot perceive, unless another show it.
- ‘Regnum coelorum’ suffereth violence
- From fervent love, and from that living hope
- That overcometh the Divine volition;
- Not in the guise that man o’ercometh man,
- But conquers it because it will be conquered,
- And conquered conquers by benignity.
- The first life of the eyebrow and the fifth
- Cause thee astonishment, because with them
- Thou seest the region of the angels painted.
- They passed not from their bodies, as thou thinkest,
- Gentiles, but Christians in the steadfast faith
- Of feet that were to suffer and had suffered.
- For one from Hell, where no one e’er turns back
- Unto good will, returned unto his bones,
- And that of living hope was the reward,—
- Of living hope, that placed its efficacy
- In prayers to God made to resuscitate him,
- So that ’twere possible to move his will.
- The glorious soul concerning which I speak,
- Returning to the flesh, where brief its stay,
- Believed in Him who had the power to aid it;
- And, in believing, kindled to such fire
- Of genuine love, that at the second death
- Worthy it was to come unto this joy.
- The other one, through grace, that from so deep
- A fountain wells that never hath the eye
- Of any creature reached its primal wave,
- Set all his love below on righteousness;
- Wherefore from grace to grace did God unclose
- His eye to our redemption yet to be,
- Whence he believed therein, and suffered not
- From that day forth the stench of paganism,
- And he reproved therefor the folk perverse.
- Those Maidens three, whom at the right-hand wheel
- Thou didst behold, were unto him for baptism
- More than a thousand years before baptizing.
- O thou predestination, how remote
- Thy root is from the aspect of all those
- Who the First Cause do not behold entire!
- And you, O mortals! hold yourselves restrained
- In judging; for ourselves, who look on God,
- We do not know as yet all the elect;
- And sweet to us is such a deprivation,
- Because our good in this good is made perfect,
- That whatsoe’er God wills, we also will.”
- After this manner by that shape divine,
- To make clear in me my short-sightedness,
- Was given to me a pleasant medicine;
- And as good singer a good lutanist
- Accompanies with vibrations of the chords,
- Whereby more pleasantness the song acquires,
- So, while it spake, do I remember me
- That I beheld both of those blessed lights,
- Even as the winking of the eyes concords,
- Moving unto the words their little flames.
- Paradiso: Canto XXI
- Already on my Lady’s face mine eyes
- Again were fastened, and with these my mind,
- And from all other purpose was withdrawn;
- And she smiled not; but “If I were to smile,”
- She unto me began, “thou wouldst become
- Like Semele, when she was turned to ashes.
- Because my beauty, that along the stairs
- Of the eternal palace more enkindles,
- As thou hast seen, the farther we ascend,
- If it were tempered not, is so resplendent
- That all thy mortal power in its effulgence
- Would seem a leaflet that the thunder crushes.
- We are uplifted to the seventh splendour,
- That underneath the burning Lion’s breast
- Now radiates downward mingled with his power.
- Fix in direction of thine eyes the mind,
- And make of them a mirror for the figure
- That in this mirror shall appear to thee.”
- He who could know what was the pasturage
- My sight had in that blessed countenance,
- When I transferred me to another care,
- Would recognize how grateful was to me
- Obedience unto my celestial escort,
- By counterpoising one side with the other.
- Within the crystal which, around the world
- Revolving, bears the name of its dear leader,
- Under whom every wickedness lay dead,
- Coloured like gold, on which the sunshine gleams,
- A stairway I beheld to such a height
- Uplifted, that mine eye pursued it not.
- Likewise beheld I down the steps descending
- So many splendours, that I thought each light
- That in the heaven appears was there diffused.
- And as accordant with their natural custom
- The rooks together at the break of day
- Bestir themselves to warm their feathers cold;
- Then some of them fly off without return,
- Others come back to where they started from,
- And others, wheeling round, still keep at home;
- Such fashion it appeared to me was there
- Within the sparkling that together came,
- As soon as on a certain step it struck,
- And that which nearest unto us remained
- Became so clear, that in my thought I said,
- “Well I perceive the love thou showest me;
- But she, from whom I wait the how and when
- Of speech and silence, standeth still; whence I
- Against desire do well if I ask not.”
- She thereupon, who saw my silentness
- In the sight of Him who seeth everything,
- Said unto me, “Let loose thy warm desire.”
- And I began: “No merit of my own
- Renders me worthy of response from thee;
- But for her sake who granteth me the asking,
- Thou blessed life that dost remain concealed
- In thy beatitude, make known to me
- The cause which draweth thee so near my side;
- And tell me why is silent in this wheel
- The dulcet symphony of Paradise,
- That through the rest below sounds so devoutly.”
- “Thou hast thy hearing mortal as thy sight,”
- It answer made to me; “they sing not here,
- For the same cause that Beatrice has not smiled.
- Thus far adown the holy stairway’s steps
- Have I descended but to give thee welcome
- With words, and with the light that mantles me;
- Nor did more love cause me to be more ready,
- For love as much and more up there is burning,
- As doth the flaming manifest to thee.
- But the high charity, that makes us servants
- Prompt to the counsel which controls the world,
- Allotteth here, even as thou dost observe.”
- “I see full well,” said I, “O sacred lamp!
- How love unfettered in this court sufficeth
- To follow the eternal Providence;
- But this is what seems hard for me to see,
- Wherefore predestinate wast thou alone
- Unto this office from among thy consorts.”
- No sooner had I come to the last word,
- Than of its middle made the light a centre,
- Whirling itself about like a swift millstone.
- When answer made the love that was therein:
- “On me directed is a light divine,
- Piercing through this in which I am embosomed,
- Of which the virtue with my sight conjoined
- Lifts me above myself so far, I see
- The supreme essence from which this is drawn.
- Hence comes the joyfulness with which I flame,
- For to my sight, as far as it is clear,
- The clearness of the flame I equal make.
- But that soul in the heaven which is most pure,
- That seraph which his eye on God most fixes,
- Could this demand of thine not satisfy;
- Because so deeply sinks in the abyss
- Of the eternal statute what thou askest,
- From all created sight it is cut off.
- And to the mortal world, when thou returnest,
- This carry back, that it may not presume
- Longer tow’rd such a goal to move its feet.
- The mind, that shineth here, on earth doth smoke;
- From this observe how can it do below
- That which it cannot though the heaven assume it?”
- Such limit did its words prescribe to me,
- The question I relinquished, and restricted
- Myself to ask it humbly who it was.
- “Between two shores of Italy rise cliffs,
- And not far distant from thy native place,
- So high, the thunders far below them sound,
- And form a ridge that Catria is called,
- ’Neath which is consecrate a hermitage
- Wont to be dedicate to worship only.”
- Thus unto me the third speech recommenced,
- And then, continuing, it said: “Therein
- Unto God’s service I became so steadfast,
- That feeding only on the juice of olives
- Lightly I passed away the heats and frosts,
- Contented in my thoughts contemplative.
- That cloister used to render to these heavens
- Abundantly, and now is empty grown,
- So that perforce it soon must be revealed.
- I in that place was Peter Damiano;
- And Peter the Sinner was I in the house
- Of Our Lady on the Adriatic shore.
- Little of mortal life remained to me,
- When I was called and dragged forth to the hat
- Which shifteth evermore from bad to worse.
- Came Cephas, and the mighty Vessel came
- Of the Holy Spirit, meagre and barefooted,
- Taking the food of any hostelry.
- Now some one to support them on each side
- The modern shepherds need, and some to lead them,
- So heavy are they, and to hold their trains.
- They cover up their palfreys with their cloaks,
- So that two beasts go underneath one skin;
- O Patience, that dost tolerate so much!”
- At this voice saw I many little flames
- From step to step descending and revolving,
- And every revolution made them fairer.
- Round about this one came they and stood still,
- And a cry uttered of so loud a sound,
- It here could find no parallel, nor I
- Distinguished it, the thunder so o’ercame me.
- Paradiso: Canto XXII
- Oppressed with stupor, I unto my guide
- Turned like a little child who always runs
- For refuge there where he confideth most;
- And she, even as a mother who straightway
- Gives comfort to her pale and breathless boy
- With voice whose wont it is to reassure him,
- Said to me: “Knowest thou not thou art in heaven,
- And knowest thou not that heaven is holy all
- And what is done here cometh from good zeal?
- After what wise the singing would have changed thee
- And I by smiling, thou canst now imagine,
- Since that the cry has startled thee so much,
- In which if thou hadst understood its prayers
- Already would be known to thee the vengeance
- Which thou shalt look upon before thou diest.
- The sword above here smiteth not in haste
- Nor tardily, howe’er it seem to him
- Who fearing or desiring waits for it.
- But turn thee round towards the others now,
- For very illustrious spirits shalt thou see,
- If thou thy sight directest as I say.”
- As it seemed good to her mine eyes I turned,
- And saw a hundred spherules that together
- With mutual rays each other more embellished.
- I stood as one who in himself represses
- The point of his desire, and ventures not
- To question, he so feareth the too much.
- And now the largest and most luculent
- Among those pearls came forward, that it might
- Make my desire concerning it content.
- Within it then I heard: “If thou couldst see
- Even as myself the charity that burns
- Among us, thy conceits would be expressed;
- But, that by waiting thou mayst not come late
- To the high end, I will make answer even
- Unto the thought of which thou art so chary.
- That mountain on whose slope Cassino stands
- Was frequented of old upon its summit
- By a deluded folk and ill-disposed;
- And I am he who first up thither bore
- The name of Him who brought upon the earth
- The truth that so much sublimateth us.
- And such abundant grace upon me shone
- That all the neighbouring towns I drew away
- From the impious worship that seduced the world.
- These other fires, each one of them, were men
- Contemplative, enkindled by that heat
- Which maketh holy flowers and fruits spring up.
- Here is Macarius, here is Romualdus,
- Here are my brethren, who within the cloisters
- Their footsteps stayed and kept a steadfast heart.”
- And I to him: “The affection which thou showest
- Speaking with me, and the good countenance
- Which I behold and note in all your ardours,
- In me have so my confidence dilated
- As the sun doth the rose, when it becomes
- As far unfolded as it hath the power.
- Therefore I pray, and thou assure me, father,
- If I may so much grace receive, that I
- May thee behold with countenance unveiled.”
- He thereupon: “Brother, thy high desire
- In the remotest sphere shall be fulfilled,
- Where are fulfilled all others and my own.
- There perfect is, and ripened, and complete,
- Every desire; within that one alone
- Is every part where it has always been;
- For it is not in space, nor turns on poles,
- And unto it our stairway reaches up,
- Whence thus from out thy sight it steals away.
- Up to that height the Patriarch Jacob saw it
- Extending its supernal part, what time
- So thronged with angels it appeared to him.
- But to ascend it now no one uplifts
- His feet from off the earth, and now my Rule
- Below remaineth for mere waste of paper.
- The walls that used of old to be an Abbey
- Are changed to dens of robbers, and the cowls
- Are sacks filled full of miserable flour.
- But heavy usury is not taken up
- So much against God’s pleasure as that fruit
- Which maketh so insane the heart of monks;
- For whatsoever hath the Church in keeping
- Is for the folk that ask it in God’s name,
- Not for one’s kindred or for something worse.
- The flesh of mortals is so very soft,
- That good beginnings down below suffice not
- From springing of the oak to bearing acorns.
- Peter began with neither gold nor silver,
- And I with orison and abstinence,
- And Francis with humility his convent.
- And if thou lookest at each one’s beginning,
- And then regardest whither he has run,
- Thou shalt behold the white changed into brown.
- In verity the Jordan backward turned,
- And the sea’s fleeing, when God willed were more
- A wonder to behold, than succour here.”
- Thus unto me he said; and then withdrew
- To his own band, and the band closed together;
- Then like a whirlwind all was upward rapt.
- The gentle Lady urged me on behind them
- Up o’er that stairway by a single sign,
- So did her virtue overcome my nature;
- Nor here below, where one goes up and down
- By natural law, was motion e’er so swift
- That it could be compared unto my wing.
- Reader, as I may unto that devout
- Triumph return, on whose account I often
- For my transgressions weep and beat my breast,—
- Thou hadst not thrust thy finger in the fire
- And drawn it out again, before I saw
- The sign that follows Taurus, and was in it.
- O glorious stars, O light impregnated
- With mighty virtue, from which I acknowledge
- All of my genius, whatsoe’er it be,
- With you was born, and hid himself with you,
- He who is father of all mortal life,
- When first I tasted of the Tuscan air;
- And then when grace was freely given to me
- To enter the high wheel which turns you round,
- Your region was allotted unto me.
- To you devoutly at this hour my soul
- Is sighing, that it virtue may acquire
- For the stern pass that draws it to itself.
- “Thou art so near unto the last salvation,”
- Thus Beatrice began, “thou oughtest now
- To have thine eves unclouded and acute;
- And therefore, ere thou enter farther in,
- Look down once more, and see how vast a world
- Thou hast already put beneath thy feet;
- So that thy heart, as jocund as it may,
- Present itself to the triumphant throng
- That comes rejoicing through this rounded ether.”
- I with my sight returned through one and all
- The sevenfold spheres, and I beheld this globe
- Such that I smiled at its ignoble semblance;
- And that opinion I approve as best
- Which doth account it least; and he who thinks
- Of something else may truly be called just.
- I saw the daughter of Latona shining
- Without that shadow, which to me was cause
- That once I had believed her rare and dense.
- The aspect of thy son, Hyperion,
- Here I sustained, and saw how move themselves
- Around and near him Maia and Dione.
- Thence there appeared the temperateness of Jove
- ’Twixt son and father, and to me was clear
- The change that of their whereabout they make;
- And all the seven made manifest to me
- How great they are, and eke how swift they are,
- And how they are in distant habitations.
- The threshing-floor that maketh us so proud,
- To me revolving with the eternal Twins,
- Was all apparent made from hill to harbour!
- Then to the beauteous eyes mine eyes I turned.
- Paradiso: Canto XXIII
- Even as a bird, ’mid the beloved leaves,
- Quiet upon the nest of her sweet brood
- Throughout the night, that hideth all things from us,
- Who, that she may behold their longed-for looks
- And find the food wherewith to nourish them,
- In which, to her, grave labours grateful are,
- Anticipates the time on open spray
- And with an ardent longing waits the sun,
- Gazing intent as soon as breaks the dawn:
- Even thus my Lady standing was, erect
- And vigilant, turned round towards the zone
- Underneath which the sun displays less haste;
- So that beholding her distraught and wistful,
- Such I became as he is who desiring
- For something yearns, and hoping is appeased.
- But brief the space from one When to the other;
- Of my awaiting, say I, and the seeing
- The welkin grow resplendent more and more.
- And Beatrice exclaimed: “Behold the hosts
- Of Christ’s triumphal march, and all the fruit
- Harvested by the rolling of these spheres!”
- It seemed to me her face was all aflame;
- And eyes she had so full of ecstasy
- That I must needs pass on without describing.
- As when in nights serene of the full moon
- Smiles Trivia among the nymphs eternal
- Who paint the firmament through all its gulfs,
- Saw I, above the myriads of lamps,
- A Sun that one and all of them enkindled,
- E’en as our own doth the supernal sights,
- And through the living light transparent shone
- The lucent substance so intensely clear
- Into my sight, that I sustained it not.
- O Beatrice, thou gentle guide and dear!
- To me she said: “What overmasters thee
- A virtue is from which naught shields itself.
- There are the wisdom and the omnipotence
- That oped the thoroughfares ’twixt heaven and earth,
- For which there erst had been so long a yearning.”
- As fire from out a cloud unlocks itself,
- Dilating so it finds not room therein,
- And down, against its nature, falls to earth,
- So did my mind, among those aliments
- Becoming larger, issue from itself,
- And that which it became cannot remember.
- “Open thine eyes, and look at what I am:
- Thou hast beheld such things, that strong enough
- Hast thou become to tolerate my smile.”
- I was as one who still retains the feeling
- Of a forgotten vision, and endeavours
- In vain to bring it back into his mind,
- When I this invitation heard, deserving
- Of so much gratitude, it never fades
- Out of the book that chronicles the past.
- If at this moment sounded all the tongues
- That Polyhymnia and her sisters made
- Most lubrical with their delicious milk,
- To aid me, to a thousandth of the truth
- It would not reach, singing the holy smile
- And how the holy aspect it illumed.
- And therefore, representing Paradise,
- The sacred poem must perforce leap over,
- Even as a man who finds his way cut off;
- But whoso thinketh of the ponderous theme,
- And of the mortal shoulder laden with it,
- Should blame it not, if under this it tremble.
- It is no passage for a little boat
- This which goes cleaving the audacious prow,
- Nor for a pilot who would spare himself.
- “Why doth my face so much enamour thee,
- That to the garden fair thou turnest not,
- Which under the rays of Christ is blossoming?
- There is the Rose in which the Word Divine
- Became incarnate; there the lilies are
- By whose perfume the good way was discovered.”
- Thus Beatrice; and I, who to her counsels
- Was wholly ready, once again betook me
- Unto the battle of the feeble brows.
- As in the sunshine, that unsullied streams
- Through fractured cloud, ere now a meadow of flowers
- Mine eyes with shadow covered o’er have seen,
- So troops of splendours manifold I saw
- Illumined from above with burning rays,
- Beholding not the source of the effulgence.
- O power benignant that dost so imprint them!
- Thou didst exalt thyself to give more scope
- There to mine eyes, that were not strong enough.
- The name of that fair flower I e’er invoke
- Morning and evening utterly enthralled
- My soul to gaze upon the greater fire.
- And when in both mine eyes depicted were
- The glory and greatness of the living star
- Which there excelleth, as it here excelled,
- Athwart the heavens a little torch descended
- Formed in a circle like a coronal,
- And cinctured it, and whirled itself about it.
- Whatever melody most sweetly soundeth
- On earth, and to itself most draws the soul,
- Would seem a cloud that, rent asunder, thunders,
- Compared unto the sounding of that lyre
- Wherewith was crowned the sapphire beautiful,
- Which gives the clearest heaven its sapphire hue.
- “I am Angelic Love, that circle round
- The joy sublime which breathes from out the womb
- That was the hostelry of our Desire;
- And I shall circle, Lady of Heaven, while
- Thou followest thy Son, and mak’st diviner
- The sphere supreme, because thou enterest there.”
- Thus did the circulated melody
- Seal itself up; and all the other lights
- Were making to resound the name of Mary.
- The regal mantle of the volumes all
- Of that world, which most fervid is and living
- With breath of God and with his works and ways,
- Extended over us its inner border,
- So very distant, that the semblance of it
- There where I was not yet appeared to me.
- Therefore mine eyes did not possess the power
- Of following the incoronated flame,
- Which mounted upward near to its own seed.
- And as a little child, that towards its mother
- Stretches its arms, when it the milk has taken,
- Through impulse kindled into outward flame,
- Each of those gleams of whiteness upward reached
- So with its summit, that the deep affection
- They had for Mary was revealed to me.
- Thereafter they remained there in my sight,
- ‘Regina coeli’ singing with such sweetness,
- That ne’er from me has the delight departed.
- O, what exuberance is garnered up
- Within those richest coffers, which had been
- Good husbandmen for sowing here below!
- There they enjoy and live upon the treasure
- Which was acquired while weeping in the exile
- Of Babylon, wherein the gold was left.
- There triumpheth, beneath the exalted Son
- Of God and Mary, in his victory,
- Both with the ancient council and the new,
- He who doth keep the keys of such a glory.
- Paradiso: Canto XXIV
- “O company elect to the great supper
- Of the Lamb benedight, who feedeth you
- So that for ever full is your desire,
- If by the grace of God this man foretaste
- Something of that which falleth from your table,
- Or ever death prescribe to him the time,
- Direct your mind to his immense desire,
- And him somewhat bedew; ye drinking are
- For ever at the fount whence comes his thought.”
- Thus Beatrice; and those souls beatified
- Transformed themselves to spheres on steadfast poles,
- Flaming intensely in the guise of comets.
- And as the wheels in works of horologes
- Revolve so that the first to the beholder
- Motionless seems, and the last one to fly,
- So in like manner did those carols, dancing
- In different measure, of their affluence
- Give me the gauge, as they were swift or slow.
- From that one which I noted of most beauty
- Beheld I issue forth a fire so happy
- That none it left there of a greater brightness;
- And around Beatrice three several times
- It whirled itself with so divine a song,
- My fantasy repeats it not to me;
- Therefore the pen skips, and I write it not,
- Since our imagination for such folds,
- Much more our speech, is of a tint too glaring.
- “O holy sister mine, who us implorest
- With such devotion, by thine ardent love
- Thou dost unbind me from that beautiful sphere!”
- Thereafter, having stopped, the blessed fire
- Unto my Lady did direct its breath,
- Which spake in fashion as I here have said.
- And she: “O light eterne of the great man
- To whom our Lord delivered up the keys
- He carried down of this miraculous joy,
- This one examine on points light and grave,
- As good beseemeth thee, about the Faith
- By means of which thou on the sea didst walk.
- If he love well, and hope well, and believe,
- From thee ’tis hid not; for thou hast thy sight
- There where depicted everything is seen.
- But since this kingdom has made citizens
- By means of the true Faith, to glorify it
- ’Tis well he have the chance to speak thereof.”
- As baccalaureate arms himself, and speaks not
- Until the master doth propose the question,
- To argue it, and not to terminate it,
- So did I arm myself with every reason,
- While she was speaking, that I might be ready
- For such a questioner and such profession.
- “Say, thou good Christian; manifest thyself;
- What is the Faith?” Whereat I raised my brow
- Unto that light wherefrom was this breathed forth.
- Then turned I round to Beatrice, and she
- Prompt signals made to me that I should pour
- The water forth from my internal fountain.
- “May grace, that suffers me to make confession,”
- Began I, “to the great centurion,
- Cause my conceptions all to be explicit!”
- And I continued: “As the truthful pen,
- Father, of thy dear brother wrote of it,
- Who put with thee Rome into the good way,
- Faith is the substance of the things we hope for,
- And evidence of those that are not seen;
- And this appears to me its quiddity.”
- Then heard I: “Very rightly thou perceivest,
- If well thou understandest why he placed it
- With substances and then with evidences.”
- And I thereafterward: “The things profound,
- That here vouchsafe to me their apparition,
- Unto all eyes below are so concealed,
- That they exist there only in belief,
- Upon the which is founded the high hope,
- And hence it takes the nature of a substance.
- And it behoveth us from this belief
- To reason without having other sight,
- And hence it has the nature of evidence.”
- Then heard I: “If whatever is acquired
- Below by doctrine were thus understood,
- No sophist’s subtlety would there find place.”
- Thus was breathed forth from that enkindled love;
- Then added: “Very well has been gone over
- Already of this coin the alloy and weight;
- But tell me if thou hast it in thy purse?”
- And I: “Yes, both so shining and so round
- That in its stamp there is no peradventure.”
- Thereafter issued from the light profound
- That there resplendent was: “This precious jewel,
- Upon the which is every virtue founded,
- Whence hadst thou it?” And I: “The large outpouring
- Of Holy Spirit, which has been diffused
- Upon the ancient parchments and the new,
- A syllogism is, which proved it to me
- With such acuteness, that, compared therewith,
- All demonstration seems to me obtuse.”
- And then I heard: “The ancient and the new
- Postulates, that to thee are so conclusive,
- Why dost thou take them for the word divine?”
- And I: “The proofs, which show the truth to me,
- Are the works subsequent, whereunto Nature
- Ne’er heated iron yet, nor anvil beat.”
- ’Twas answered me: “Say, who assureth thee
- That those works ever were? the thing itself
- That must be proved, nought else to thee affirms it.”
- “Were the world to Christianity converted,”
- I said, “withouten miracles, this one
- Is such, the rest are not its hundredth part;
- Because that poor and fasting thou didst enter
- Into the field to sow there the good plant,
- Which was a vine and has become a thorn!”
- This being finished, the high, holy Court
- Resounded through the spheres, “One God we praise!”
- In melody that there above is chanted.
- And then that Baron, who from branch to branch,
- Examining, had thus conducted me,
- Till the extremest leaves we were approaching,
- Again began: “The Grace that dallying
- Plays with thine intellect thy mouth has opened,
- Up to this point, as it should opened be,
- So that I do approve what forth emerged;
- But now thou must express what thou believest,
- And whence to thy belief it was presented.”
- “O holy father, spirit who beholdest
- What thou believedst so that thou o’ercamest,
- Towards the sepulchre, more youthful feet,”
- Began I, “thou dost wish me in this place
- The form to manifest of my prompt belief,
- And likewise thou the cause thereof demandest.
- And I respond: In one God I believe,
- Sole and eterne, who moveth all the heavens
- With love and with desire, himself unmoved;
- And of such faith not only have I proofs
- Physical and metaphysical, but gives them
- Likewise the truth that from this place rains down
- Through Moses, through the Prophets and the Psalms,
- Through the Evangel, and through you, who wrote
- After the fiery Spirit sanctified you;
- In Persons three eterne believe, and these
- One essence I believe, so one and trine
- They bear conjunction both with ‘sunt’ and ‘est.’
- With the profound condition and divine
- Which now I touch upon, doth stamp my mind
- Ofttimes the doctrine evangelical.
- This the beginning is, this is the spark
- Which afterwards dilates to vivid flame,
- And, like a star in heaven, is sparkling in me.”
- Even as a lord who hears what pleaseth him
- His servant straight embraces, gratulating
- For the good news as soon as he is silent;
- So, giving me its benediction, singing,
- Three times encircled me, when I was silent,
- The apostolic light, at whose command
- I spoken had, in speaking I so pleased him.
- Paradiso: Canto XXV
- If e’er it happen that the Poem Sacred,
- To which both heaven and earth have set their hand,
- So that it many a year hath made me lean,
- O’ercome the cruelty that bars me out
- From the fair sheepfold, where a lamb I slumbered,
- An enemy to the wolves that war upon it,
- With other voice forthwith, with other fleece
- Poet will I return, and at my font
- Baptismal will I take the laurel crown;
- Because into the Faith that maketh known
- All souls to God there entered I, and then
- Peter for her sake thus my brow encircled.
- Thereafterward towards us moved a light
- Out of that band whence issued the first-fruits
- Which of his vicars Christ behind him left,
- And then my Lady, full of ecstasy,
- Said unto me: “Look, look! behold the Baron
- For whom below Galicia is frequented.”
- In the same way as, when a dove alights
- Near his companion, both of them pour forth,
- Circling about and murmuring, their affection,
- So one beheld I by the other grand
- Prince glorified to be with welcome greeted,
- Lauding the food that there above is eaten.
- But when their gratulations were complete,
- Silently ‘coram me’ each one stood still,
- So incandescent it o’ercame my sight.
- Smiling thereafterwards, said Beatrice:
- “Illustrious life, by whom the benefactions
- Of our Basilica have been described,
- Make Hope resound within this altitude;
- Thou knowest as oft thou dost personify it
- As Jesus to the three gave greater clearness.”—
- “Lift up thy head, and make thyself assured;
- For what comes hither from the mortal world
- Must needs be ripened in our radiance.”
- This comfort came to me from the second fire;
- Wherefore mine eyes I lifted to the hills,
- Which bent them down before with too great weight.
- “Since, through his grace, our Emperor wills that thou
- Shouldst find thee face to face, before thy death,
- In the most secret chamber, with his Counts,
- So that, the truth beholden of this court,
- Hope, which below there rightfully enamours,
- Thereby thou strengthen in thyself and others,
- Say what it is, and how is flowering with it
- Thy mind, and say from whence it came to thee.”
- Thus did the second light again continue.
- And the Compassionate, who piloted
- The plumage of my wings in such high flight,
- Did in reply anticipate me thus:
- “No child whatever the Church Militant
- Of greater hope possesses, as is written
- In that Sun which irradiates all our band;
- Therefore it is conceded him from Egypt
- To come into Jerusalem to see,
- Or ever yet his warfare be completed.
- The two remaining points, that not for knowledge
- Have been demanded, but that he report
- How much this virtue unto thee is pleasing,
- To him I leave; for hard he will not find them,
- Nor of self-praise; and let him answer them;
- And may the grace of God in this assist him!”
- As a disciple, who his teacher follows,
- Ready and willing, where he is expert,
- That his proficiency may be displayed,
- “Hope,” said I, “is the certain expectation
- Of future glory, which is the effect
- Of grace divine and merit precedent.
- From many stars this light comes unto me;
- But he instilled it first into my heart
- Who was chief singer unto the chief captain.
- ‘Sperent in te,’ in the high Theody
- He sayeth, ‘those who know thy name;’ and who
- Knoweth it not, if he my faith possess?
- Thou didst instil me, then, with his instilling
- In the Epistle, so that I am full,
- And upon others rain again your rain.”
- While I was speaking, in the living bosom
- Of that combustion quivered an effulgence,
- Sudden and frequent, in the guise of lightning;
- Then breathed: “The love wherewith I am inflamed
- Towards the virtue still which followed me
- Unto the palm and issue of the field,
- Wills that I breathe to thee that thou delight
- In her; and grateful to me is thy telling
- Whatever things Hope promises to thee.”
- And I: “The ancient Scriptures and the new
- The mark establish, and this shows it me,
- Of all the souls whom God hath made his friends.
- Isaiah saith, that each one garmented
- In his own land shall be with twofold garments,
- And his own land is this delightful life.
- Thy brother, too, far more explicitly,
- There where he treateth of the robes of white,
- This revelation manifests to us.”
- And first, and near the ending of these words,
- “Sperent in te” from over us was heard,
- To which responsive answered all the carols.
- Thereafterward a light among them brightened,
- So that, if Cancer one such crystal had,
- Winter would have a month of one sole day.
- And as uprises, goes, and enters the dance
- A winsome maiden, only to do honour
- To the new bride, and not from any failing,
- Even thus did I behold the brightened splendour
- Approach the two, who in a wheel revolved
- As was beseeming to their ardent love.
- Into the song and music there it entered;
- And fixed on them my Lady kept her look,
- Even as a bride silent and motionless.
- “This is the one who lay upon the breast
- Of him our Pelican; and this is he
- To the great office from the cross elected.”
- My Lady thus; but therefore none the more
- Did move her sight from its attentive gaze
- Before or afterward these words of hers.
- Even as a man who gazes, and endeavours
- To see the eclipsing of the sun a little,
- And who, by seeing, sightless doth become,
- So I became before that latest fire,
- While it was said, “Why dost thou daze thyself
- To see a thing which here hath no existence?
- Earth in the earth my body is, and shall be
- With all the others there, until our number
- With the eternal proposition tallies.
- With the two garments in the blessed cloister
- Are the two lights alone that have ascended:
- And this shalt thou take back into your world.”
- And at this utterance the flaming circle
- Grew quiet, with the dulcet intermingling
- Of sound that by the trinal breath was made,
- As to escape from danger or fatigue
- The oars that erst were in the water beaten
- Are all suspended at a whistle’s sound.
- Ah, how much in my mind was I disturbed,
- When I turned round to look on Beatrice,
- That her I could not see, although I was
- Close at her side and in the Happy World!
- Paradiso: Canto XXVI
- While I was doubting for my vision quenched,
- Out of the flame refulgent that had quenched it
- Issued a breathing, that attentive made me,
- Saying: “While thou recoverest the sense
- Of seeing which in me thou hast consumed,
- ’Tis well that speaking thou shouldst compensate it.
- Begin then, and declare to what thy soul
- Is aimed, and count it for a certainty,
- Sight is in thee bewildered and not dead;
- Because the Lady, who through this divine
- Region conducteth thee, has in her look
- The power the hand of Ananias had.”
- I said: “As pleaseth her, or soon or late
- Let the cure come to eyes that portals were
- When she with fire I ever burn with entered.
- The Good, that gives contentment to this Court,
- The Alpha and Omega is of all
- The writing that love reads me low or loud.”
- The selfsame voice, that taken had from me
- The terror of the sudden dazzlement,
- To speak still farther put it in my thought;
- And said: “In verity with finer sieve
- Behoveth thee to sift; thee it behoveth
- To say who aimed thy bow at such a target.”
- And I: “By philosophic arguments,
- And by authority that hence descends,
- Such love must needs imprint itself in me;
- For Good, so far as good, when comprehended
- Doth straight enkindle love, and so much greater
- As more of goodness in itself it holds;
- Then to that Essence (whose is such advantage
- That every good which out of it is found
- Is nothing but a ray of its own light)
- More than elsewhither must the mind be moved
- Of every one, in loving, who discerns
- The truth in which this evidence is founded.
- Such truth he to my intellect reveals
- Who demonstrates to me the primal love
- Of all the sempiternal substances.
- The voice reveals it of the truthful Author,
- Who says to Moses, speaking of Himself,
- ‘I will make all my goodness pass before thee.’
- Thou too revealest it to me, beginning
- The loud Evangel, that proclaims the secret
- Of heaven to earth above all other edict.”
- And I heard say: “By human intellect
- And by authority concordant with it,
- Of all thy loves reserve for God the highest.
- But say again if other cords thou feelest,
- Draw thee towards Him, that thou mayst proclaim
- With how many teeth this love is biting thee.”
- The holy purpose of the Eagle of Christ
- Not latent was, nay, rather I perceived
- Whither he fain would my profession lead.
- Therefore I recommenced: “All of those bites
- Which have the power to turn the heart to God
- Unto my charity have been concurrent.
- The being of the world, and my own being,
- The death which He endured that I may live,
- And that which all the faithful hope, as I do,
- With the forementioned vivid consciousness
- Have drawn me from the sea of love perverse,
- And of the right have placed me on the shore.
- The leaves, wherewith embowered is all the garden
- Of the Eternal Gardener, do I love
- As much as he has granted them of good.”
- As soon as I had ceased, a song most sweet
- Throughout the heaven resounded, and my Lady
- Said with the others, “Holy, holy, holy!”
- And as at some keen light one wakes from sleep
- By reason of the visual spirit that runs
- Unto the splendour passed from coat to coat,
- And he who wakes abhorreth what he sees,
- So all unconscious is his sudden waking,
- Until the judgment cometh to his aid,
- So from before mine eyes did Beatrice
- Chase every mote with radiance of her own,
- That cast its light a thousand miles and more.
- Whence better after than before I saw,
- And in a kind of wonderment I asked
- About a fourth light that I saw with us.
- And said my Lady: “There within those rays
- Gazes upon its Maker the first soul
- That ever the first virtue did create.”
- Even as the bough that downward bends its top
- At transit of the wind, and then is lifted
- By its own virtue, which inclines it upward,
- Likewise did I, the while that she was speaking,
- Being amazed, and then I was made bold
- By a desire to speak wherewith I burned.
- And I began: “O apple, that mature
- Alone hast been produced, O ancient father,
- To whom each wife is daughter and daughter-in-law,
- Devoutly as I can I supplicate thee
- That thou wouldst speak to me; thou seest my wish;
- And I, to hear thee quickly, speak it not.”
- Sometimes an animal, when covered, struggles
- So that his impulse needs must be apparent,
- By reason of the wrappage following it;
- And in like manner the primeval soul
- Made clear to me athwart its covering
- How jubilant it was to give me pleasure.
- Then breathed: “Without thy uttering it to me,
- Thine inclination better I discern
- Than thou whatever thing is surest to thee;
- For I behold it in the truthful mirror,
- That of Himself all things parhelion makes,
- And none makes Him parhelion of itself.
- Thou fain wouldst hear how long ago God placed me
- Within the lofty garden, where this Lady
- Unto so long a stairway thee disposed.
- And how long to mine eyes it was a pleasure,
- And of the great disdain the proper cause,
- And the language that I used and that I made.
- Now, son of mine, the tasting of the tree
- Not in itself was cause of so great exile,
- But solely the o’erstepping of the bounds.
- There, whence thy Lady moved Virgilius,
- Four thousand and three hundred and two circuits
- Made by the sun, this Council I desired;
- And him I saw return to all the lights
- Of his highway nine hundred times and thirty,
- Whilst I upon the earth was tarrying.
- The language that I spake was quite extinct
- Before that in the work interminable
- The people under Nimrod were employed;
- For nevermore result of reasoning
- (Because of human pleasure that doth change,
- Obedient to the heavens) was durable.
- A natural action is it that man speaks;
- But whether thus or thus, doth nature leave
- To your own art, as seemeth best to you.
- Ere I descended to the infernal anguish,
- ‘El’ was on earth the name of the Chief Good,
- From whom comes all the joy that wraps me round
- ‘Eli’ he then was called, and that is proper,
- Because the use of men is like a leaf
- On bough, which goeth and another cometh.
- Upon the mount that highest o’er the wave
- Rises was I, in life or pure or sinful,
- From the first hour to that which is the second,
- As the sun changes quadrant, to the sixth.”
- Paradiso: Canto XXVII
- “Glory be to the Father, to the Son,
- And Holy Ghost!” all Paradise began,
- So that the melody inebriate made me.
- What I beheld seemed unto me a smile
- Of the universe; for my inebriation
- Found entrance through the hearing and the sight.
- O joy! O gladness inexpressible!
- O perfect life of love and peacefulness!
- O riches without hankering secure!
- Before mine eyes were standing the four torches
- Enkindled, and the one that first had come
- Began to make itself more luminous;
- And even such in semblance it became
- As Jupiter would become, if he and Mars
- Were birds, and they should interchange their feathers.
- That Providence, which here distributeth
- Season and service, in the blessed choir
- Had silence upon every side imposed.
- When I heard say: “If I my colour change,
- Marvel not at it; for while I am speaking
- Thou shalt behold all these their colour change.
- He who usurps upon the earth my place,
- My place, my place, which vacant has become
- Before the presence of the Son of God,
- Has of my cemetery made a sewer
- Of blood and stench, whereby the Perverse One,
- Who fell from here, below there is appeased!”
- With the same colour which, through sun adverse,
- Painteth the clouds at evening or at morn,
- Beheld I then the whole of heaven suffused.
- And as a modest woman, who abides
- Sure of herself, and at another’s failing,
- From listening only, timorous becomes,
- Even thus did Beatrice change countenance;
- And I believe in heaven was such eclipse,
- When suffered the supreme Omnipotence;
- Thereafterward proceeded forth his words
- With voice so much transmuted from itself,
- The very countenance was not more changed.
- “The spouse of Christ has never nurtured been
- On blood of mine, of Linus and of Cletus,
- To be made use of in acquest of gold;
- But in acquest of this delightful life
- Sixtus and Pius, Urban and Calixtus,
- After much lamentation, shed their blood.
- Our purpose was not, that on the right hand
- Of our successors should in part be seated
- The Christian folk, in part upon the other;
- Nor that the keys which were to me confided
- Should e’er become the escutcheon on a banner,
- That should wage war on those who are baptized;
- Nor I be made the figure of a seal
- To privileges venal and mendacious,
- Whereat I often redden and flash with fire.
- In garb of shepherds the rapacious wolves
- Are seen from here above o’er all the pastures!
- O wrath of God, why dost thou slumber still?
- To drink our blood the Caorsines and Gascons
- Are making ready. O thou good beginning,
- Unto how vile an end must thou needs fall!
- But the high Providence, that with Scipio
- At Rome the glory of the world defended,
- Will speedily bring aid, as I conceive;
- And thou, my son, who by thy mortal weight
- Shalt down return again, open thy mouth;
- What I conceal not, do not thou conceal.”
- As with its frozen vapours downward falls
- In flakes our atmosphere, what time the horn
- Of the celestial Goat doth touch the sun,
- Upward in such array saw I the ether
- Become, and flaked with the triumphant vapours,
- Which there together with us had remained.
- My sight was following up their semblances,
- And followed till the medium, by excess,
- The passing farther onward took from it;
- Whereat the Lady, who beheld me freed
- From gazing upward, said to me: “Cast down
- Thy sight, and see how far thou art turned round.”
- Since the first time that I had downward looked,
- I saw that I had moved through the whole arc
- Which the first climate makes from midst to end;
- So that I saw the mad track of Ulysses
- Past Gades, and this side, well nigh the shore
- Whereon became Europa a sweet burden.
- And of this threshing-floor the site to me
- Were more unveiled, but the sun was proceeding
- Under my feet, a sign and more removed.
- My mind enamoured, which is dallying
- At all times with my Lady, to bring back
- To her mine eyes was more than ever ardent.
- And if or Art or Nature has made bait
- To catch the eyes and so possess the mind,
- In human flesh or in its portraiture,
- All joined together would appear as nought
- To the divine delight which shone upon me
- When to her smiling face I turned me round.
- The virtue that her look endowed me with
- From the fair nest of Leda tore me forth,
- And up into the swiftest heaven impelled me.
- Its parts exceeding full of life and lofty
- Are all so uniform, I cannot say
- Which Beatrice selected for my place.
- But she, who was aware of my desire,
- Began, the while she smiled so joyously
- That God seemed in her countenance to rejoice:
- “The nature of that motion, which keeps quiet
- The centre and all the rest about it moves,
- From hence begins as from its starting point.
- And in this heaven there is no other Where
- Than in the Mind Divine, wherein is kindled
- The love that turns it, and the power it rains.
- Within a circle light and love embrace it,
- Even as this doth the others, and that precinct
- He who encircles it alone controls.
- Its motion is not by another meted,
- But all the others measured are by this,
- As ten is by the half and by the fifth.
- And in what manner time in such a pot
- May have its roots, and in the rest its leaves,
- Now unto thee can manifest be made.
- O Covetousness, that mortals dost ingulf
- Beneath thee so, that no one hath the power
- Of drawing back his eyes from out thy waves!
- Full fairly blossoms in mankind the will;
- But the uninterrupted rain converts
- Into abortive wildings the true plums.
- Fidelity and innocence are found
- Only in children; afterwards they both
- Take flight or e’er the cheeks with down are covered.
- One, while he prattles still, observes the fasts,
- Who, when his tongue is loosed, forthwith devours
- Whatever food under whatever moon;
- Another, while he prattles, loves and listens
- Unto his mother, who when speech is perfect
- Forthwith desires to see her in her grave.
- Even thus is swarthy made the skin so white
- In its first aspect of the daughter fair
- Of him who brings the morn, and leaves the night.
- Thou, that it may not be a marvel to thee,
- Think that on earth there is no one who governs;
- Whence goes astray the human family.
- Ere January be unwintered wholly
- By the centesimal on earth neglected,
- Shall these supernal circles roar so loud
- The tempest that has been so long awaited
- Shall whirl the poops about where are the prows;
- So that the fleet shall run its course direct,
- And the true fruit shall follow on the flower.”
- Paradiso: Canto XXVIII
- After the truth against the present life
- Of miserable mortals was unfolded
- By her who doth imparadise my mind,
- As in a looking-glass a taper’s flame
- He sees who from behind is lighted by it,
- Before he has it in his sight or thought,
- And turns him round to see if so the glass
- Tell him the truth, and sees that it accords
- Therewith as doth a music with its metre,
- In similar wise my memory recollecteth
- That I did, looking into those fair eyes,
- Of which Love made the springes to ensnare me.
- And as I turned me round, and mine were touched
- By that which is apparent in that volume,
- Whenever on its gyre we gaze intent,
- A point beheld I, that was raying out
- Light so acute, the sight which it enkindles
- Must close perforce before such great acuteness.
- And whatsoever star seems smallest here
- Would seem to be a moon, if placed beside it.
- As one star with another star is placed.
- Perhaps at such a distance as appears
- A halo cincturing the light that paints it,
- When densest is the vapour that sustains it,
- Thus distant round the point a circle of fire
- So swiftly whirled, that it would have surpassed
- Whatever motion soonest girds the world;
- And this was by another circumcinct,
- That by a third, the third then by a fourth,
- By a fifth the fourth, and then by a sixth the fifth;
- The seventh followed thereupon in width
- So ample now, that Juno’s messenger
- Entire would be too narrow to contain it.
- Even so the eighth and ninth; and every one
- More slowly moved, according as it was
- In number distant farther from the first.
- And that one had its flame most crystalline
- From which less distant was the stainless spark,
- I think because more with its truth imbued.
- My Lady, who in my anxiety
- Beheld me much perplexed, said: “From that point
- Dependent is the heaven and nature all.
- Behold that circle most conjoined to it,
- And know thou, that its motion is so swift
- Through burning love whereby it is spurred on.”
- And I to her: “If the world were arranged
- In the order which I see in yonder wheels,
- What’s set before me would have satisfied me;
- But in the world of sense we can perceive
- That evermore the circles are diviner
- As they are from the centre more remote
- Wherefore if my desire is to be ended
- In this miraculous and angelic temple,
- That has for confines only love and light,
- To hear behoves me still how the example
- And the exemplar go not in one fashion,
- Since for myself in vain I contemplate it.”
- “If thine own fingers unto such a knot
- Be insufficient, it is no great wonder,
- So hard hath it become for want of trying.”
- My Lady thus; then said she: “Do thou take
- What I shall tell thee, if thou wouldst be sated,
- And exercise on that thy subtlety.
- The circles corporal are wide and narrow
- According to the more or less of virtue
- Which is distributed through all their parts.
- The greater goodness works the greater weal,
- The greater weal the greater body holds,
- If perfect equally are all its parts.
- Therefore this one which sweeps along with it
- The universe sublime, doth correspond
- Unto the circle which most loves and knows.
- On which account, if thou unto the virtue
- Apply thy measure, not to the appearance
- Of substances that unto thee seem round,
- Thou wilt behold a marvellous agreement,
- Of more to greater, and of less to smaller,
- In every heaven, with its Intelligence.”
- Even as remaineth splendid and serene
- The hemisphere of air, when Boreas
- Is blowing from that cheek where he is mildest,
- Because is purified and resolved the rack
- That erst disturbed it, till the welkin laughs
- With all the beauties of its pageantry;
- Thus did I likewise, after that my Lady
- Had me provided with her clear response,
- And like a star in heaven the truth was seen.
- And soon as to a stop her words had come,
- Not otherwise does iron scintillate
- When molten, than those circles scintillated.
- Their coruscation all the sparks repeated,
- And they so many were, their number makes
- More millions than the doubling of the chess.
- I heard them sing hosanna choir by choir
- To the fixed point which holds them at the ‘Ubi,’
- And ever will, where they have ever been.
- And she, who saw the dubious meditations
- Within my mind, “The primal circles,” said,
- “Have shown thee Seraphim and Cherubim.
- Thus rapidly they follow their own bonds,
- To be as like the point as most they can,
- And can as far as they are high in vision.
- Those other Loves, that round about them go,
- Thrones of the countenance divine are called,
- Because they terminate the primal Triad.
- And thou shouldst know that they all have delight
- As much as their own vision penetrates
- The Truth, in which all intellect finds rest.
- From this it may be seen how blessedness
- Is founded in the faculty which sees,
- And not in that which loves, and follows next;
- And of this seeing merit is the measure,
- Which is brought forth by grace, and by good will;
- Thus on from grade to grade doth it proceed.
- The second Triad, which is germinating
- In such wise in this sempiternal spring,
- That no nocturnal Aries despoils,
- Perpetually hosanna warbles forth
- With threefold melody, that sounds in three
- Orders of joy, with which it is intrined.
- The three Divine are in this hierarchy,
- First the Dominions, and the Virtues next;
- And the third order is that of the Powers.
- Then in the dances twain penultimate
- The Principalities and Archangels wheel;
- The last is wholly of angelic sports.
- These orders upward all of them are gazing,
- And downward so prevail, that unto God
- They all attracted are and all attract.
- And Dionysius with so great desire
- To contemplate these Orders set himself,
- He named them and distinguished them as I do.
- But Gregory afterwards dissented from him;
- Wherefore, as soon as he unclosed his eyes
- Within this heaven, he at himself did smile.
- And if so much of secret truth a mortal
- Proffered on earth, I would not have thee marvel,
- For he who saw it here revealed it to him,
- With much more of the truth about these circles.”
- Paradiso: Canto XXIX
- At what time both the children of Latona,
- Surmounted by the Ram and by the Scales,
- Together make a zone of the horizon,
- As long as from the time the zenith holds them
- In equipoise, till from that girdle both
- Changing their hemisphere disturb the balance,
- So long, her face depicted with a smile,
- Did Beatrice keep silence while she gazed
- Fixedly at the point which had o’ercome me.
- Then she began: “I say, and I ask not
- What thou dost wish to hear, for I have seen it
- Where centres every When and every ‘Ubi.’
- Not to acquire some good unto himself,
- Which is impossible, but that his splendour
- In its resplendency may say, ‘Subsisto,’
- In his eternity outside of time,
- Outside all other limits, as it pleased him,
- Into new Loves the Eternal Love unfolded.
- Nor as if torpid did he lie before;
- For neither after nor before proceeded
- The going forth of God upon these waters.
- Matter and Form unmingled and conjoined
- Came into being that had no defect,
- E’en as three arrows from a three-stringed bow.
- And as in glass, in amber, or in crystal
- A sunbeam flashes so, that from its coming
- To its full being is no interval,
- So from its Lord did the triform effect
- Ray forth into its being all together,
- Without discrimination of beginning.
- Order was con-created and constructed
- In substances, and summit of the world
- Were those wherein the pure act was produced.
- Pure potentiality held the lowest part;
- Midway bound potentiality with act
- Such bond that it shall never be unbound.
- Jerome has written unto you of angels
- Created a long lapse of centuries
- Or ever yet the other world was made;
- But written is this truth in many places
- By writers of the Holy Ghost, and thou
- Shalt see it, if thou lookest well thereat.
- And even reason seeth it somewhat,
- For it would not concede that for so long
- Could be the motors without their perfection.
- Now dost thou know both where and when these Loves
- Created were, and how; so that extinct
- In thy desire already are three fires.
- Nor could one reach, in counting, unto twenty
- So swiftly, as a portion of these angels
- Disturbed the subject of your elements.
- The rest remained, and they began this art
- Which thou discernest, with so great delight
- That never from their circling do they cease.
- The occasion of the fall was the accursed
- Presumption of that One, whom thou hast seen
- By all the burden of the world constrained.
- Those whom thou here beholdest modest were
- To recognise themselves as of that goodness
- Which made them apt for so much understanding;
- On which account their vision was exalted
- By the enlightening grace and their own merit,
- So that they have a full and steadfast will.
- I would not have thee doubt, but certain be,
- ’Tis meritorious to receive this grace,
- According as the affection opens to it.
- Now round about in this consistory
- Much mayst thou contemplate, if these my words
- Be gathered up, without all further aid.
- But since upon the earth, throughout your schools,
- They teach that such is the angelic nature
- That it doth hear, and recollect, and will,
- More will I say, that thou mayst see unmixed
- The truth that is confounded there below,
- Equivocating in such like prelections.
- These substances, since in God’s countenance
- They jocund were, turned not away their sight
- From that wherefrom not anything is hidden;
- Hence they have not their vision intercepted
- By object new, and hence they do not need
- To recollect, through interrupted thought.
- So that below, not sleeping, people dream,
- Believing they speak truth, and not believing;
- And in the last is greater sin and shame.
- Below you do not journey by one path
- Philosophising; so transporteth you
- Love of appearance and the thought thereof.
- And even this above here is endured
- With less disdain, than when is set aside
- The Holy Writ, or when it is distorted.
- They think not there how much of blood it costs
- To sow it in the world, and how he pleases
- Who in humility keeps close to it.
- Each striveth for appearance, and doth make
- His own inventions; and these treated are
- By preachers, and the Evangel holds its peace.
- One sayeth that the moon did backward turn,
- In the Passion of Christ, and interpose herself
- So that the sunlight reached not down below;
- And lies; for of its own accord the light
- Hid itself; whence to Spaniards and to Indians,
- As to the Jews, did such eclipse respond.
- Florence has not so many Lapi and Bindi
- As fables such as these, that every year
- Are shouted from the pulpit back and forth,
- In such wise that the lambs, who do not know,
- Come back from pasture fed upon the wind,
- And not to see the harm doth not excuse them.
- Christ did not to his first disciples say,
- ‘Go forth, and to the world preach idle tales,’
- But unto them a true foundation gave;
- And this so loudly sounded from their lips,
- That, in the warfare to enkindle Faith,
- They made of the Evangel shields and lances.
- Now men go forth with jests and drolleries
- To preach, and if but well the people laugh,
- The hood puffs out, and nothing more is asked.
- But in the cowl there nestles such a bird,
- That, if the common people were to see it,
- They would perceive what pardons they confide in,
- For which so great on earth has grown the folly,
- That, without proof of any testimony,
- To each indulgence they would flock together.
- By this Saint Anthony his pig doth fatten,
- And many others, who are worse than pigs,
- Paying in money without mark of coinage.
- But since we have digressed abundantly,
- Turn back thine eyes forthwith to the right path,
- So that the way be shortened with the time.
- This nature doth so multiply itself
- In numbers, that there never yet was speech
- Nor mortal fancy that can go so far.
- And if thou notest that which is revealed
- By Daniel, thou wilt see that in his thousands
- Number determinate is kept concealed.
- The primal light, that all irradiates it,
- By modes as many is received therein,
- As are the splendours wherewith it is mated.
- Hence, inasmuch as on the act conceptive
- The affection followeth, of love the sweetness
- Therein diversely fervid is or tepid.
- The height behold now and the amplitude
- Of the eternal power, since it hath made
- Itself so many mirrors, where ’tis broken,
- One in itself remaining as before.”
- Paradiso: Canto XXX
- Perchance six thousand miles remote from us
- Is glowing the sixth hour, and now this world
- Inclines its shadow almost to a level,
- When the mid-heaven begins to make itself
- So deep to us, that here and there a star
- Ceases to shine so far down as this depth,
- And as advances bright exceedingly
- The handmaid of the sun, the heaven is closed
- Light after light to the most beautiful;
- Not otherwise the Triumph, which for ever
- Plays round about the point that vanquished me,
- Seeming enclosed by what itself encloses,
- Little by little from my vision faded;
- Whereat to turn mine eyes on Beatrice
- My seeing nothing and my love constrained me.
- If what has hitherto been said of her
- Were all concluded in a single praise,
- Scant would it be to serve the present turn.
- Not only does the beauty I beheld
- Transcend ourselves, but truly I believe
- Its Maker only may enjoy it all.
- Vanquished do I confess me by this passage
- More than by problem of his theme was ever
- O’ercome the comic or the tragic poet;
- For as the sun the sight that trembles most,
- Even so the memory of that sweet smile
- My mind depriveth of its very self.
- From the first day that I beheld her face
- In this life, to the moment of this look,
- The sequence of my song has ne’er been severed;
- But now perforce this sequence must desist
- From following her beauty with my verse,
- As every artist at his uttermost.
- Such as I leave her to a greater fame
- Than any of my trumpet, which is bringing
- Its arduous matter to a final close,
- With voice and gesture of a perfect leader
- She recommenced: “We from the greatest body
- Have issued to the heaven that is pure light;
- Light intellectual replete with love,
- Love of true good replete with ecstasy,
- Ecstasy that transcendeth every sweetness.
- Here shalt thou see the one host and the other
- Of Paradise, and one in the same aspects
- Which at the final judgment thou shalt see.”
- Even as a sudden lightning that disperses
- The visual spirits, so that it deprives
- The eye of impress from the strongest objects,
- Thus round about me flashed a living light,
- And left me swathed around with such a veil
- Of its effulgence, that I nothing saw.
- “Ever the Love which quieteth this heaven
- Welcomes into itself with such salute,
- To make the candle ready for its flame.”
- No sooner had within me these brief words
- An entrance found, than I perceived myself
- To be uplifted over my own power,
- And I with vision new rekindled me,
- Such that no light whatever is so pure
- But that mine eyes were fortified against it.
- And light I saw in fashion of a river
- Fulvid with its effulgence, ’twixt two banks
- Depicted with an admirable Spring.
- Out of this river issued living sparks,
- And on all sides sank down into the flowers,
- Like unto rubies that are set in gold;
- And then, as if inebriate with the odours,
- They plunged again into the wondrous torrent,
- And as one entered issued forth another.
- “The high desire, that now inflames and moves thee
- To have intelligence of what thou seest,
- Pleaseth me all the more, the more it swells.
- But of this water it behoves thee drink
- Before so great a thirst in thee be slaked.”
- Thus said to me the sunshine of mine eyes;
- And added: “The river and the topazes
- Going in and out, and the laughing of the herbage,
- Are of their truth foreshadowing prefaces;
- Not that these things are difficult in themselves,
- But the deficiency is on thy side,
- For yet thou hast not vision so exalted.”
- There is no babe that leaps so suddenly
- With face towards the milk, if he awake
- Much later than his usual custom is,
- As I did, that I might make better mirrors
- Still of mine eyes, down stooping to the wave
- Which flows that we therein be better made.
- And even as the penthouse of mine eyelids
- Drank of it, it forthwith appeared to me
- Out of its length to be transformed to round.
- Then as a folk who have been under masks
- Seem other than before, if they divest
- The semblance not their own they disappeared in,
- Thus into greater pomp were changed for me
- The flowerets and the sparks, so that I saw
- Both of the Courts of Heaven made manifest.
- O splendour of God! by means of which I saw
- The lofty triumph of the realm veracious,
- Give me the power to say how it I saw!
- There is a light above, which visible
- Makes the Creator unto every creature,
- Who only in beholding Him has peace,
- And it expands itself in circular form
- To such extent, that its circumference
- Would be too large a girdle for the sun.
- The semblance of it is all made of rays
- Reflected from the top of Primal Motion,
- Which takes therefrom vitality and power.
- And as a hill in water at its base
- Mirrors itself, as if to see its beauty
- When affluent most in verdure and in flowers,
- So, ranged aloft all round about the light,
- Mirrored I saw in more ranks than a thousand
- All who above there have from us returned.
- And if the lowest row collect within it
- So great a light, how vast the amplitude
- Is of this Rose in its extremest leaves!
- My vision in the vastness and the height
- Lost not itself, but comprehended all
- The quantity and quality of that gladness.
- There near and far nor add nor take away;
- For there where God immediately doth govern,
- The natural law in naught is relevant.
- Into the yellow of the Rose Eternal
- That spreads, and multiplies, and breathes an odour
- Of praise unto the ever-vernal Sun,
- As one who silent is and fain would speak,
- Me Beatrice drew on, and said: “Behold
- Of the white stoles how vast the convent is!
- Behold how vast the circuit of our city!
- Behold our seats so filled to overflowing,
- That here henceforward are few people wanting!
- On that great throne whereon thine eyes are fixed
- For the crown’s sake already placed upon it,
- Before thou suppest at this wedding feast
- Shall sit the soul (that is to be Augustus
- On earth) of noble Henry, who shall come
- To redress Italy ere she be ready.
- Blind covetousness, that casts its spell upon you,
- Has made you like unto the little child,
- Who dies of hunger and drives off the nurse.
- And in the sacred forum then shall be
- A Prefect such, that openly or covert
- On the same road he will not walk with him.
- But long of God he will not be endured
- In holy office; he shall be thrust down
- Where Simon Magus is for his deserts,
- And make him of Alagna lower go!”
- Paradiso: Canto XXXI
- In fashion then as of a snow-white rose
- Displayed itself to me the saintly host,
- Whom Christ in his own blood had made his bride,
- But the other host, that flying sees and sings
- The glory of Him who doth enamour it,
- And the goodness that created it so noble,
- Even as a swarm of bees, that sinks in flowers
- One moment, and the next returns again
- To where its labour is to sweetness turned,
- Sank into the great flower, that is adorned
- With leaves so many, and thence reascended
- To where its love abideth evermore.
- Their faces had they all of living flame,
- And wings of gold, and all the rest so white
- No snow unto that limit doth attain.
- From bench to bench, into the flower descending,
- They carried something of the peace and ardour
- Which by the fanning of their flanks they won.
- Nor did the interposing ’twixt the flower
- And what was o’er it of such plenitude
- Of flying shapes impede the sight and splendour;
- Because the light divine so penetrates
- The universe, according to its merit,
- That naught can be an obstacle against it.
- This realm secure and full of gladsomeness,
- Crowded with ancient people and with modern,
- Unto one mark had all its look and love.
- O Trinal Light, that in a single star
- Sparkling upon their sight so satisfies them,
- Look down upon our tempest here below!
- If the barbarians, coming from some region
- That every day by Helice is covered,
- Revolving with her son whom she delights in,
- Beholding Rome and all her noble works,
- Were wonder-struck, what time the Lateran
- Above all mortal things was eminent,—
- I who to the divine had from the human,
- From time unto eternity, had come,
- From Florence to a people just and sane,
- With what amazement must I have been filled!
- Truly between this and the joy, it was
- My pleasure not to hear, and to be mute.
- And as a pilgrim who delighteth him
- In gazing round the temple of his vow,
- And hopes some day to retell how it was,
- So through the living light my way pursuing
- Directed I mine eyes o’er all the ranks,
- Now up, now down, and now all round about.
- Faces I saw of charity persuasive,
- Embellished by His light and their own smile,
- And attitudes adorned with every grace.
- The general form of Paradise already
- My glance had comprehended as a whole,
- In no part hitherto remaining fixed,
- And round I turned me with rekindled wish
- My Lady to interrogate of things
- Concerning which my mind was in suspense.
- One thing I meant, another answered me;
- I thought I should see Beatrice, and saw
- An Old Man habited like the glorious people.
- O’erflowing was he in his eyes and cheeks
- With joy benign, in attitude of pity
- As to a tender father is becoming.
- And “She, where is she?” instantly I said;
- Whence he: “To put an end to thy desire,
- Me Beatrice hath sent from mine own place.
- And if thou lookest up to the third round
- Of the first rank, again shalt thou behold her
- Upon the throne her merits have assigned her.”
- Without reply I lifted up mine eyes,
- And saw her, as she made herself a crown
- Reflecting from herself the eternal rays.
- Not from that region which the highest thunders
- Is any mortal eye so far removed,
- In whatsoever sea it deepest sinks,
- As there from Beatrice my sight; but this
- Was nothing unto me; because her image
- Descended not to me by medium blurred.
- “O Lady, thou in whom my hope is strong,
- And who for my salvation didst endure
- In Hell to leave the imprint of thy feet,
- Of whatsoever things I have beheld,
- As coming from thy power and from thy goodness
- I recognise the virtue and the grace.
- Thou from a slave hast brought me unto freedom,
- By all those ways, by all the expedients,
- Whereby thou hadst the power of doing it.
- Preserve towards me thy magnificence,
- So that this soul of mine, which thou hast healed,
- Pleasing to thee be loosened from the body.”
- Thus I implored; and she, so far away,
- Smiled, as it seemed, and looked once more at me;
- Then unto the eternal fountain turned.
- And said the Old Man holy: “That thou mayst
- Accomplish perfectly thy journeying,
- Whereunto prayer and holy love have sent me,
- Fly with thine eyes all round about this garden;
- For seeing it will discipline thy sight
- Farther to mount along the ray divine.
- And she, the Queen of Heaven, for whom I burn
- Wholly with love, will grant us every grace,
- Because that I her faithful Bernard am.”
- As he who peradventure from Croatia
- Cometh to gaze at our Veronica,
- Who through its ancient fame is never sated,
- But says in thought, the while it is displayed,
- “My Lord, Christ Jesus, God of very God,
- Now was your semblance made like unto this?”
- Even such was I while gazing at the living
- Charity of the man, who in this world
- By contemplation tasted of that peace.
- “Thou son of grace, this jocund life,” began he,
- “Will not be known to thee by keeping ever
- Thine eyes below here on the lowest place;
- But mark the circles to the most remote,
- Until thou shalt behold enthroned the Queen
- To whom this realm is subject and devoted.”
- I lifted up mine eyes, and as at morn
- The oriental part of the horizon
- Surpasses that wherein the sun goes down,
- Thus, as if going with mine eyes from vale
- To mount, I saw a part in the remoteness
- Surpass in splendour all the other front.
- And even as there where we await the pole
- That Phaeton drove badly, blazes more
- The light, and is on either side diminished,
- So likewise that pacific oriflamme
- Gleamed brightest in the centre, and each side
- In equal measure did the flame abate.
- And at that centre, with their wings expanded,
- More than a thousand jubilant Angels saw I,
- Each differing in effulgence and in kind.
- I saw there at their sports and at their songs
- A beauty smiling, which the gladness was
- Within the eyes of all the other saints;
- And if I had in speaking as much wealth
- As in imagining, I should not dare
- To attempt the smallest part of its delight.
- Bernard, as soon as he beheld mine eyes
- Fixed and intent upon its fervid fervour,
- His own with such affection turned to her
- That it made mine more ardent to behold.
- Paradiso: Canto XXXII
- Absorbed in his delight, that contemplator
- Assumed the willing office of a teacher,
- And gave beginning to these holy words:
- “The wound that Mary closed up and anointed,
- She at her feet who is so beautiful,
- She is the one who opened it and pierced it.
- Within that order which the third seats make
- Is seated Rachel, lower than the other,
- With Beatrice, in manner as thou seest.
- Sarah, Rebecca, Judith, and her who was
- Ancestress of the Singer, who for dole
- Of the misdeed said, ‘Miserere mei,’
- Canst thou behold from seat to seat descending
- Down in gradation, as with each one’s name
- I through the Rose go down from leaf to leaf.
- And downward from the seventh row, even as
- Above the same, succeed the Hebrew women,
- Dividing all the tresses of the flower;
- Because, according to the view which Faith
- In Christ had taken, these are the partition
- By which the sacred stairways are divided.
- Upon this side, where perfect is the flower
- With each one of its petals, seated are
- Those who believed in Christ who was to come.
- Upon the other side, where intersected
- With vacant spaces are the semicircles,
- Are those who looked to Christ already come.
- And as, upon this side, the glorious seat
- Of the Lady of Heaven, and the other seats
- Below it, such a great division make,
- So opposite doth that of the great John,
- Who, ever holy, desert and martyrdom
- Endured, and afterwards two years in Hell.
- And under him thus to divide were chosen
- Francis, and Benedict, and Augustine,
- And down to us the rest from round to round.
- Behold now the high providence divine;
- For one and other aspect of the Faith
- In equal measure shall this garden fill.
- And know that downward from that rank which cleaves
- Midway the sequence of the two divisions,
- Not by their proper merit are they seated;
- But by another’s under fixed conditions;
- For these are spirits one and all assoiled
- Before they any true election had.
- Well canst thou recognise it in their faces,
- And also in their voices puerile,
- If thou regard them well and hearken to them.
- Now doubtest thou, and doubting thou art silent;
- But I will loosen for thee the strong bond
- In which thy subtile fancies hold thee fast.
- Within the amplitude of this domain
- No casual point can possibly find place,
- No more than sadness can, or thirst, or hunger;
- For by eternal law has been established
- Whatever thou beholdest, so that closely
- The ring is fitted to the finger here.
- And therefore are these people, festinate
- Unto true life, not ‘sine causa’ here
- More and less excellent among themselves.
- The King, by means of whom this realm reposes
- In so great love and in so great delight
- That no will ventureth to ask for more,
- In his own joyous aspect every mind
- Creating, at his pleasure dowers with grace
- Diversely; and let here the effect suffice.
- And this is clearly and expressly noted
- For you in Holy Scripture, in those twins
- Who in their mother had their anger roused.
- According to the colour of the hair,
- Therefore, with such a grace the light supreme
- Consenteth that they worthily be crowned.
- Without, then, any merit of their deeds,
- Stationed are they in different gradations,
- Differing only in their first acuteness.
- ’Tis true that in the early centuries,
- With innocence, to work out their salvation
- Sufficient was the faith of parents only.
- After the earlier ages were completed,
- Behoved it that the males by circumcision
- Unto their innocent wings should virtue add;
- But after that the time of grace had come
- Without the baptism absolute of Christ,
- Such innocence below there was retained.
- Look now into the face that unto Christ
- Hath most resemblance; for its brightness only
- Is able to prepare thee to see Christ.”
- On her did I behold so great a gladness
- Rain down, borne onward in the holy minds
- Created through that altitude to fly,
- That whatsoever I had seen before
- Did not suspend me in such admiration,
- Nor show me such similitude of God.
- And the same Love that first descended there,
- “Ave Maria, gratia plena,” singing,
- In front of her his wings expanded wide.
- Unto the canticle divine responded
- From every part the court beatified,
- So that each sight became serener for it.
- “O holy father, who for me endurest
- To be below here, leaving the sweet place
- In which thou sittest by eternal lot,
- Who is the Angel that with so much joy
- Into the eyes is looking of our Queen,
- Enamoured so that he seems made of fire?”
- Thus I again recourse had to the teaching
- Of that one who delighted him in Mary
- As doth the star of morning in the sun.
- And he to me: “Such gallantry and grace
- As there can be in Angel and in soul,
- All is in him; and thus we fain would have it;
- Because he is the one who bore the palm
- Down unto Mary, when the Son of God
- To take our burden on himself decreed.
- But now come onward with thine eyes, as I
- Speaking shall go, and note the great patricians
- Of this most just and merciful of empires.
- Those two that sit above there most enrapture
- As being very near unto Augusta,
- Are as it were the two roots of this Rose.
- He who upon the left is near her placed
- The father is, by whose audacious taste
- The human species so much bitter tastes.
- Upon the right thou seest that ancient father
- Of Holy Church, into whose keeping Christ
- The keys committed of this lovely flower.
- And he who all the evil days beheld,
- Before his death, of her the beauteous bride
- Who with the spear and with the nails was won,
- Beside him sits, and by the other rests
- That leader under whom on manna lived
- The people ingrate, fickle, and stiff-necked.
- Opposite Peter seest thou Anna seated,
- So well content to look upon her daughter,
- Her eyes she moves not while she sings Hosanna.
- And opposite the eldest household father
- Lucia sits, she who thy Lady moved
- When to rush downward thou didst bend thy brows.
- But since the moments of thy vision fly,
- Here will we make full stop, as a good tailor
- Who makes the gown according to his cloth,
- And unto the first Love will turn our eyes,
- That looking upon Him thou penetrate
- As far as possible through his effulgence.
- Truly, lest peradventure thou recede,
- Moving thy wings believing to advance,
- By prayer behoves it that grace be obtained;
- Grace from that one who has the power to aid thee;
- And thou shalt follow me with thy affection
- That from my words thy heart turn not aside.”
- And he began this holy orison.
- Paradiso: Canto XXXIII
- “Thou Virgin Mother, daughter of thy Son,
- Humble and high beyond all other creature,
- The limit fixed of the eternal counsel,
- Thou art the one who such nobility
- To human nature gave, that its Creator
- Did not disdain to make himself its creature.
- Within thy womb rekindled was the love,
- By heat of which in the eternal peace
- After such wise this flower has germinated.
- Here unto us thou art a noonday torch
- Of charity, and below there among mortals
- Thou art the living fountain-head of hope.
- Lady, thou art so great, and so prevailing,
- That he who wishes grace, nor runs to thee,
- His aspirations without wings would fly.
- Not only thy benignity gives succour
- To him who asketh it, but oftentimes
- Forerunneth of its own accord the asking.
- In thee compassion is, in thee is pity,
- In thee magnificence; in thee unites
- Whate’er of goodness is in any creature.
- Now doth this man, who from the lowest depth
- Of the universe as far as here has seen
- One after one the spiritual lives,
- Supplicate thee through grace for so much power
- That with his eyes he may uplift himself
- Higher towards the uttermost salvation.
- And I, who never burned for my own seeing
- More than I do for his, all of my prayers
- Proffer to thee, and pray they come not short,
- That thou wouldst scatter from him every cloud
- Of his mortality so with thy prayers,
- That the Chief Pleasure be to him displayed.
- Still farther do I pray thee, Queen, who canst
- Whate’er thou wilt, that sound thou mayst preserve
- After so great a vision his affections.
- Let thy protection conquer human movements;
- See Beatrice and all the blessed ones
- My prayers to second clasp their hands to thee!”
- The eyes beloved and revered of God,
- Fastened upon the speaker, showed to us
- How grateful unto her are prayers devout;
- Then unto the Eternal Light they turned,
- On which it is not credible could be
- By any creature bent an eye so clear.
- And I, who to the end of all desires
- Was now approaching, even as I ought
- The ardour of desire within me ended.
- Bernard was beckoning unto me, and smiling,
- That I should upward look; but I already
- Was of my own accord such as he wished;
- Because my sight, becoming purified,
- Was entering more and more into the ray
- Of the High Light which of itself is true.
- From that time forward what I saw was greater
- Than our discourse, that to such vision yields,
- And yields the memory unto such excess.
- Even as he is who seeth in a dream,
- And after dreaming the imprinted passion
- Remains, and to his mind the rest returns not,
- Even such am I, for almost utterly
- Ceases my vision, and distilleth yet
- Within my heart the sweetness born of it;
- Even thus the snow is in the sun unsealed,
- Even thus upon the wind in the light leaves
- Were the soothsayings of the Sibyl lost.
- O Light Supreme, that dost so far uplift thee
- From the conceits of mortals, to my mind
- Of what thou didst appear re-lend a little,
- And make my tongue of so great puissance,
- That but a single sparkle of thy glory
- It may bequeath unto the future people;
- For by returning to my memory somewhat,
- And by a little sounding in these verses,
- More of thy victory shall be conceived!
- I think the keenness of the living ray
- Which I endured would have bewildered me,
- If but mine eyes had been averted from it;
- And I remember that I was more bold
- On this account to bear, so that I joined
- My aspect with the Glory Infinite.
- O grace abundant, by which I presumed
- To fix my sight upon the Light Eternal,
- So that the seeing I consumed therein!
- I saw that in its depth far down is lying
- Bound up with love together in one volume,
- What through the universe in leaves is scattered;
- Substance, and accident, and their operations,
- All interfused together in such wise
- That what I speak of is one simple light.
- The universal fashion of this knot
- Methinks I saw, since more abundantly
- In saying this I feel that I rejoice.
- One moment is more lethargy to me,
- Than five and twenty centuries to the emprise
- That startled Neptune with the shade of Argo!
- My mind in this wise wholly in suspense,
- Steadfast, immovable, attentive gazed,
- And evermore with gazing grew enkindled.
- In presence of that light one such becomes,
- That to withdraw therefrom for other prospect
- It is impossible he e’er consent;
- Because the good, which object is of will,
- Is gathered all in this, and out of it
- That is defective which is perfect there.
- Shorter henceforward will my language fall
- Of what I yet remember, than an infant’s
- Who still his tongue doth moisten at the breast.
- Not because more than one unmingled semblance
- Was in the living light on which I looked,
- For it is always what it was before;
- But through the sight, that fortified itself
- In me by looking, one appearance only
- To me was ever changing as I changed.
- Within the deep and luminous subsistence
- Of the High Light appeared to me three circles,
- Of threefold colour and of one dimension,
- And by the second seemed the first reflected
- As Iris is by Iris, and the third
- Seemed fire that equally from both is breathed.
- O how all speech is feeble and falls short
- Of my conceit, and this to what I saw
- Is such, ’tis not enough to call it little!
- O Light Eterne, sole in thyself that dwellest,
- Sole knowest thyself, and, known unto thyself
- And knowing, lovest and smilest on thyself!
- That circulation, which being thus conceived
- Appeared in thee as a reflected light,
- When somewhat contemplated by mine eyes,
- Within itself, of its own very colour
- Seemed to me painted with our effigy,
- Wherefore my sight was all absorbed therein.
- As the geometrician, who endeavours
- To square the circle, and discovers not,
- By taking thought, the principle he wants,
- Even such was I at that new apparition;
- I wished to see how the image to the circle
- Conformed itself, and how it there finds place;
- But my own wings were not enough for this,
- Had it not been that then my mind there smote
- A flash of lightning, wherein came its wish.
- Here vigour failed the lofty fantasy:
- But now was turning my desire and will,
- Even as a wheel that equally is moved,
- The Love which moves the sun and the other stars.
- APPENDIX
- SIX SONNETS ON DANTE’S DIVINE COMEDY BY HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW
- (1807-1882)
- I
- Oft have I seen at some cathedral door
- A laborer, pausing in the dust and heat,
- Lay down his burden, and with reverent feet
- Enter, and cross himself, and on the floor
- Kneel to repeat his paternoster o’er;
- Far off the noises of the world retreat;
- The loud vociferations of the street
- Become an undistinguishable roar.
- So, as I enter here from day to day,
- And leave my burden at this minster gate,
- Kneeling in prayer, and not ashamed to pray,
- The tumult of the time disconsolate
- To inarticulate murmurs dies away,
- While the eternal ages watch and wait.
- II
- How strange the sculptures that adorn these towers!
- This crowd of statues, in whose folded sleeves
- Birds build their nests; while canopied with leaves
- Parvis and portal bloom like trellised bowers,
- And the vast minster seems a cross of flowers!
- But fiends and dragons on the gargoyled eaves
- Watch the dead Christ between the living thieves,
- And, underneath, the traitor Judas lowers!
- Ah! from what agonies of heart and brain,
- What exultations trampling on despair,
- What tenderness, what tears, what hate of wrong,
- What passionate outcry of a soul in pain,
- Uprose this poem of the earth and air,
- This mediaeval miracle of song!
- III
- I enter, and I see thee in the gloom
- Of the long aisles, O poet saturnine!
- And strive to make my steps keep pace with thine.
- The air is filled with some unknown perfume;
- The congregation of the dead make room
- For thee to pass; the votive tapers shine;
- Like rooks that haunt Ravenna’s groves of pine,
- The hovering echoes fly from tomb to tomb.
- From the confessionals I hear arise
- Rehearsals of forgotten tragedies,
- And lamentations from the crypts below
- And then a voice celestial that begins
- With the pathetic words, “Although your sins
- As scarlet be,” and ends with “as the snow.”
- IV
- With snow-white veil, and garments as of flame,
- She stands before thee, who so long ago
- Filled thy young heart with passion and the woe
- From which thy song in all its splendors came;
- And while with stern rebuke she speaks thy name,
- The ice about thy heart melts as the snow
- On mountain heights, and in swift overflow
- Comes gushing from thy lips in sobs of shame.
- Thou makest full confession; and a gleam
- As of the dawn on some dark forest cast,
- Seems on thy lifted forehead to increase;
- Lethe and Eunoe—the remembered dream
- And the forgotten sorrow—bring at last
- That perfect pardon which is perfect peace.
- V
- I Lift mine eyes, and all the windows blaze
- With forms of saints and holy men who died,
- Here martyred and hereafter glorified;
- And the great Rose upon its leaves displays
- Christ’s Triumph, and the angelic roundelays,
- With splendor upon splendor multiplied;
- And Beatrice again at Dante’s side
- No more rebukes, but smiles her words of praise.
- And then the organ sounds, and unseen choirs
- Sing the old Latin hymns of peace and love
- And benedictions of the Holy Ghost;
- And the melodious bells among the spires
- O’er all the house-tops and through heaven above
- Proclaim the elevation of the Host!
- VI
- O star of morning and of liberty!
- O bringer of the light, whose splendor shines
- Above the darkness of the Apennines,
- Forerunner of the day that is to be!
- The voices of the city and the sea,
- The voices of the mountains and the pines,
- Repeat thy song, till the familiar lines
- Are footpaths for the thought of Italy!
- Thy fame is blown abroad from all the heights,
- Through all the nations; and a sound is heard,
- As of a mighty wind, and men devout,
- Strangers of Rome, and the new proselytes,
- In their own language hear thy wondrous word,
- And many are amazed and many doubt.
- *** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DIVINE COMEDY ***
- ***** This file should be named 1004-0.txt or 1004-0.zip *****
- This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- https://www.gutenberg.org/1/0/0/1004/
- Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
- be renamed.
- Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
- law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
- so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
- United States without permission and without paying copyright
- royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
- of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
- concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
- and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
- the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
- of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
- copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
- easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
- of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
- Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
- do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
- by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
- license, especially commercial redistribution.
- START: FULL LICENSE
- THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
- PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
- To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
- distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
- (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
- Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
- Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
- and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
- (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
- the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
- destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
- possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
- Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
- by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
- person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
- 1.E.8.
- 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
- used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
- agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
- things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
- paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
- agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
- 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
- Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
- of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
- works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
- States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
- United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
- claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
- displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
- all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
- that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
- free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
- works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
- Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
- comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
- same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
- you share it without charge with others.
- 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
- what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
- in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
- check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
- agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
- distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
- other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
- representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
- country other than the United States.
- 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
- 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
- immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
- prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
- on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
- phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
- performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
- 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
- derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
- contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
- copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
- the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
- redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
- either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
- obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
- trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
- 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
- with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
- must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
- additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
- will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
- posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
- beginning of this work.
- 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
- work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
- 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
- electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
- prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
- active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm License.
- 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
- compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
- any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
- to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
- other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
- version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
- (www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
- to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
- of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
- Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
- full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
- 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
- performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
- unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
- 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
- access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- provided that:
- * You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
- * You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
- * You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- * You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
- are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
- from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
- the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
- forth in Section 3 below.
- 1.F.
- 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
- effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
- works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
- Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
- contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
- or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
- intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
- other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
- cannot be read by your equipment.
- 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
- of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
- fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
- LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
- PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
- TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
- LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
- INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
- DAMAGE.
- 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
- defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
- receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
- written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
- received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
- with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
- with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
- lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
- or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
- opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
- the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
- without further opportunities to fix the problem.
- 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
- in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
- OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
- 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
- warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
- damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
- violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
- agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
- limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
- unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
- remaining provisions.
- 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
- trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
- providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
- accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
- production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
- including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
- the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
- or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
- additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
- Defect you cause.
- Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
- Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
- electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
- computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
- exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
- from people in all walks of life.
- Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
- assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
- goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
- remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
- and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
- generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
- Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
- www.gutenberg.org
- Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation
- The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
- 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
- state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
- Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
- number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
- U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
- The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
- Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
- to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
- and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
- Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation
- Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
- widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
- increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
- freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
- array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
- ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
- status with the IRS.
- The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
- charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
- States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
- considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
- with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
- where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
- DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
- state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
- While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
- have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
- against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
- approach us with offers to donate.
- International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
- any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
- outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
- Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
- methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
- ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
- donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
- Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
- freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
- distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
- volunteer support.
- Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
- editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
- the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
- necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
- edition.
- Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
- facility: www.gutenberg.org
- This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
- including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
- subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.